SFworld 版 (精华区)
发信人: ashes (东邪西毒), 信区: SFworld
标 题: Ander's shadow
发信站: 哈工大紫丁香 (2003年03月02日00:03:00 星期天), 站内信件
ENDER'S SHADOW
by Orson Scott Card
(c) 1999 by Orson Scott Card
FOREWORD
This book is, strictly speaking, not a sequel, because it begins about
where Ender's Game begins, and also ends, very nearly, at the same place. In
fact, it is another telling of the same tale, with many of the same
characters and settings, only from the perspective of another character.
It's hard to know what to call it. A companion novel? A parallel novel?
Perhaps a "parallax," if I can move that scientific term into literature.
Ideally, this novel should work as well for readers who have never
read Ender's Game as for those who have read it several times. Because it is
not a sequel, there is nothing you need to know from the novel Ender's Game
that is not contained here. And yet, if I have achieved my literary goal,
these two books complement and fulfill each other. Whichever one you read
first, the other novel should still work on its own merits.
For many years, I have gratefully watched as Ender's Game has grown in
popularity, especially among school-age readers. Though it was never
intended as a young-adult novel, it has been embraced by many in that age
group and by many teachers who find ways to use the book in their
classrooms.
I have never found it surprising that the existing sequels -- Speaker
for the Dead, Xenocide, and Children of the Mind -- never appealed as
strongly to those younger readers. The obvious reason is that Ender's Game
is centered around a child, while the sequels are about adults; perhaps more
important, Ender's Game is, at least on the surface, a heroic,
adventurous novel, while the sequels are a completely different kind of
fiction, slower paced, more contemplative and idea-centered, and dealing
with themes of less immediate import to younger readers.
Recently, however, I have come to realize that the 3,000-year gap
between Ender's Game and its sequels leaves plenty of room for other sequels
that are more closely tied to the original. In fact, in one sense Ender's
Game has no sequels, for the other three books make one continuous story
in themselves, while Ender's Game stands alone.
For a brief time I flirted seriously with the idea of opening up the
Ender's Game universe to other writers, and went so far as to invite a
writer whose work I greatly admire, Neal Shusterman, to consider working
with me to create novels about Ender Wiggin's companions in Battle School.
As we talked, it became clear that the most obvious character to begin
with would be Bean, the child-soldier whom Ender treated as he had been
treated by his adult teachers.
And then something else happened. The more we talked, the more jealous I
became that Neal might be the one to write such a book, and not me. It
finally dawned on me that, far from being finished with writing about
"kids in space," as I cynically described the project, I actually had more
to say, having actually learned something in the intervening dozen years
since Ender's Game first appeared in 1985. And so, while still hoping that
Neal and I can work together on something, I deftly swiped the project back.
I soon found that it's harder than it looks, to tell the same story
twice, but differently. I was hindered by the fact that even though the
viewpoint characters were different, the author was the same, with the
same core beliefs about the world. I was helped by the fact that in the
intervening years, I have learned a few things, and was able to bring
different concerns and a deeper understanding to the project. Both books
come from the same mind, but not the same; they draw on the same memories of
childhood, but from a different perspective. For the reader, the parallax
is created by Ender and Bean, standing a little ways apart as they move
through the same events. For the writer, the parallax was created by a dozen
years in which my older children grew up, and younger ones were born, and
the world changed around me, and I learned a few things about human nature
and about art that I had not known before.
Now you hold this book in your hands. Whether the literary experiment
succeeds for you is entirely up to you to judge. For me it was worth dipping
again into the same well, for the water was greatly changed this time,
and if it has not been turned exactly into wine, at least it has a different
flavor because of the different vessel that it was carried in, and I hope
that you will enjoy it as much, or even more.PART ONE -- URCHIN
CHAPTER 1 -- POKE
"You think you've found somebody, so suddenly my program gets the ax?"
"It's not about this kid that Graff found. It's about the low quality of
what you've been finding."
"We knew it was long odds. But the kids I'm working with are actually
fighting a war just to stay alive."
"Your kids are so malnourished that they suffer serious mental
degradation before you even begin testing them. Most of them haven't
formed any normal human bonds, they're so messed up they can't get through a
day without finding something they can steal, break, or disrupt."
"They also represent possibility, as all children do."
"That's just the kind of sentimentality that discredits your whole
project in the eyes of the I.F."
***
Poke kept her eyes open all the time. The younger children were supposed
to be on watch, too, and sometimes they could be quite observant, but
they just didn't notice all the things they needed to notice, and that meant
that Poke could only depend on herself to see danger.
There was plenty of danger to watch for. The cops, for instance. They
didn't show up often, but when they did, they seemed especially bent on
clearing the streets of children. They would flail about them with their
magnetic whips, landing cruel stinging blows on even the smallest children,
haranguing them as vermin, thieves, pestilence, a plague on the fair city
of Rotterdam. It was Poke's job to notice when a disturbance in the distance
suggested that the cops might be running a sweep. Then she would give the
alarm whistle and the little ones would rush to their hiding places till the
danger was past.
But the cops didn't come by that often. The real danger was much more
immediate -- big kids. Poke, at age nine, was the matriarch of her little
crew (not that any of them knew for sure that she was a girl), but that
cut no ice with the eleven- and twelve- and thirteen-year-old boys and girls
who bullied their way around the streets. The adult-size beggars and
thieves and whores of the street paid no attention to the little kids except
to kick them out of the way. But the older children, who were among the
kicked, turned around and preyed on the younger ones. Any time Poke's crew
found something to eat -- especially if they located a dependable source
of garbage or an easy mark for a coin or a bit of food -- they had to
watch jealously and hide their winnings, for the bullies liked nothing
better than to take away whatever scraps of food the little ones might have.
Stealing from younger children was much safer than stealing from shops or
passersby. And they enjoyed it, Poke could see that. They liked how the
little kids cowered and obeyed and whimpered and gave them whatever they
demanded.
So when the scrawny little two-year-old took up a perch on a garbage can
across the street, Poke, being observant, saw him at once. The kid was on
the edge of starvation. No, the kid was starving. Thin arms and legs, joints
that looked ridiculously oversized, a distended belly. And if hunger didn't
kill him soon, the onset of autumn would, because his clothing was thin and
there wasn't much of it even at that.
Normally she wouldn't have paid him more than passing attention. But
this one had eyes. He was still looking around with intelligence. None of
that stupor of the walking dead, no longer searching for food or even caring
to find a comfortable place to lie while breathing their last taste of
the stinking air of Rotterdam. After all, death would not be such a change
for them. Everyone knew that Rotterdam was, if not the capital, then the
main seaport of Hell. The only difference between Rotterdam and death was
that with Rotterdam, the damnation wasn't eternal.
This little boy -- what was he doing? Not looking for food. He wasn't
eyeing the pedestrians. Which was just as well -- there was no chance that
anyone would leave anything for a child that small. Anything he might get
would be taken away by any other child, so why should he bother? If he
wanted to survive, he should be following older scavengers and licking
food wrappers behind them, getting the last sheen of sugar or dusting of
flour clinging to the packaging, whatever the first comer hadn't licked off.
There was nothing for this child out here on the street, not unless he
got taken in by a crew, and Poke wouldn't have him. He'd be nothing but a
drain, and her kids were already having a hard enough time without adding
another useless mouth. mouth.
He's going to ask, she thought. He's going to whine and beg. But that
only works on the rich people. I've got my crew to think of. He's not one of
them, so I don't care about him. Even if he is small. He's nothing to me.
A couple of twelve-year-old hookers who didn't usually work this strip
rounded a corner, heading toward Poke's base. She gave a low whistle. The
kids immediately drifted apart, staying on the street but trying not to look
like a crew.
It didn't help. The hookers knew already that Poke was a crew boss,
and sure enough, they caught her by the arms and slammed her against a
wall and demanded their "permission" fee. Poke knew better than to claim she
had nothing to share -- she always tried to keep a reserve in order to
placate hungry bullies. These hookers, Poke could see why they were hungry.
They didn't look like what the pedophiles wanted, when they came cruising
through. They were too gaunt, too old-looking. So until they grew bodies and
started attracting the slightly-less-perverted trade, they had to resort to
scavenging. It made Poke's blood boil, to have them steal from her and
her crew, but it was smarter to pay them off. If they beat her up, she
couldn't look out for her crew now, could she? So she took them to one of
her stashes and came up with a little bakery bag that still had half a
pastry in it.
It was stale, since she'd been holding it for a couple of days for
just such an occasion, but the two hookers grabbed it, tore open the bag,
and one of them bit off more than half before offering the remainder to
her friend. Or rather, her former friend, for of such predatory acts are
feuds born. The two of them started fighting, screaming at each other,
slapping, raking at each other with clawed hands. Poke watched closely,
hoping that they'd drop the remaining fragment of pastry, but no such luck.
It went into the mouth of the same girl who had already eaten the first
bite -- and it was that first girl who won the fight too, sending the
other one running for refuge.
Poke turned around, and there was the little boy right behind her. She
nearly tripped over him. Angry as she was at having had to give up food to
those street-whores, she gave him a knee and knocked him to the ground.
"Don't stand behind people if you don't want to land on your butt," she
snarled.
He simply got up and looked at her, expectant, demanding.
"No, you little bastard, you're not getting nothing from me," said Poke.
"I'm not taking one bean out of the mouths of my crew, you aren't *worth* a
bean."
Her crew was starting to reassemble, now that the bullies had passed.
"Why you give your food to them?" said the boy. "You need that food."
"Oh, excuse me!" said Poke. She raised her voice, so her crew could hear
her. "I guess you ought to be the crew boss here, is that it? You being
so big, you got no trouble keeping the food."
"Not me," said the boy. "I'm not worth a bean, remember?"
"Yeah, I remember. Maybe *you* ought to remember and shut up."
Her crew laughed.
But the little boy didn't. "You got to get your own bully," he said.
"I don't *get* bullies, I get rid of them," Poke answered. She didn't
like the way he kept talking, standing up to her. In a minute she was
going to have to hurt him.
"You give food to bullies every day. Give that to *one* bully and get
him to keep the others away from you."
"You think I never thought of that, stupid?" she said. "Only once he's
bought, how I keep him? He won't fight for us."
"If he won't, then kill him," said the boy.
That made Poke mad, the stupid impossibility of it, the power of the
idea that she knew she could never lay hands on. She gave him a knee again,
and this time kicked him when he went down. "Maybe I start by killing you."
"I'm not worth a bean, remember?" said the boy. "You kill one bully, get
another to fight for you, he want your food, he scared of you too."
She didn't know what to say to such a preposterous idea.
"They eating you up," said the boy. "Eating you up. So you got to kill
one. Get him down, everybody as small as me. Stones crack any size head."
"You make me sick," she said.
"Cause you didn't think of it," he said.
He was flirting with death, talking to her that way. If she injured
him at all, he'd be finished, he must know that.
But then, he had death living with him inside his flimsy little shirt
already. Hard to see how it would matter if death came any closer.
Poke looked around at her crew. She couldn't read their faces.
"I don't need no baby telling me to kill what we can't kill."
"Little kid come up behind him, you shove, he fall over," said the boy.
"Already got you some big stones, bricks. Hit him in the head. When you see
brains you done."
"He no good to me dead," she said. "I want my own bully, he keep us
safe, I don't want no dead one."
The boy grinned. "So now you like my idea," he said.
"Can't trust no bully," she answered.
"He watch out for you at the charity kitchen," said the boy. "You get in
at the kitchen." He kept looking her in the eye, but he was talking for the
others to hear. "He get you *all* in at the kitchen."
"Little kid get into the kitchen, the big kids, they beat him," said
Sergeant. He was eight, and mostly acted like he thought he was Poke's
second-in-command, though truth was she didn't have a second.
"You get you a bully, he make them go away."
"How he stop two bullies? Three bullies?" asked Sergeant.
"Like I said," the boy answered. "You push him down, he not so big.
You get your rocks. You be ready. Be not you a soldier? Don't they call
you Sergeant?"
"Stop talking to him, Sarge," said Poke. "I don't know why any of us
is talking to some two-year-old."
"I'm four," said the boy.
"What your name?" asked Poke.
"Nobody ever said no name for me," he said.
"You mean you so stupid you can't remember your own name?"
"Nobody ever said no name," he said again. Still he looked her in the
eye, lying there on the ground, the crew around him.
"Ain't worth a bean," she said.
"Am so," he said.
"Yeah," said Sergeant. "One damn bean."
"So now you got a name," said Poke. "You go back and sit on that garbage
can, I think about what you said."
"I need something to eat," said Bean.
"If I get me a bully, if what you said works, then maybe I give you
something."
"I need something now," said Bean.
She knew it was true.
She reached into her pocket and took out six peanuts she had been
saving. He sat up and took just one from her hand, put it in his mouth and
slowly chewed.
"Take them all," she said impatiently.
He held out his little hand. It was weak. He couldn't make a fist.
"Can't hold them all," he said. "Don't hold so good."
Damn. She was wasting perfectly good peanuts on a kid who was going to
die anyway.
But she was going to try his idea. It was audacious, but it was the
first plan she'd ever heard that offered any hope of making things better,
of changing something about their miserable life without her having to put
on girl clothes and going into business. And since it was his idea, the crew
had to see that she treated him fair. That's how you stay crew boss, they
always see you be fair.
So she kept holding her hand out while he ate all six peanuts, one at
a time.
After he swallowed the last one, he looked her in the eye for another
long moment, and then said, "You better be ready to kill him."
"I want him alive."
"Be ready to kill him if he ain't the right one." With that, Bean
toddled back across the street to his garbage can and laboriously climbed on
top again to watch.
"You ain't no four years old!" Sergeant shouted over to him.
"I'm four but I'm just little," he shouted back.
Poke hushed Sergeant up and they went looking for stones and bricks
and cinderblocks. If they were going to have a little war, they'd best be
armed.
***
Bean didn't like his new name, but it was a name, and having a name
meant that somebody else knew who he was and needed something to call him,
and that was a good thing. So were the six peanuts. His mouth hardly knew
what to do with them. Chewing hurt.
So did watching as Poke screwed up the plan he gave her. Bean didn't
choose her because she was the smartest crew boss in Rotterdam. Quite the
opposite. Her crew barely survived because her judgment wasn't that good.
And she was too compassionate. Didn't have the brains to make sure she got
enough food herself to look well fed, so while her own crew knew she was
nice and liked her, to strangers she didn't look prosperous. Didn't look
good at her job.
But if she really was good at her job, she would never have listened
to him. He never would have got close. Or if she did listen, and did like
his idea, she would have got rid of him. That's the way it worked on the
street. Nice kids died. Poke was almost too nice to stay alive. That's
what Bean was counting on. But that's what he now feared.
All this time he invested in watching people while his body ate itself
up, it would be wasted if she couldn't bring it off. Not that Bean hadn't
wasted a lot of time himself. At first when he watched the way kids did
things on the street, the way they were stealing from each other, at each
other's throats, in each other's pockets, selling every part of themselves
that they could sell, he saw how things could be better if somebody had
any brains, but he didn't trust his own insight. He was sure there must be
something else that he just didn't get. He struggled to learn more -- of
everything. To learn to read so he'd know what the signs said on trucks
and stores and wagons and bins. To learn enough Dutch and enough I.F. Common
to understand everything that was said around him. It didn't help that
hunger constantly distracted him. He probably could have found more to eat
if he hadn't spent so much time studying the people. But finally he
realized: He already understood it. He had understood it from the start.
There was no secret that Bean just didn't get yet because he was only
little. The reason all these kids handled everything so stupidly was because
they were stupid.
They were stupid and he was smart. So why was he starving to death while
these kids were still alive? That was when he decided to act. That was when
he picked Poke as his crew boss. And now he sat on a garbage can watching
her blow it.
She chose the wrong bully, that's the first thing she did. She needed
a guy who made it on size alone, intimidating people. She needed somebody
big and dumb, brutal but controllable. Instead, she thinks she needs
somebody *small*. No, stupid! Stupid! Bean wanted to scream at her as she
saw her target coming, a bully who called himself Achilles after the
comics hero. He was little and mean and smart and quick, but he had a gimp
leg. So she thought she could take him down more easily. Stupid! The idea
isn't just to take him down -- you can take *anybody* down the first time
because they won't expect it. You need somebody who will *stay* down.
But he said nothing. Couldn't get her mad at him. See what happens.
See what Achilles is like when he's beat. She'll see -- it won't work and
she'll have to kill him and hide the body and try again with another bully
before word gets out that there's a crew of little kids taking down bullies.
So up comes Achilles, swaggering -- or maybe that was just the rolling
gait that his bent leg forced on him -- and Poke makes an exaggerated show
of cowering and trying to get away. Bad job, thought Bean. Achilles gets
it already. Something's wrong. You were supposed to act like you normally
do! Stupid! So Achilles looks around a lot more. Wary. She tells him she's
got something stashed -- that part's normal -- and she leads him into the
trap in the alley. But look, he's holding back. Being careful. It isn't
going to work.
But it does work, because of the gimp leg. Achilles can see the trap
being sprung but he can't get away, a couple of little kids pile into the
backs of his legs while Poke and Sergeant push him from the front and down
he goes. Then there's a couple of bricks hitting his body and his bad leg
and they're thrown hard -- the little kids get it, they do their job, even
if Poke is stupid -- and yeah, that's good, Achilles *is* scared, he
thinks he's going to die.
Bean was off his perch by now. Down the alley, watching, closer. Hard to
see past the crowd. He pushes his way in, and the little kids -- who are
all bigger than he is -- recognize him, they know he earned a view of this,
they let him in. He stands right at Achilles' head. Poke stands above him,
holding a big cinderblock, and she's talking.
"You get us into the food line at the shelter."
"Sure, right, I will, I promise."
Don't believe him. Look at his eyes, checking for weakness.
"You get more food this way, too, Achilles. You get my crew. We get
enough to eat, we have more strength, we bring more to you. You need a crew.
The other bullies shove you out of the way -- we've seen them! -- but
with us, you don't got to take no shit. See how we do it? An army, that's
what we are."
OK, now he was getting it. It *was* a good idea, and he wasn't stupid,
so it made sense to him.
"If this is so smart, Poke, how come you didn't do this before now?"
She had nothing to say to that. Instead, she glanced at Bean.
Just a momentary glance, but Achilles saw it. And Bean knew what he
was thinking. It was so obvious.
"Kill him," said Bean.
"Don't be stupid," said Poke. "He's *in*."
"That's right," said Achilles. "I'm in. It's a good idea."
"Kill him," said Bean. "If you don't kill him now, he's going to kill
*you*."
"You let this little walking turd get away with talking shit like this?"
said Achilles.
"It's your life or his," said Bean. "Kill him and take the next guy."
"The next guy won't have my bad leg," said Achilles. "The next guy won't
think he needs you. I know I do. I'm in. I'm the one you want. It makes
sense."
Maybe Bean's warning made her more cautious. She didn't cave in quite
yet. "You won't decide later that you're embarrassed to have a bunch of
little kids in your crew?"
"It's *your* crew, not mine," said Achilles.
Liar, thought Bean. Don't you see that he's lying to you?
"What this is to me," said Achilles, "this is my family. These are my
kid brothers and sisters. I got to look after my family, don't I?"
Bean saw at once that Achilles had won. Powerful bully, and he had
called these kids his sisters, his brothers. Bean could see the hunger in
their eyes. Not the regular hunger, for food, but the real hunger, the
deep hunger, for family, for love, for belonging. They got a little of
that by being in Poke's crew. But Achilles was promising more. He had just
beaten Poke's best offer. Now it was too late to kill him.
Too late, but for a moment it looked as if Poke was so stupid she was
going to go ahead and kill him after all. She raised the cinderblock higher,
to crash it down.
"No," said Bean. "You can't. He's family now."
She lowered the cinderblock to her waist. Slowly she turned to look at
Bean. "You get the hell out of here," she said. "You no part of my crew. You
get *nothing* here."
"No," said Achilles. "You better go ahead and kill me, you plan to treat
him that way."
Oh, that sounded brave. But Bean knew Achilles wasn't brave. Just smart.
He had already won. It meant nothing that he was lying there on the
ground and Poke still had the cinderblock. It was his crew now. Poke was
finished. It would be a while before anybody but Bean and Achilles
understood that, but the test of authority was here and now, and Achilles
was going to win it.
"This little kid," said Achilles, "he may not be part of your crew,
but he's part of my family. You don't go telling my brother to get lost."
Poke hesitated. A moment. A moment longer.
Long enough.
Achilles sat up. He rubbed his bruises, he checked out his contusions.
He looked in joking admiration to the little kids who had bricked him.
"Damn, you bad!" They laughed -- nervously, at first. Would he hurt them
because they hurt him? "Don't worry," he said. "You showed me what you can
do. We have to do this to more than a couple of bullies, you'll see. I had
to know you could do it right. Good job. What's your name?"
One by one he learned their names. Learned them and remembered them,
or when he missed one he'd make a big deal about it, apologize, visibly work
at remembering. Fifteen minutes later, they loved him.
If he could do this, thought Bean, if he's this good at making people
love him, why didn't he do it before?
Because these fools always look up for power. People above you, they
never want to share power with you. Why you look to them? They give you
nothing. People below you, you give them hope, you give them respect, *they*
give you power, cause they don't think they have any, so they don't mind
giving it up.
Achilles got to his feet, a little shaky, his bad leg more sore than
usual. Everybody stood back, gave him some space. He could leave now, if
he wanted. Get away, never come back. Or go get some more bullies, come back
and punish the crew. But he stood there, then smiled, reached into his
pocket, took out the most incredible thing. A bunch of raisins. A whole
handful of them. They looked at his hand as if it bore the mark of a nail in
the palm.
"Little brothers and sisters first," he said. "Littlest first." He
looked at Bean. "You."
"Not him!" said the next littlest. "We don't even know him."
"Bean was the one wanted us to kill you," said another.
"Bean," said Achilles. "Bean, you were just looking out for my family,
weren't you?"
"Yes," said Bean.
"You want a raisin?"
Bean nodded.
"You first. You the one brought us all together, OK?"
Either Achilles would kill him or he wouldn't. At this moment, all
that mattered was the raisin. Bean took it. Put it in his mouth. Did not
even bite down on it. Just let his saliva soak it, bringing out the flavor
of it.
"You know," said Achilles, "no matter how long you hold it in your
mouth, it never turns back into a grape."
"What's a grape?"
Achilles laughed at him, still not chewing. Then he gave out raisins
to the other kids. Poke had never shared out so many raisins, because she
had never had so many to share. But the little kids wouldn't understand
that. They'd think, Poke gave us garbage, and Achilles gave us raisins.
That's because they were stupid.CHAPTER 2 -- KITCHEN
"I know you've already looked through this area, and you're probably
almost done with Rotterdam, but something's been happening lately, since you
visited, that ... oh, I don't know if it's really anything, I shouldn't
have called."
"Tell me, I'm listening."
"There's always been fighting in the line. We try to stop them, but we
only have a few volunteers, and they're needed to keep order inside the
dining room, that and serve the food. So we know that a lot of kids who
should get a turn can't even get in the line, because they're pushed out.
And if we do manage to stop the bullies and let one of the little ones in,
then they get beaten up afterward. We never see them again. It's ugly."
"Survival of the fittest."
"Of the cruelest. Civilization is supposed to be the opposite of that.
"
"You're civilized. They're not."
"Anyway, it's changed. All of a sudden. just in the past few days. I
don't know why. But I just -- you said that anything unusual -- and
whoever's behind it -- I mean, can civilization suddenly evolve all over
again, in the middle of a jungle of children?"
"That's the only place it ever evolves. I'm through in Delft. There
was nothing for us here. I already have enough blue plates."
***
Bean kept to the background during the weeks that followed. He had
nothing to offer now -- they already had his best idea. And he knew that
gratitude wouldn't last long. He wasn't big and he didn't eat much, but if
he was constantly underfoot, annoying people and chattering at them, it
would soon become not only fun but popular to deny him food in hopes that
he'd die or go away.
Even so, he often felt Achilles' eyes on him. He noticed this without
fear. If Achilles killed him, so be it. He had been a few days from death
anyway. It would just mean his plan didn't work so well after all, but since
it was his only plan, it didn't matter if it turned out not to have been
good. If Achilles remembered how Bean urged Poke to kill him -- and of
course he did remember -- and if Achilles was planning how and when he would
die, there was nothing Bean could do to prevent it.
Sucking up wouldn't help. That would just look like weakness, and Bean
had seen for a long time how bullies -- and Achilles was still a bully at
heart -- thrived on the terror of other children, how they treated people
even worse when they showed their weakness. Nor would offering more clever
ideas, first because Bean didn't have any, and second because Achilles would
think it was an affront to his authority. And the other kids would resent
it if Bean kept acting like he thought he was the only one with a brain.
They already resented him for having thought of this plan that had changed
their lives.
For the change was immediate. The very first morning, Achilles had
Sergeant go stand in the line at Helga's Kitchen on Aert Van Nes Straat,
because, he said, as long as we're going to get the crap beaten out of us
anyway, we might as well try for the best free food in Rotterdam in case
we get to eat before we die. He talked like that, but he had made them
practice their moves till the last light of day the night before, so they
worked together better and they didn't give themselves away so soon, the way
they did when they were going after him. The practice gave them confidence.
Achilles kept saying, "They'll expect this," and "They'll try that," and
because he was a bully himself, they trusted him in a way they had never
trusted Poke.
Poke, being stupid, kept trying to act as if she was in charge, as if
she had only delegated their training to Achilles. Bean admired the way that
Achilles did not argue with her, and did not change his plans or
instructions in any way because of what she said. If she urged him to do
what he was already doing, he'd keep doing it. There was no show of
defiance. No struggle for power. Achilles acted as if he had already won,
and because the other kids followed him, he had.
The line formed in front of Helga's early, and Achilles watched
carefully as bullies who arrived later inserted themselves in line in a kind
of hierarchy -- the bullies knew which ones got pride of place. Bean
tried to understand the principle Achilles used to pick which bully Sergeant
should pick a fight with. It wasn't the weakest, but that was smart,
since beating the weakest bully would only set them up for more fights every
day. Nor was it the strongest. As Sergeant walked across the street, Bean
tried to see what it was about the target bully that made Achilles pick him.
And then Bean realized -- this was the strongest bully who had no friends
with him.
The target was big and he looked mean, so beating him would look like an
important victory. But he talked to no one, greeted no one. He was out of
his territory, and several of the other bullies were casting resentful
glances at him, sizing him up. There might have been a fight here today even
if Achilles hadn't picked this soup line, this stranger.
Sergeant was cool as you please, slipping into place directly in front
of the target. For a moment, the target just stood there looking at him,
as if he couldn't believe what he was seeing. Surely this little kid would
realize his deadly mistake and run away. But Sergeant didn't even act as
if he noticed the target was there.
"Hey!" said the target. He shoved Sergeant hard, and from the angle of
the push, Sergeant should have been propelled away from the line. But, as
Achilles had told him, he planted a foot right away and launched himself
forward, hitting the bully in front of the target in line, even though
that was not the direction in which the target had pushed him.
The bully in front turned around and snarled at Sergeant, who pleaded,
"He pushed me."
"He hit you himself," said the target.
"Do I look that stupid?" said Sergeant.
The bully-in-front sized up the target. A stranger. Tough, but not
unbeatable. "Watch yourself, skinny boy."
That was a dire insult among bullies, since it implied incompetence
and weakness.
"Watch your own self."
During this exchange, Achilles led a picked group of younger kids toward
Sergeant, who was risking life and limb by staying right up between the two
bullies. Just before reaching them, two of the younger kids darted
through the line to the other side, taking up posts against the wall just
beyond the target's range of vision. Then Achilles started screaming.
"What the hell do you think you're doing, you turd-stained piece of
toilet paper! I send my boy to hold my place in line and you *shove* him?
You shove him into my *friend* here?"
Of course they weren't friends at all -- Achilles was the
lowest-status bully in this part of Rotterdam and he always took his place
as the last of the bullies in line. But the target didn't know that, and
he wouldn't have time to find out. For by the time the target was turned
to face Achilles, the boys behind him were already leaping against his
calves. There was no waiting for the usual exchange of shoves and brags
before the fight began. Achilles began it and ended it with brutal
swiftness. He pushed hard just as the younger boys hit, and the target hit
the cobbled street hard. He lay there dazed, blinking. But already two other
little kids were handing big loose cobblestones to Achilles, who smashed
them down, one, two, on the target's chest. Bean could hear the ribs as they
popped like twigs.
Achilles pulled him by his shirt and flopped him right back down on
the street. He groaned, struggled to move, groaned again, lay still.
The others in line had backed away from the fight. This was a
violation of protocol. When bullies fought each other, they took it into the
alleys, and they didn't try for serious injury, they fought until supremacy
was clear and it was over. This was a new thing, using cobblestones,
breaking bones. It scared them, not because Achilles was so fearsome to look
at, but because he had done the forbidden thing, and he had done it right
out in the open.
At once Achilles signaled Poke to bring the rest of the crew and fill in
the gap in the line. Meanwhile, Achilles strutted up and down the line,
ranting at the top of his voice. "You can disrespect me, I don't care, I'm
just a cripple, I'm just a guy with a gimp leg! But don't you go shoving
my family! Don't you go shoving one of my children out of line! You hear me?
Because if you do that some truck's going to come down this street and
knock you down and break your bones, just like happened to this little
pinprick, and next time maybe your head's going to be what breaks till
your brains fall out on the street. You got to watch out for speeding trucks
like the one that knocked down this fart-for-brains right here in front
of my soup kitchen!"
There it was, the challenge. *My* kitchen. And Achilles didn't hold
back, didn't show a spark of timidity about it. He kept the rant going,
limping up and down the line, staring each bully in the face, daring him
to argue. Shadowing his movements on the other side of the line were the two
younger boys who had helped take down the stranger, and Sergeant strutted
at Achilles's side, lookin happy and smug. They reeked of confidence,
while the other bullies kept glancing over their shoulders to see what those
leg-grabbers behind them were doing.
And it wasn't just talk and brag, either. When one of the bullies
started looking belligerent, Achilles went right up into his face. However,
as he had planned beforehand, he didn't actually go after the belligerent
one -- he was ready for trouble, asking for it. Instead, the boys launched
themselves at the bully directly after him in line. Just as they leapt,
Achilles turned and shoved the new target, screaming, "What do you think
is so damn funny!" He had another cobblestone in his hands at once, standing
over the fallen one, but he did not strike. "Go to the end of the line, you
moron! You're lucky I'm letting you eat in my kitchen!"
It completely deflated the belligerent one, for the bully Achilles
knocked down and obviously could have smashed was the one next *lower* in
status. So the belligerent one hadn't been threatened or harmed, and yet
Achilles had scored a victory right in his face and he hadn't been a part of
it.
The door to the soup kitchen opened. At once Achilles was with the woman
who opened it, smiling, greeting her like an old friend. "Thank you for
feeding us today," he said. "I'm eating last today. Thank you for bringing
in my friends. Thank you for feeding my family."
The woman at the door knew how the street worked. She knew Achilles,
too, and that something very strange was going on here. Achilles always
ate last of the bigger boys, and rather shamefacedly. But his new
patronizing attitude hardly had time to get annoying before the first of
Poke's crew came to the door. "My family," Achilles announced proudly,
passing each of the little kids into the hall. "You take good care of my
children."
Even Poke he called his child. If she noticed the humiliation of it,
though, she didn't show it. All she cared about was the miracle of getting
into the soup kitchen. The plan had worked.
And whether she thought of it as her plan or Bean's didn't matter to
Bean in the least, at least not till he had the first soup in his mouth.
He drank it as slowly as he could, but it was still gone so fast that he
could hardly believe it. Was this all? And how had he managed to spill so
much of the precious stuff on his shirt?
Quickly he stuffed his bread inside his clothing and headed for the
door. Stashing the bread and leaving, that was Achilles' idea and it was a
good one. Some of the bullies inside the kitchen were bound to plan
retribution. The sight of little kids eating would be galling to them.
They'd get used to it soon enough, Achilles promised, but this first day
it was important that all the little kids get out while the bullies were
still eating.
When Bean got to the door, the line was still coming in, and Achilles
stood by the door, chatting with the woman about the tragic accident there
in the line. Paramedics must have been summoned to carry the injured boy
away -- he was no longer groaning in the street. "It could have been one
of the little kids," he said. "We need a policeman out here to watch the
traffic. That driver would never have been so careless if there was a cop
here."
The woman agreed. "It could have been awful. They said half his ribs
were broken and his lung was punctured." She looked mournful, her hands
fretting.
"This line forms up when it's still dark. It's dangerous. Can't we
have a light out here? I've got my children to think about," said Achilles.
"Don't you want my little kids to be safe? Or am I the only one who cares
about them?"
The woman murmured something about money and how the soup kitchen didn't
have much of a budget.
Poke was counting children at the door while Sergeant ushered them out
into the street.
Bean, seeing that Achilles was trying to get the adults to protect
them in line, decided the time was tight for him to be useful. Because
this woman was compassionate and Bean was by far the smallest child, he knew
he had the most power over her. He came up to her, tugged on her woollen
skirt. "Thank you for watching over us," he said. "It's the first time I
ever got into a real kitchen. Papa Achilles told us that you would keep us
safe so we little ones could eat here every day."
"Oh, you poor thing! Oh, look at you." Tears streamed down the woman's
face. "Oh, oh, you poor darling." She embraced him.
Achilles looked on, beaming. "I got to watch out for them," he said
quietly. "I got to keep them safe."
Then he led his family -- it was no longer in any sense Poke's crew --
away from Helga's kitchen, all marching in a line. Till they rounded the
corner of a building and then they ran like hell, joining hands and
putting as much distance between them and Helga's kitchen as they could. For
the rest of the day they were going to have to lie low. In twos and
threes the bullies would be looking for them.
But they *could* lie low, because they didn't need to forage for food
today. The soup already gave them more calories than they normally got,
and they had the bread.
Of course, the first tax on that bread belonged to Achilles, who had
eaten no soup. Each child reverently offered his bread to their new papa,
and he took a bite from each one and slowly chewed it and swallowed it
before reaching for the next offered bread. It was quite a lengthy ritual.
Achilles took a mouthful of every piece of bread except two: Poke's and
Bean's.
"Thanks," said Poke.
She was so stupid, she thought it was a gesture of respect. Bean knew
better. By not eating their bread, Achilles was putting them outside the
family. We are dead, thought Bean.
That's why Bean hung back, why he held his tongue and remained
unobtrusive during the next few weeks. That was also why he endeavored never
to be alone. Always he was within arm's reach of one of the other kids.
But he didn't linger near Poke. That was a picture he didn't want to get
locked in anyone's memory, him tagging along with Poke.
From the second morning, Helga's soup kitchen had an adult outside
watching, and a new light fixture on the third day. By the end of a week the
adult guardian was a cop. Even so, Achilles never brought his group out
of hiding until the adult was there, and then he would march the whole
family right to the front of the line, and loudly thank the bully in first
position for helping him look out for his children by saving them a place in
line.
It was hard on all of them, though, seeing how the bullies looked at
them. They had to be on their best behavior while the doorkeeper was
watching, but murder was on their minds.
And it didn't get better; the bullies didn't "get used to it," despite
Achilles' bland assurances that they would. So even though Bean was
determined to be unobtrusive, he knew that something had to be done to
turn the bullies away from their hatred, and Achilles, who thought the war
was over and victory achieved, wasn't going to do it.
So as Bean took his place in line one morning, he deliberately hung back
to be last of the family. Usually Poke brought up the rear -- it was her
way of trying to pretend that she was somehow involved in ushering the
little ones in. But this time Bean deliberately got in place behind her,
with the hate-filled stare of the bully who should have had first position
burning on his head.
Right at the door, where the woman was standing with Achilles, both of
them looking proud of his family, Bean turned to face the bully behind him
and asked, in his loudest voice, "Where's *your* children? How come you
don't bring *your* children to the kitchen?"
The bully would have snarled something vicious, but the woman at the
door was watching with raised eyebrows. "You look after little children,
too?" she asked. It was obvious she was delighted about the idea and
wanted the answer to be yes. And stupid as this bully was, he knew that it
was good to please adults who gave out food. So he said, "Of course I do."
"Well, you can bring them, you know. Just like Papa Achilles here. We're
always glad to see the little children."
Again Bean piped up, "They let people with little children come inside
*first*!"
"You know, that's such a good idea," said the woman. "I think we'll make
that a rule. Now, let's move along, we're holding up the hungry children.
"
Bean did not even glance at Achilles as he went inside.
Later, after breakfast, as they were performing the ritual of giving
bread to Achilles, Bean made it a point to offer his bread yet again, though
there was danger in reminding everyone that Achilles never took a share
from him. Today, though, he had to see how Achilles regarded him, for
being so bold and intrusive.
"If they all bring little kids, they'll run out of soup faster," said
Achilles coldly. His eyes said nothing at all -- but that, too, was a
message.
"If they all become papas," said Bean, "they won't be trying to kill
us."
At that, Achilles' eyes came to life a little. He reached down and
took the bread from Bean's hand. He bit down on the crust, tore away a
huge piece of it. More than half. He jammed it into his mouth and chewed
it slowly, then handed the remnant of the bread back to Bean.
It left Bean hungry that day, but it was worth it. It didn't mean that
Achilles wasn't going to kill him someday, but at least he wasn't separating
him from the rest of the family anymore. And that remnant of bread was
far more food than he used to get in a day. Or a week, for that matter.
He was filling out. Muscles grew in his arms and legs again. He didn't
get exhausted just crossing a street. He could keep up easily now, when
the others jogged along. They all had more energy. They were healthy,
compared to street urchins who didn't have a papa. Everyone could see it.
The other bullies would have no trouble recruiting families of their own.
***
Sister Carlotta was a recruiter for the International Fleet's training
program for children. It had caused a lot of criticism in her order, and
finally she won the right to do it by pointedly mentioning the Earth Defense
Treaty, which was a veiled threat. If she reported the order for
obstructing her work on behalf of the I.F., the order could lose its
tax-exempt and draft-exempt status. She knew, however, that when the war
ended and the treaty expired, she would no doubt be a nun in search of a
home, for there would be no place for her among the Sisters of St. Nicholas.
But her mission in life, she knew, was to care for little children,
and the way she saw it, if the Buggers won the next round of the war, all
the little children of the Earth would die. Surely God did not mean that
to happen -- but in her judgment, at least, God did not want his servants to
sit around waiting for God to work miracles to save them. He wanted his
servants to labor as best they could to bring about righteousness. So it was
her business, as a Sister of St. Nicholas, to use her training in child
development in order to serve the war effort. As long as the I.F. thought it
worthwhile to recruit extraordinarily gifted children to train them for
command roles in the battles to come, then she would help them by finding
the children that would otherwise be overlooked. They would never pay anyone
to do something as fruitless as scouring the filthy streets of every
overcrowded city in the world, searching among the malnourished savage
children who begged and stole and starved there; for the chance of finding a
child with the intelligence and ability and character to make a go of it in
Battle School was remote.
To God, however, all things were possible. Did he not say that the
weak would be made strong, and the strong weak? Was Jesus not born to a
humble carpenter and his bride in the country province of Galilee? The
brilliance of children born to privilege and bounty, or even to bare
sufficiency, would hardly show forth the miraculous power of God. And it was
the miracle she was searching for. God had made humankind in his own image,
male and female he created them. No Buggers from another planet were
going to blow down what God had created.
Over the years, though, her enthusiasm, if not her faith, had flagged
a little. Not one child had done better than a marginal success on the
tests.
Those children were indeed taken from the streets and trained, but it
wasn't Battle School. They weren't on the course that might lead them to
save the world. So she began to think that her real work was a different
kind of miracle -- giving the children hope, finding even a few to be lifted
out of the morass, to be given special attention by the local authorities.
She made it a point to indicate the most promising children, and then
follow up on them with email to the authorities. Some of her early successes
had already graduated from college; they said they owed their lives to
Sister Carlotta, but she knew they owed their lives to God.
Then came the call from Helga Braun in Rotterdam, telling her of certain
changes in the children who came to her charity kitchen. Civilization,
she had called it. The children, all by themselves, were becoming civilized.
Sister Carlotta came at once, to see a thing which sounded like a
miracle. And indeed, when she beheld it with her own eyes, she could
hardly believe it. The line for breakfast was now flooded with little
children. Instead of the bigger ones shoving them out of the way or
intimidating them into not even bothering to try, they were shepherding
them, protecting them, making sure each got his share. Helga had panicked at
first, fearful that she would run out of food -- but she found that when
potential benefactors saw how these children were acting, donations
increased. There was always plenty now -- not to mention an increase in
volunteers helping.
"I was at the point of despair," she told Sister Carlotta. "On the day
when they told me that a truck had hit one of the boys and broken his ribs.
Of course that was a lie, but there he lay, right in the line. They
didn't even try to conceal him from me. I was going to give up. I was
going to leave the children to God and move in with my oldest boy in
Frankfurt, where the government is not required by treaty to admit every
refugee from any part of the globe."
"I'm glad you didn't," said Sister Carlotta. "You can't leave them to
God, when God has left them to us."
"Well, that's the funny thing. Perhaps that fight in the line woke up
these children to the horror of the life they were living, for that very day
one of the big boys -- but the weakest of them, with a bad leg, they call
him Achilles -- well, I suppose *I* gave him that name years ago, because
Achilles had a weak heel, you know -- Achilles, anyway -- he showed up in
the line with a group of little children. He as much as asked me for
protection, warning me that what happened to that poor boy with the broken
ribs -- he was the one I call Ulysses, because he wanders from kitchen to
kitchen -- he's still in hospital, his ribs were completely smashed in,
can you believe the brutality? -- Achilles, anyway, he warned me that the
same thing might happen to his little ones, so I made the special effort,
I came early to watch over the line, and badgered the police to finally give
me a man, off-duty volunteers at first, on part pay, but now regulars --
you'd think I would have been watching over the line all along, but don't
you see? It didn't make any difference because they didn't do their
intimidation in the line, they did it where I couldn't see, so no matter how
I watched over them, it was only the bigger, meaner boys who ended up in
the line, and yes, I know they're God's children too and I fed them and
tried to preach the gospel to them as they ate, but I was losing heart, they
were so heartless themselves, so devoid of compassion, but Achilles,
anyway, he had taken on a whole group of them, including the littlest
child I ever saw on the streets, it just broke my heart, they call him Bean,
so small, he looked to be two years old, though I've learned since that
he thinks he's four, and he *talks* like he's ten at least, very precocious,
I suppose that's why he lived long enough to get under Achilles'
protection, but he was skin and bone, people say that when somebody's
skinny, but in the case of this little Bean, it was true, I didn't know
how he had muscles enough to walk, to *stand*, his arms and legs were as
thin as an ant -- oh, isn't that awful? To compare him to the *Buggers*?
Or I should say, the Formics, since they're saying now that Buggers is a bad
word in English, even though I.F. Common is *not* English, even though it
began that way, don't you think?"
"So, Helga, you're telling me it began with this Achilles."
"Do call me Hazie. We're friends now, aren't we?" She gripped Sister
Carlotta's hand. "You must meet this boy. Courage! Vision! Test him,
Sister Carlotta. He is a leader of men! He is a civilizer!"
Sister Carlotta did not point out that civilizers often didn't make good
soldiers. It was enough that the boy was interesting, and she had missed
him the first time around. It was a reminder to her that she must be
thorough.
In the dark of early morning, Sister Carlotta arrived at the door
where the line had already formed. Helga beckoned to her, then pointed
ostentatiously at a rather good-looking young man surrounded by smaller
children. Only when she got closer and saw him take a couple of steps did
she realize just how bad his right leg was. She tried to diagnose the
condition. Was it an early case of rickets? A clubfoot, left uncorrected?
A break that healed wrong?
It hardly mattered. Battle School would not take him with such an
injury.
Then she saw the adoration in the eyes of the children, the way they
called him Papa and looked to him for approval. Few adult men were good
fathers. This boy of -- what, eleven? twelve? -- had already learned to be
an extraordinarily good father. Protector, provider, king, god to his little
ones. Even as ye do it unto the least of these, ye have done it unto me.
Christ had a special place deep in his heart for this boy Achilles. So she
would test him, and maybe the leg could be corrected; or, failing that,
she could surely find a place for him in some good school in one of the
cities of the Netherlands -- pardon, the International Territory -- that was
not completely overwhelmed by the desperate poverty of refugees.
He refused. He refused.
"I can't leave my children," he said.
"But surely one of the others can look after them."
A girl who dressed as a boy spoke up. "I can!"
But it was obvious she could not -- she was too small herself.
Achilles was right. His children depended on him, and to leave them would be
irresponsible. The reason she was here was because he was civilized;
civilized men do not leave their children.
"Then I will come to you," she said. "After you eat, take me where you
spend your days, and let me teach you all in a little school. Only for a few
days, but that would be good, wouldn't it?"
It *would* be good. It had been a long time since Sister Carlotta had
actually taught a group of children. And never had she been given such a
class as this. Just when her work had begun to seem futile even to her,
God gave her such a chance. It might even be a miracle. Wasn't it the
business of Christ to make the lame walk? If Achilles did well on the tests,
then surely God would let the leg also be fixed, would let it be within the
reach of medicine.
"School's good," said Achilles. "None of these little ones can read."
Sister Carlotta knew, of course, that if Achilles could read, he
certainly couldn't do it well.
But for some reason, perhaps some almost unnoticeable movement, when
Achilles said that none of the little ones could read, the smallest of
them all, the one called Bean, caught her eye. She looked at him, into
eyes with sparks in them like distant campfires in the darkest night, and
she knew that *he* knew how to read. She knew, without knowing how, that
it was not Achilles at all, that it was this little one that God had brought
her here to find.
She shook off the feeling. It was Achilles who was the civilizer,
doing the work of Christ. It was the leader that the I.F. would want, not
the weakest and smallest of the disciples.
***
Bean stayed as quiet as possible during the school sessions, never
speaking up and never giving an answer even when Sister Carlotta tried to
insist. He knew that it wouldn't be good for him to let anyone know that
he could already read and do numbers, nor that he could understand every
language spoken in the street, picking up new languages the way other
children picked up stones. Whatever Sister Carlotta was doing, whatever
gifts she had to bestow, if it ever seemed to the other children that Bean
was trying to show them up, trying to get ahead of them, he knew that he
would not be back for another day of school. And even though she mostly
taught things he already knew how to do, in her conversation there were many
hints of a wider world, of great knowledge and wisdom. No adult had ever
taken the time to speak to them like this, and he luxuriated in the sound of
high language well spoken. When she taught it was in I.F. Common, of
course, that being the language of the street, but since many of the
children had also learned Dutch and some were even native Dutch speakers,
she would often explain hard points in that language. When she was
frustrated though, and muttered under her breath, that was in Spanish, the
language of the merchants of Jonker Frans Straat, and he tried to piece
together the meanings of new words from her muttering. Her knowledge was a
banquet, and if he remained quiet enough, he would be able to stay and
feast.
School had only been going for a week, however, when he made a mistake.
She passed out papers to them, and they had writing on them. Bean read
his paper at once. It was a "Pre-Test" and the instructions said to circle
the right answers to each question. So he began circling answers and was
halfway down the page when he realized that the entire group had fallen
silent.
They were all looking at him, because Sister Carlotta was looking at
him.
"What are you doing, Bean?" she asked. "I haven't even told you what
to do yet. Please give me your paper."
Stupid, inattentive, careless -- if you die for this, Bean, you
deserve it.
He handed her the paper.
She looked at it, then looked back at him very closely. "Finish it," she
said.
He took the paper back from her hand. His pencil hovered over the page.
He pretended to be struggling with the answer.
"You did the first fifteen in about a minute and a half," said Sister
Carlotta. "Please don't expect me to believe that you're suddenly having a
hard time with the next question." Her voice was dry and sarcastic.
"I can't do it," he said. "I was just playing anyway."
"Don't lie to me," said Carlotta. "Do the rest."
He gave up and did them all. It didn't take long. They were easy. He
handed her the paper.
She glanced over it and said nothing. "I hope the rest of you will
wait until I finish the instructions and read you the questions. If you
try to guess at what the hard words are, you'll get all the answers wrong.
"
Then she proceeded to read each question and all the possible answers
out loud. Only then could the other children set their marks on the papers.
Sister Carlotta didn't say another thing to call attention to Bean after
that, but the damage was done. As soon as school was over, Sergeant came
over to Bean. "So you can read," he said.
Bean shrugged.
"You been lying to us," said Sergeant.
"Never said I couldn't."
"Showed us all up. How come you didn't teach us?"
Because I was trying to survive, Bean said silently. Because I didn't
want to remind Achilles that I was the smart one who thought up the original
plan that got him this family. If he remembers that, he'll also remember
who it was who told Poke to kill him.
The only answer he actually gave was a shrug.
"Don't like it when somebody holds out on us."
Sergeant nudged him with a foot.
Bean did not have to be given a map. He got up and jogged away from
the group. School was out for him. Maybe breakfast, too. He'd have to wait
till morning to find that out.
He spent the afternoon alone on the streets. He had to be careful. As
the smallest and least important of Achilles' family, he might be
overlooked. But it was more likely that those who hated Achilles would
have taken special notice of Bean as one of the most memorable. They might
take it into their heads that killing Bean or beating him to paste and
leaving him would make a dandy warning to Achilles that he was still
resented, even though life was better for everybody.
Bean knew there were plenty of bullies who felt that way. Especially the
ones who weren't able to maintain a family, because they kept being too
mean with the little children. The little ones learned quickly that when a
papa got too nasty, they could punish him by leaving him alone at
breakfast and attaching themselves to some other family. They would eat
before him. They would have someone else's protection from him. He would eat
last. If they ran out of food, he would get nothing, and Helga wouldn't
even mind, because he wasn't a papa, he wasn't watching out for little ones.
So those bullies, those marginal ones, they hated the way things worked
these days, and they didn't forget that it was Achilles who had changed it
all. Nor could they go to some other kitchen -- the word had spread among
the adults who gave out food, and now all the kitchens had a rule that
groups with little children got to be first in line. If you couldn't hold on
to a family, you could get pretty hungry. And nobody looked up to you.
Still, Bean couldn't resist trying to get close enough to some of the
other families to hear their talk. Find out how the other groups worked.
The answer was easy to learn: They didn't work all that well. Achilles
really was a good leader. That sharing of bread -- none of the other
groups did that. But there was a lot of punishing, the bully smacking kids
who didn't do what he wanted. Taking their bread away from them because they
didn't do something, or didn't do it quickly enough.
Poke had chosen right, after all. By dumb luck, or maybe she wasn't
all that stupid. Because she had picked, not just the weakest bully, the
easiest to beat, but also the smartest, the one who understood how to win
and hold the loyalty of others. All Achilles had ever needed was the chance.
Except that Achilles still didn't share her bread, and now she was
beginning to realize that this was a bad thing, not a good one. Bean could
see it in her face when she watched the others do the ritual of sharing with
Achilles. Because he got soup now -- Helga brought it to him at the door --
he took much smaller pieces, and instead of biting them off he tore them
and ate them with a smile. Poke never got that smile from him. Achilles
was never going to forgive her, and Bean could see that she was beginning to
feel the pain of that. For she loved Achilles now, too, the way the other
children did, and the way he kept her apart from the others was a kind of
cruelty.
Maybe that's enough for him, thought Bean. Maybe that's his whole
vengeance.
Bean happened to be curled up behind a newsstand when several bullies
began a conversation near him. "He's full of brag about how Achilles is
going to pay for what he did."
"Oh, right, Ulysses is going to punish him, right."
"Well, maybe not directly."
"Achilles and his stupid family will just take him apart. And this
time they won't aim for his chest. He said so, didn't he? Break open his
head and put his brains on the street, that's what Achilles'll do."
"He's still just a cripple."
"Achilles gets away with everything. Give it up."
"I'm hoping Ulysses does it. Kills him, flat out. And then none of us
take in any of his bastards. You got that? Nobody takes them in. Let them
all die. Put them all in the river."
The talk went on that way until the boys drifted away from the
newsstand.
Then Bean got up and went in search of Achilles.CHAPTER 3 -- PAYBACK
"I think I have someone for you."
"You've thought that before."
"He's a born leader. But he does not meet your physical specifications."
"Then you'll pardon me if I don't waste time on him."
"If he passes your exacting intellectual and personality requirements,
it is quite possible that for a minuscule portion of the brass button or
toilet paper budget of the I. F., his physical limitations might be
repaired."
"I never knew nuns could be sarcastic."
"I can't reach you with a ruler. Sarcasm is my last resort."
"Let me see the tests."
"I'll let you see the boy. And while we're at it, I'll let you see
another."
"Also physically limited?"
"Small. Young. But so was the Wiggin boy, I hear. And this one --
somehow on the streets he taught himself to read."
"Ah, Sister Carlotta, you help me fill the empty hours of my life."
"Keeping you out of mischief is how I serve God."
***
Bean went straight to Achilles with what he heard. It was too dangerous,
to have Ulysses out of the hospital and word going around that he meant
to get even for his humiliation.
"I thought that was all behind us," said Poke sadly. "The fighting I
mean."
"Ulysses has been in bed for all this time," said Achilles. "Even if
he knows about the changes, he hasn't had time to get how it works yet."
"So we stick together," said Sergeant. "Keep you safe."
"It might be safer for all," said Achilles, "if I disappear for a few
days. To keep you safe."
"Then how will we get in to eat?" asked one of the younger ones.
"They'll never let us in without you."
"Follow Poke," said Achilles. "Helga at the door will let you in just
the same."
"What if Ulysses gets you?" asked one of the young ones. He rubbed the
tears out of his eyes, lest he be shamed.
"Then I'll be dead," said Achilles. "I don't think he'll be content to
put me in the hospital."
The child broke down crying, which set another to wailing, and soon it
was a choir of boo-hoos, with Achilles shaking his head and laughing. "I'm
not going to die. You'll be safe if I'm out of the way, and I'll come back
after Ulysses has time to cool down and get used to the system."
Bean watched and listened in silence. He didn't think Achilles was
handling it right, but he had given the warning and his responsibility was
over. For Achilles to go into hiding was begging for trouble -- it would
be taken as a sign of weakness.
Achilles slipped away that night to go somewhere that he couldn't tell
them so that nobody could accidentally let it slip. Bean toyed with the idea
of following him to see what he really did, but realized he would be more
useful with the main group. After all, Poke would be their leader now, and
Poke was only an ordinary leader. In other words, stupid. She needed Bean,
even if she didn't know it.
That night Bean tried to keep watch, for what he did not know. At last
he did sleep, and dreamed of school, only it wasn't the sidewalk or alley
school with Sister Carlotta, it was a real school, with tables and chairs.
But in the dream Bean couldn't sit at a desk. Instead he hovered in the
air over it, and when he wanted to he flew anywhere in the room. Up to the
ceiling. Into a crevice in the wall, into a secret dark place, flying upward
and upward as it got warmer and warmer and ...
He woke in darkness. A cold breeze stirred. He needed to pee. He also
wanted to fly. Having the dream end almost made him cry out with the pain of
it. He couldn't remember ever dreaming of flying before. Why did he have to
be little, with these stubby legs to carry him from place to place?
When he was flying he could look down at everyone and see the tops of
their silly heads. He could pee or poop on them like a bird. He wouldn't
have to be afraid of them because if they got mad he could fly away and they
could never catch him.
Of course, if I could fly, everyone else could fly too and I'd still
be the smallest and slowest and they'd poop and pee on me anyway.
There was no going back to sleep. Bean could feel that in himself. He
was too frightened, and he didn't know why. He got up and went into the
alley to pee.
Poke was already there. She looked up and saw him.
"Leave me alone for a minute," she said.
"No," he said.
"Don't give me any crap, little boy," she said.
"I know you squat to pee," he said, "and I'm not looking anyway."
Glaring, she waited until he turned his back to urinate against the wall. "I
guess if you were going to tell about me you already would have," she said.
"They all know you're a girl, Poke. When you're not there, Papa Achilles
talks about you as 'she' and 'her.'"
"He's not my papa."
"So I figured," said Bean. He waited, facing the wall.
"You can turn around now." She was up and fastening her pants again.
"I'm scared of something, Poke," said Bean.
"What?"
"I don't know."
"You don't know what you're scared of?"
"That's why it's so scary."
She gave a soft, sharp laugh. "Bean, all that means is that you're
four years old. Little kids see shapes in the night. Or they don't see
shapes. Either way they're scared."
"Not me," said Bean. "When I'm scared, it's because something's wrong.
"
"Ulysses is looking to hurt Achilles, that's what."
"That wouldn't make you sad, would it?"
She glared at him. "We're eating better than ever. Everybody's happy. It
was your plan. And I never cared about being the boss."
"But you hate him," said Bean.
She hesitated. "It feels like he's always laughing at me."
"How do you know what little kids are scared of?"
"Cause I used to be one," said Poke. "And I remember."
"Ulysses isn't going to hurt Achilles," said Bean.
"I know that," said Poke.
"Because you're planning to find Achilles and protect him."
"I'm planning to stay right here and watch out for the children."
"Or else maybe you're planning to find Ulysses first and kill him."
"How? He's bigger than me. By a lot."
"You didn't come out here to pee," said Bean. "Or else your bladder's
the size of a gumball."
"You *listened*?"
Bean shrugged. "You wouldn't let me watch."
"You think too much, but you don't know enough to make sense of what's
going on."
"I think Achilles was lying to us about what he's going to do," said
Bean, "and I think you're lying to me right now."
"Get used to it," said Poke. "The world is full of liars."
"Ulysses doesn't care who he kills," said Bean. "He'd be just as happy
to kill you as Achilles."
Poke shook her head impatiently. "Ulysses is nothing. He isn't going
to hurt anybody. He's all brag."
"So why are you up?" asked Bean.
Poke shrugged.
"*You're* going to try to kill Achilles, aren't you," said Bean. "And
make it look like Ulysses did it."
She rolled her eyes. "Did you drink a big glass of stupid juice
tonight?"
"I'm smart enough to know you're lying!"
"Go back to sleep," she said. "Go back to the other children."
He regarded her for a while, and then obeyed.
Or rather, seemed to obey. He went back into the crawl space where
they slept these days, but immediately crept out the back way and
clambered up crates, drums, low walls, high walls, and finally got up onto a
low-hanging roof. He walked to the edge in time to see Poke slip out of the
alley into the street. She was going somewhere. To meet someone.
Bean slid down a pipe onto a rainbarrel, and scurried along Korte Hoog
Straat after her. He tried to be quiet, but she wasn't trying, and there
were other noises of the city, so she never heard his footfalls. He clung to
the shadows of walls, but didn't dodge around too much. It was pretty
straightforward, following her -- she only turned twice. Headed for the
river. Meeting someone.
Bean had two guesses. It was either Ulysses or Achilles. Who else did
she know, that wasn't already asleep in the nest? But then, why meet
either of them? To plead with Ulysses for Achilles' life? To heroically
offer herself in his place? Or to try to persuade Achilles to come back
and face down Ulysses instead of hiding? No, these were all things that Bean
might have thought of doing -- but Poke didn't think that far ahead.
Poke stopped in the middle of an open space on the dock at
Scheepmakershaven and looked around. Then she saw what she was looking for.
Bean strained to see. Someone waiting in a deep shadow. Bean climbed up
on a big packing crate, trying to get a better view. He heard the two voices
-- both children -- but he couldn't make out what they were saying. Whoever
it was, he was taller than Poke. But that could be either Achilles or
Ulysses.
The boy wrapped his arms around Poke and kissed her.
This was really weird. Bean had seen grownups do that plenty of times,
but what would kids do it for? Poke was nine years old. Of course there were
whores that age, but everybody knew that the johns who bought them were
perverts.
Bean had to get closer, to hear what they were saying. He dropped down
the back of the packing crate and slowly walked into the shadow of a kiosk.
They, as if to oblige him, turned to face him; in the deep shadow he was
invisible, at least if he kept still. He couldn't see them any better than
they could see him, but he could hear snatches of their conversation now.
"You promised," Poke was saying. The guy mumbled in return.
A boat passing on the river scanned a spotlight across the riverside and
showed the face of the boy Poke was with. It was Achilles.
Bean didn't want to see any more. To think he had once believed Achilles
would someday kill Poke. This thing between girls and boys was something he
just didn't get. In the midst of hate, this happens. Just when Bean was
beginning to make sense of the world.
He slipped away and ran up Posthoornstraat.
But he did not head back to their nest in the crawlspace, not yet. For
even though he had all the answers, his heart was still jumping; something
is wrong, it was saying to him, something is wrong.
And then he remembered that Poke wasn't the only one hiding something
from him. Achilles had also been lying. Hiding something. Some plan. Was
it just this meeting with Poke? Then why all this business about hiding from
Ulysses? To take Poke as his girl, he didn't have to hide to do that. He
could do that right out in the open. Some bullies did that, the older ones.
They usually didn't take nine-year-olds, though. Was that what Achilles was
hiding?
"You promised," Poke said to Achilles there on the dock.
What did Achilles promise? That was why Poke came to him -- to pay him
for his promise. But what could Achilles be promising her that he wasn't
already giving her as part of his family? Achilles didn't have anything.
So he must have been promising not to do something. Not to kill her?
Then that would be too stupid even for Poke, to go off alone with Achilles.
Not to kill me, thought Bean. That's the promise. Not to kill me.
Only I'm not the one in danger, or not the most danger. I might have
said to kill him, but Poke was the one who knocked him down, who stood
over him. That picture must still be in Achilles' mind, all the time he must
remember it, must dream about it, him lying on the ground, a
nine-year-old girl standing over him with a cinderblock, threatening to kill
him. A cripple like him, somehow he had made it into the ranks of the
bullies. So he was tough -- but always mocked by the boys with two good
legs, the lowest-status bully. And the lowest moment of his life had to be
then, when a nine-year-old girl knocked him down and a bunch of little
kids stood over him.
Poke, he blames you most. You're the one he has to smash in order to
wipe out the agony of that memory.
Now it was clear. Everything Achilles had said today was a lie. He
wasn't hiding from Ulysses. He would face Ulysses down -- probably still
would, tomorrow. But when he faced Ulysses, Achilles would have a much
bigger grievance. You killed Poke! He would scream the accusation. Ulysses
would look so stupid and weak, denying it after all the bragging he'd done
about how he'd get even. He might even admit to killing her, just for the
brag of it. And then Achilles would strike at Ulysses and nobody would blame
him for killing the boy. It wouldn't be mere self-defense, it would be
defense of his family.
Achilles was just too damn smart. And patient. Waiting to kill Poke
until there was somebody else who could be blamed for it.
Bean ran back to warn her. As fast as his little legs would move, the
longest strides he could take. He ran forever.
There was nobody there on the dock where Poke had met Achilles.
Bean looked around helplessly. He thought of calling out, but that would
be stupid. Just because it was Poke that Achilles hated most didn't mean
that he had forgiven Bean, even if he did let Bean give him bread.
Or maybe I've gone crazy over nothing. He was hugging her, wasn't he?
She came willingly, didn't she? There are things between boys and girls that
I just don't understand. Achilles is a provider, a protector, not a
murderer. It's my mind that works that way, my mind that thinks of killing
someone who is helpless, just because he might pose a danger later. Achilles
is the good one. I'm the bad one, the criminal.
Achilles is the one who knows how to love. I'm the one who doesn't.
Bean walked to the edge of the dock and looked across the channel. The
water was covered with a low-flowing mist. On the far bank, the lights of
Boompjes Straat twinkled like Sinterklaas Day. The waves lapped like tiny
kisses against the pilings.
He looked down into the river at his feet. Something was bobbing in
the water, bumped up against the wharf.
Bean looked at it for a while, uncomprehending. But then he understood
that he had known all along what it was, he just didn't want to believe it.
It was Poke. She was dead. It was just as Bean had feared. Everybody on the
street would believe that Ulysses was guilty of the murder, even if nothing
could be proved. Bean had been right about everything. Whatever it was that
passed between boys and girls, it didn't have the power to block hatred,
vengeance for humiliation.
And as Bean stood there, looking down into the water, he realized: I
either have to tell what happened, right now, this minute, to everybody,
or I have to decide never to tell anybody, because if Achilles gets any hint
that I saw what I saw tonight, he'll kill me and not give it a second
thought. Achilles would simply say: Ulysses strikes again. Then he can
pretend to be avenging two deaths, not one, when he kills Ulysses.
No, all Bean could do was keep silence. Pretend that he hadn't seen
Poke's body floating in the river, her upturned face clearly recognizable in
the moonlight.
She was stupid. Stupid not to see through Achilles' plans, stupid to
trust him in any way, stupid not to listen to me. As stupid as I was, to
walk away instead of calling out a warning, maybe saving her life by
giving her a witness that Achilles could not hope to catch and therefore
could not silence.
She was the reason Bean was alive. She was the one who gave him a name.
She was the one who listened to his plan. And now she had died for it,
and he could have saved her. Sure, he told her at the start to kill
Achilles, but in the end she had been right to choose him -- he was the only
one of the bullies who could have figured it all out and brought it off
with such style. But Bean had also been right. Achilles was a champion liar,
and when he decided that Poke would die, he began building up the lies that
would surround the murder -- lies that would get Poke off by herself
where he could kill her without witnesses; lies to alibi himself in the eyes
of the younger kids.
I trusted him, thought Bean. I knew what he was from the start, and
yet I trusted him.
Aw, Poke, you poor, stupid, kind, decent girl. You saved me and I let
you down.
It's not *just* my fault. *She's* the one who went off alone with him.
Alone with him, trying to save my life? What a mistake, Poke, to think
of anyone but yourself!
Am I going to die from her mistakes, too?
No. I'll die from my own damn mistakes.
Not tonight, though. Achilles had not set any plan in motion to get Bean
off by himself. But from now on, when he lay awake at night, unable to
drift off, he would think about how Achilles was just waiting. Biding his
time. Till the day when Bean, too, would find himself in the river.
***
Sister Carlotta tried to be sensitive to the pain these children were
suffering, so soon after one of their own was strangled and thrown in the
river. But Poke's death was all the more reason to push forward on the
testing. Achilles had not been found yet -- with this Ulysses boy having
already struck once, it was unlikely that Achilles would come out of
hiding for some time. So Sister Carlotta had no choice but to proceed with
Bean.
At first the boy was distracted, and did poorly. Sister Carlotta could
not understand how he could fail even the elementary parts of the test, when
he was so bright he had taught himself to read on the street. It had to
be the death of Poke. So she interrupted the test and talked to him about
death, about how Poke was caught up in spirit into the presence of God and
the saints, who would care for her and make her happier than she had ever
been in life. He did not seem interested. If anything, he did worse as
they began the next phase of the test.
Well, if compassion didn't work, sternness might.
"Don't you understand what this test is for, Bean?" she asked.
"No," he said. The tone of his voice added the unmistakable idea "and
I don't care."
"All you know about is the life of the street. But the streets of
Rotterdam are only a part of a great city, and Rotterdam is only one city in
a world of thousands of such cities. The whole human race, Bean, that's
what this test is about. Because the Formics --"
"The Buggers," said Bean. Like most street urchins, he sneered at
euphemism.
"They will be back, scouring the Earth, killing every living soul.
This test is to see if you are one of the children who will be taken to
Battle School and trained to be a commander of the forces that will try to
stop them. This test is about saving the world, Bean."
For the first time since the test began, Bean turned his full
attention to her. "Where is Battle School?"
"In an orbiting platform in space," she said. "If you do well enough
on this test, you get to be a spaceman!"
There was no childlike eagerness in his face. Only hard calculation.
"I've been doing real bad so far, haven't I," he said.
"The test results so far show that you're too stupid to walk and breathe
at the same time."
"Can I start over?"
"I have another version of the tests, yes," said Sister Carlotta.
"Do it."
As she brought out the alternate set, she smiled at him, tried to
relax him again. "So you want to be a spaceman, is that it? Or is it the
idea of being part of the International Fleet?"
He ignored her.
This time through the test, he finished everything, even though the
tests were designed not to be finished in the allotted time. His scores were
not perfect, but they were close. So close that nobody would believe the
results.
So she gave him yet another battery of tests, this one designed for
older children -- the standard tests, in fact, that six-year-olds took
when being considered for Battle School at the normal age. He did not do
as well on these; there were too many experiences he had not had yet, to
be able to understand the content of some of the questions. But he still did
remarkably well. Better than any student she had ever tested.
And to think she had thought it was Achilles who had the real potential.
This little one, this infant, really -- he was astonishing. No one would
believe she had found him on the streets, living at the starvation level.
A suspicion crept into her mind, and when the second test ended and
she recorded the scores and set them aside, she leaned back in her chair and
smiled at bleary-eyed little Bean and asked him, "Whose idea was it, this
family thing that the street children have come up with?"
"Achilles' idea," said Bean.
Sister Carlotta waited.
"His idea to call it a family, anyway," said Bean.
She still waited. Pride would bring more to the surface, if she gave him
time.
"But having a bully protect the little ones, that was my plan," said
Bean. "I told it to Poke and she thought about it and decided to try it
and she only made one mistake."
"What mistake was that?"
"She chose the wrong bully to protect us."
"You mean because he couldn't protect her from Ulysses?"
Bean laughed bitterly as tears slid down his cheeks.
"Ulysses is off somewhere bragging about what he's going to do."
Sister Carlotta knew but did not want to know. "Do you know who killed
her, then?"
"I told her to kill him. I told her he was the wrong one. I saw it in
his face, lying there on the ground, that he would never forgive her. But
he's cold. He waited so long. But he never took bread from her. That
should have told her. She shouldn't have gone off alone with him." He
began crying in earnest now. "I think she was protecting *me*. Because I
told her to kill him that first day. I think she was trying to get him not
to kill me."
Sister Carlotta tried to keep emotion out of her voice. "Do you
believe you might be in danger from Achilles?"
"I am now that I told you," he said. And then, after a moment's thought.
"I was already. He doesn't forgive. He pays back, always."
"You realize that this isn't the way Achilles seems to me, or to Hazie.
Helga, that is. To us, he seems -- civilized."
Bean looked at her like she was crazy. "Isn't that what it *means* to be
civilized? That you can *wait* to get what you want?"
"You want to get out of Rotterdam and go to Battle School so you can get
away from Achilles."
Bean nodded.
"What about the other children. Do you think they're in danger from
him?"
"No," said Bean. "He's their papa."
"But not yours. Even though he took bread from you."
"He hugged her and kissed her," said Bean. "I saw them on the dock,
and she let him kiss her and then she said something about how he promised,
and so I left, but then I realized and I ran back and it couldn't have been
long, just running for maybe six blocks, and she was dead with her eye
stabbed out, floating in the water, bumping up against the dock. He can kiss
you and kill you, if he hates you enough."
Sister Carlotta drummed her fingers on the desk. "What a quandary."
"What's a quandary?"
"I was going to test Achilles, too. I think he could get into Battle
School."
Bean's whole body tightened. "Then don't send me. Him or me."
"Do you really think ..." Her voice trailed off. "You think he'd try
to kill you there?"
"*Try?*" His voice was scornful. "Achilles doesn't just *try*."
Sister Carlotta knew that the trait Bean was speaking of, that
ruthless determination, was one of the things that they looked for in Battle
School. It might make Achilles more attractive to them than Bean. And
they could channel such murderous violence up there. Put it to good use.
But civilizing the bullies of the street had not been Achilles' idea. It
had been Bean who thought of it. Incredible, for a child so young to
conceive of it and bring it about. This child was the prize, not the one who
lived for cold vengeance. But one thing was certain. It would be wrong of
her to take them both. Though she could certainly take the other one and get
him into a school here on Earth, get him off the street. Surely Achilles
would become truly civilized then, where the desperation of the street no
longer drove children to do such hideous things to each other.
is this in my hands, when I am not fit to do it?
"Would you like to stay here, Bean, while I transmit your test results
to the people who make the decisions about Battle School? You'll be safe
here."
He looked down at his hands, nodded, then laid his head on his anus
and sobbed.
***
Achilles came back to the nest that morning. "I couldn't stay away,"
he said. "Too much could go wrong." He took them to breakfast, just like
always. But Poke and Bean weren't there.
Then Sergeant did his rounds, listening here and there, talking to other
kids, talking to an adult here and there, finding out what was happening,
anything that might be useful. It was along the Wijnhaven dock that he heard
some of the longshoremen talking about the body found in the river that
morning. A little girl. Sergeant found out where her body was being held
till the authorities arrived. He didn't shy away, he walked right up to
the body under a tarpaulin, and without asking permission from any of the
others standing there, he pulled it back and looked at her.
"What are you doing, boy!"
"Her name is Poke," he said.
"You know her? Do you know who might have killed her?"
"A boy named Ulysses, that's who killed her," said Sergeant. Then he
dropped the tarp and his rounds were over. Achilles had to know that his
fears had been justified, that Ulysses was taking out anybody he could
from the family.
"We've got no choice but to kill him," said Sergeant.
"There's been enough bloodshed," said Achilles. "But I'm afraid you're
right."
Some of the younger children were crying. One of them explained, "Poke
fed me when I was going to die."
"Shut up," said Sergeant. "We're eating better now than we ever did when
Poke was boss."
Achilles put a hand on Sergeant's arm, to still him. "Poke did the
best a crew boss could do. And she's the one who got me into the family.
So in a way, anything I get for you, she got for you."
Everyone nodded solemnly at that.
A kid asked, "You think Ulysses got Bean, too?"
"Big loss if he did," said Sergeant.
"Any loss to my family is a big loss," said Achilles. "But there'll be
no more. Ulysses will either leave the city, now, or he's dead. Put the word
out, Sergeant. Let it be known on the street that the challenge stands.
Ulysses doesn't eat in any kitchen in town, until he faces me. That's what
he decided for himself, when he chose to put a knife in Poke's eye."
Sergeant saluted him and took off at a run. The picture of
businesslike obedience.
Except that as he ran, he, too, was crying. For he had not told anyone
how Poke died, how her eye was a bloody wound. Maybe Achilles knew some
other way, maybe he had already heard but didn't mention it till Sergeant
came back with the news. Maybe maybe. Sergeant knew the truth. Ulysses
didn't raise his hand against anybody. Achilles did it. Just as Bean
warned in the beginning. Achilles would never forgive Poke for beating him.
He killed her now because Ulysses would get blamed for it. And then sat
there talking about how good she was and how they should all be grateful
to her and everything Achilles got for them, it was really Poke who got it.
So Bean was right all along. About everything. Achilles might be a
good papa to the family, but he was also a killer, and he never forgives.
Poke knew that, though. Bean warned her, and she knew it, but she
chose Achilles for their papa anyway. Chose him and then died for it. She
was like Jesus that Helga preached about in her kitchen while they ate.
She died for her people. And Achilles, he was like God. He made people pay
for their sins no matter what they did.
The important thing is, stay on the good side of God. That's what
Helga teaches, isn't it? Stay right with God.
I'll stay right with Achilles. I'll honor my papa, that's for sure, so I
can stay alive until I'm old enough to go out on my own.
As for Bean, well, he was smart, but not smart enough to stay alive, and
if you're not smart enough to stay alive, then you're better off dead.
By the time Sergeant got to his first corner to spread the word about
Achilles's ban on Ulysses from any kitchen in town, he was through crying.
Grief was done. This was about survival now. Even though Sergeant knew
Ulysses hadn't killed anybody, he meant to, and it was still important for
the family's safety that he die. Poke's death provided a good excuse to
demand that the rest of the papas stand back and let Achilles deal with him.
When it was all over, Achilles would be the leader among all the papas of
Rotterdam. And Sergeant would stand beside him, knowing the secret of his
vengeance and telling no one, because that's how Sergeant, that's how the
family, that's how all the urchins of Rotterdam would survive.CHAPTER 4 --
MEMORIES
"I was mistaken about the first one. He tests well, but his character is
not well suited to Battle School."
"I don't see that on the tests you've shown me."
"He's very sharp. He gives the right answers, but they aren't true."
"And what test did you use to determine this?"
"He committed murder."
"Well, that is a drawback. And the other one? What am I supposed to do
with so young a child? A fish this small I would generally throw back into
the stream."
"Teach him. Feed him. He'll grow."
"He doesn't even have a name."
"Yes he does."
"Bean? That isn't a name, it's a joke."
"It won't be when he's done with it."
"Keep him until he's five. Make of him what you can and show me your
results then."
"I have other children to find."
"No, Sister Carlotta, you don't. In all your years of searching, this
one is the best you've found. And there isn't time to find another. Bring
this one up to snuff, and all your work will be worth it, as far as the I.F.
is concerned."
"You frighten me, when you say there isn't time."
"I don't see why. Christians have been expecting the imminent end of the
world for millennia."
"But it keeps not ending."
"So far, so good."
***
At first all Bean cared about was the food. There was enough of it. He
ate everything they put before him. He ate until he was full -- that most
miraculous of words, which till now had had no meaning for him. He ate until
he was stuffed. He ate until he was sick. He ate so often that he had bowel
movements every day, sometimes twice a day. He laughed about it to Sister
Carlotta. "All I do is eat and poop!" he said.
"Like any beast of the forest," said the nun. "It's time for you to
begin to earn that food."
She was already teaching him, of course, daily lessons in reading and
arithmetic, bringing him "up to level," though what level she had in mind,
she never specified. She also gave him time to draw, and there were sessions
where she had him sit there and try to remember every detail about his
earliest memories. The clean place in particular fascinated her. But there
were limits to memory. He was very small then, and had very little language.
Everything was a mystery. He did remember climbing over the railing
around his bed and falling to the floor. He didn't walk well at the time.
Crawling was easier, but he liked walking because that's what the big people
did. He clung to objects and leaned on walls and made good progress on
two feet, only crawling when he had to cross an open space.
"You must have been eight or nine months old," Sister Carlotta said.
"Most people don't remember that far back."
"I remember that everybody was upset. That's why I climbed out of bed.
All the children were in trouble."
"All the children?"
"The little ones like me. And the bigger ones. Some of the grownups came
in and looked at us and cried."
"Why?"
"Bad things, that's all. I knew it was a bad thing coming and I knew
it would happen to all of us who were in the beds. So I climbed out. I
wasn't the first. I don't know what happened to the others. I heard the
grownups yelling and getting all upset when they found the empty beds. I hid
from them. They didn't find me. Maybe they found the others, maybe they
didn't. All I know is when I came out all the beds were empty and the room
was very dark except a lighted sign that said *exit*."
"You could read then?" She sounded skeptical.
"When I *could* read, I remembered that those were the letters on the
sign," said Bean. "They were the only letters I saw back then. Of course I
remembered them."
"So you were alone and the beds were empty and the room was dark."
"They came back. I heard them talking. I didn't understand most of the
words. I hid again. And this time when I came out, even the beds were gone.
Instead, there were desks and cabinets. An office. And no, I didn't know
what an office was then, either, but now I do know what an office is and I
remember that's what the rooms had all become. Offices. People came in
during the day and worked there, only a few at first but my hiding place
turned out not to be so good, when people were working there. And I was
hungry."
"Where did you hide?"
"Come on, you know. Don't you?"
"If I knew, I wouldn't ask."
"You saw the way I acted when you showed me the toilet."
"You hid inside the toilet?"
"The tank on the back. It was hard to get the lid up. And it wasn't
comfortable in there. I didn't know what it was for. But people started
using it and the water rose and fell and the pieces moved and it scared me.
And like I said, I was hungry. Plenty to drink, except that I peed in it
myself. My diaper was so waterlogged it fell off my butt. I was naked."
"Bean, do you understand what you're telling me? That you were doing all
this before you were a year old?"
"You're the one who said how old I was," said Bean. "I didn't know about
ages then. You told me to remember. The more I tell you, the more comes
back to me. But if you don't believe me ..."
"I just ... I do believe you. But who were the other children? What
was the place where you lived, that clean place? Who were those grownups?
Why did they take away the other children? Something illegal was going on,
that's certain."
"Whatever," said Bean. "I was just glad to get out of the toilet."
"But you were naked, you said. And you left the place?"
"No, I got found. I came out of the toilet and a grownup found me."
"What happened?"
"He took me home. That's how I got clothing. I called them clothings
then."
"You were talking."
"Some."
"And this grownup took you home and bought you clothing."
"I think he was a janitor. I know more about jobs now and I think that's
what he was. It was night when he worked, and he didn't wear a uniform like
a guard."
"What happened?"
"That's when I first found out about legal and illegal. It wasn't
legal for him to have a child. I heard him yelling at this woman about me
and most of it I didn't understand, but at the end I knew he had lost and
she had won, and he started talking to me about how I had to go away, and so
I went."
"He just turned you loose in the streets?"
"No, I left. I think now he was going to have to give me to somebody
else, and it sounded scary, so I left before he could do it. But I wasn't
naked or hungry anymore. He was nice. After I left I bet he didn't have
any more trouble."
"And that's when you started living on the streets."
"Sort of. A couple of places I found, they fed me. But every time, other
kids, big ones, would see that I was getting fed and they'd come shouting
and begging and the people would stop feeding me or the bigger kids would
shove me out of the way or take the food right out of my hands. I was
scared. One time a big kid got so mad at me for eating that he put a stick
down my throat and made me throw up what I just ate, right on the street. He
even tried to eat it but he couldn't, it made him try to throw up, too.
That was the scariest time. I hided all the time after that. Hid. All the
time."
"And starved."
"And watched," said Bean. "I ate some. Now and then. I didn't die."
"No, you didn't."
"I saw plenty who did. Lots of dead children. Big ones and little ones.
I kept wondering how many of them were from the clean place."
"Did you recognize any of them?"
"No. Nobody looked like they ever lived in the clean place. Everybody
looked hungry."
"Bean, thank you for telling me all this."
"You asked."
"Do you realize that there is no way you could have survived for three
years as an infant?"
"I guess that means I'm dead."
"I just... I'm saying that God must have been watching over you."
"Yeah. Well, sure. So why didn't he watch over all those dead kids?"
"He took them to his heart and loved them."
"So then he *didn't* love me?"
"No, he loved you too, he --"
"Cause if he was watching so careful, he could have given me something
to eat now and then."
"He brought me to you. He has some great purpose in mind for you, Bean.
You may not know what it is, but God didn't keep you alive so
miraculously for no reason."
Bean was tired of talking about this. She looked so happy when she
talked about God, but he hadn't figured it out yet, what God even was. It
was like, she wanted to give God credit for every good thing, but when it
was bad, then she either didn't mention God or had some reason why it was
a good thing after all. As far as Bean could see, though, the dead kids
would rather have been alive, just with more food. If God loved them so
much, and he could do whatever he wanted, then why wasn't there more food
for these kids? And if God just wanted them dead, why didn't he let them die
sooner or not even be born at all, so they didn't have to go to so much
trouble and get all excited about trying to be alive when he was just
going to take them to his heart. None of it made any sense to Bean, and
the more Sister Carlotta explained it, the less he understood it. Because if
there was somebody in charge, then he ought to be fair, and if he wasn't
fair, then why should Sister Carlotta be so happy that he was in charge?
But when he tried to say things like that to her, she got really upset
and talked even more about God and used words he didn't know and it was
better just to let her say what she wanted and not argue.
It was the reading that fascinated him. And the numbers. He loved that.
Having paper and pencil so he could actually write things, that was
really good.
And maps. She didn't teach him maps at first, but there were some on the
walls and the shapes of them fascinated him. He would go up to them and
read the little words written on them and one day he saw the name of the
river and realized that the blue was rivers and even bigger blue areas
were places with even more water than the river, and then he realized that
some of the other words were the same names that had been written on the
street signs and so he figured out that somehow this thing was a picture
of Rotterdam, and then it all made sense. Rotterdam the way it would look to
a bird, if the buildings were all invisible and the streets were all empty.
He found where the nest was, and where Poke had died, and all kinds of
other places.
When Sister Carlotta found out that he understood the map, she got
very excited. She showed him maps where Rotterdam was just a little patch of
lines, and one where it was just a dot, and one where it was too small even
to be seen, but she knew where it would be. Bean had never realized the
world was so big. Or that there were so many people.
But Sister Carlotta kept coming back to the Rotterdam map, trying to get
him to remember where things from his earliest memories were. Nothing
looked the same, though, on the map, so it wasn't easy, and it took a long
time for him to figure out where some of the places were where people had
fed him. He showed these to Sister and she made a mark right on the map,
showing each place. And after a while he realized -- all those places were
grouped in one area, but kind of strung out, as if they marked a path from
where he found Poke leading back through time to ...
To the clean place.
Only that was too hard. He had been too scared, coming out of the
clean place with the janitor. He didn't know where it was. And the truth
was, as Sister Carlotta herself said, the janitor might have lived
anywhere compared to the clean place. So all she was going to find by
following Bean's path backward was maybe the janitor's flat, or at least
where he lived three years ago. And even then, what would the janitor
know?
He would know where the clean place was, that's what he'd know. And
now Bean understood: It was very important to Sister Carlotta to find out
where Bean came from.
To find out who he really was.
Only ... he already knew who he really was. He tried to say this to her.
"I'm right here. This is who I really am. I'm not pretending."
"I know that," she said, laughing, and she hugged him, which was all
right. It felt good. Back when she first started doing it, he didn't know
what to do with his hands. She had to show him how to hug her back. He had
seen some little kids -- the ones with mamas or papas -- doing that but he
always thought they were holding on tight so they wouldn't drop off onto the
street and get lost. He didn't know that you did it just because it felt
good. Sister Carlotta's body had hard places and squishy places and it was
very strange to hug her. He thought of Poke and Achilles hugging and
kissing, but he didn't want to kiss Sister Carlotta and after he got used to
what hugging was, he didn't really want to do that either. He let her hug
him. But he didn't ever think of hugging her himself. It just didn't come
into his mind.
He knew that sometimes she hugged him instead of explaining things to
him, and he didn't like that. She didn't want to tell him why it mattered
that she find the clean place, so she hugged him and said, "Oh, you dear
thing," or "Oh, you poor boy." But that only meant that it was even more
important than she was saying, and she thought he was too stupid or ignorant
to understand if she tried to explain.
He kept trying to remember more and more, if he could, only now he
didn't tell her everything because she didn't tell *him* everything and fair
was fair. He would find the clean room himself. Without her. And then
tell her if he decided it would be good for him to have her know. Because
what if she found the wrong answer? Would she put him back on the street?
Would she keep him from going to school in the sky? Because that's what
she promised at first, only after the tests she said he did very well only
he would *not* go in the sky until he was five and maybe not even then
because it was not entirely her decision and that's when he knew that she
didn't have the power to keep her own promises. So if she found out the
wrong thing about him, she might not be able to keep *any* of her promises.
Not even the one about keeping him safe from Achilles. That's why he had to
find out on his own.
He studied the map. He pictured things in his mind. He talked to himself
as he was falling asleep, talked and thought and remembered, trying to
get the janitor's face back into his mind, and the room he lived in, and the
stairs outside where the mean lady stood to scream at him.
And one day, when he thought he had remembered enough, Bean went to
the toilet -- he liked the toilets, he liked to make them flush even
though it scared him to see things disappear like that -- and instead of
coming back to Sister Carlotta's teaching place, he went the other way
down the corridor and went right out the door onto the street and no one
tried to stop him.
That's when he realized his mistake, though. He had been so busy
trying to remember the janitor's place that it never occurred to him that he
had no idea where *this* place was on the map. And it wasn't in a part of
town that he knew. In fact, it hardly seemed like the same world. Instead of
the street being full of people walking and pushing carts and riding
bikes or skating to get from one place to another, the streets were almost
empty, and there were cars parked everywhere. Not a single store, either.
All houses and offices, or houses made into offices with little signs out
front. The only building that was different was the very one he had just
come out of. It was blocky and square and bigger than the others, but it had
no sign out in front of it at all.
He knew where he was going, but he didn't know how to get there from
here. And Sister Carlotta would start looking for him soon.
His first thought was to hide, but then he remembered that she knew
all about his story of hiding in the clean place, so she would also think of
hiding and she would look for him in a hiding place close to the big
building.
So he ran. It surprised him how strong he was now. It felt like he could
run as fast as a bird flying, and he didn't get tired, he could run
forever. All the way to the corner and around it onto another street.
Then down another street, and another, until he would have been lost
except he started out lost and when you start out completely lost, it's hard
to get loster. As he walked and trotted and jogged and ran up and down
streets and alleys, he realized that all he had to do was find a canal or
a stream and it would lead him to the river or to a place that he
recognized. So the first bridge that went over water, he saw which way the
water flowed and chose streets that would keep him close. It wasn't as if he
knew where he was yet, but at least he was following a plan.
It worked. He came to the river and walked along it until he recognized,
off in the distance and partly around a bend in the river, Maasboulevard,
which led to the place where Poke was killed.
The bend in the river -- he knew it from the map. He knew where all of
Sister Carlotta's marks had been. He knew that he had to go through the
place where he used to live on the streets in order to get past them and
closer to the area where the janitor might have lived. And that wouldn't
be easy, because he would be known there, and Sister Carlotta might even
have the cops looking for him and they would look there because that's where
all the street urchins were and they would expect him to become a street
urchin again.
What they were forgetting was that Bean wasn't hungry anymore. And since
he wasn't hungry, he wasn't in a hurry.
He walked the long way around. Far from the river, far from the busy
part of town where the urchins were. Whenever the streets started looking
crowded he would widen his circle and stay away from the busy places. He
took the rest of that day and most of the next making such a wide circle
that for a while he was not in Rotterdam anymore at all, and he saw some
of the countryside, just like the pictures -- farmland and the roads built
up higher than the land around them. Sister Carlotta had explained to him
once that most of the farmland was lower than the level of the sea, and
great dikes were the only thing keeping the sea from rushing back onto the
land and covering it. But Bean knew that he would never get close to any
of the big dikes. Not by walking, anyway.
He drifted back into town now, into the Schiebroek district, and late in
the afternoon of the second day he recognized the name of Rindijk Straat
and soon found a cross street whose name he knew, a language he didn't
understand. Now he could read the sign above the restaurant and realized
that it was Armenian and that's probably what the woman had been speaking.
Which way had he walked to come here? He had smelled the food when he
was walking along ... here? He walked a little way up, a little way down the
street, turning and turning to reorient himself.
"What are you doing here, fatso?"
It was two kids, maybe eight years old. Belligerent but not bullies.
Probably part of a crew. No, part of a family, now that Achilles had changed
everything. If the changes had spread to this part of town.
"I'm supposed to meet my papa here," said Bean.
"And who's your papa?"
Bean wasn't sure whether they took the word "papa" to mean his father or
the papa of his "family." He took the chance, though, of saying "Achilles."
They scoffed at the idea. "He's way down by the river, why would he meet
a fatso like you clear up here?"
But their derision was not important -- what mattered was that Achilles'
reputation had spread this far through the city.
"I don't have to explain his business to you," said Bean. "And all the
kids in Achilles' family are fat like me. That's how well we eat."
"Are they all short like you?"
"I used to be taller, but I asked too many questions," said Bean,
pushing past them and walking across Rozenlaan toward the area where the
janitor's flat seemed likeliest to be.
They didn't follow him. Such was the magic of Achilles' name -- or
perhaps it was just Bean's utter confidence, paying them no notice as if
he had nothing to fear from them.
Nothing looked familiar. He kept turning around and checking to see if
he recognized things when looking in the direction he might have been
going after leaving the janitor's flat. It didn't help. He wandered until it
was dark, and kept wandering even then.
Until, quite by chance, he found himself standing at the foot of a
street lamp, trying to read a sign, when a set of initials carved on the
pole caught his attention. P [heart shape] DVM, it said. He had no idea what
it meant; he had never thought of it during all his attempts to remember;
but he knew that he had seen it before. And not just once. He had seen it
several times. The janitor's flat was very close.
He turned slowly, scanning the area, and there it was: A small apartment
building with both an inside and an outside stairway.
The janitor lived on the top floor. Ground floor, first floor, second
floor, third. Bean went to the mailboxes and tried to read the names, but
they were set too high on the wall and the names were all faded, and some of
the tags were missing entirely.
Not that he ever knew the janitor's name, truth to tell. There was no
reason to think he would have recognized it even if he had been able to read
it on the mailbox.
The outside stairway did not go all the way up to the top floor. It must
have been built for a doctor's office on the first floor. And because it
was dark, the door at the top of the stairs was locked.
There was nothing to do but wait. Either he would wait all night and get
into the building through one entrance or another in the morning, or
someone would come back in the night and Bean would slip through a door
behind him.
He fell asleep and woke up, slept and woke again. He worried that a
policeman would see him and shove him away, so when he woke the second
time he abandoned all pretense of being on watch and crept under the
stairs and curled up there for the night. for the night.
He was awakened by drunken laughter. It was still dark, and beginning to
rain just a little -- not enough to start dripping off the stairs, though,
so Bean was dry. He stuck his head out to see who was laughing. It was a
man and a woman, both merry with alcohol, the man furtively pawing and
poking and pinching, the woman fending him off with halfhearted slaps.
"Can't you wait?" she said.
"No," he said.
"You're just going to fall asleep without doing anything," she said.
"Not this time," he said. Then he threw up.
She looked disgusted and walked on without him. He staggered after her.
"I feel better now," he said. "It'll be better."
"The price just went up," she said coldly. "And you brush your teeth
first. "
"Course I brush my teeth."
They were right at the front of the building now. Bean was waiting to
slip in after them.
Then he realized that he didn't have to wait. The man was the janitor
from all those years before.
Bean stepped out of the shadows. "Thanks for bringing him home," he said
to the woman.
They both looked at him in surprise.
"Who are you?" asked the janitor.
Bean looked at the woman and rolled his eyes. "He's not *that* drunk,
I hope," said Bean. To the janitor he said, "Mama will not be happy to see
you come home like this again."
"Mama!" said the janitor. "Who the hell are you talking about?"
The woman gave the janitor a shove. He was so off balance that he
lurched against the wall, then slid down it to land on his buttocks on the
sidewalk. "I should have known," she said. "You bring me home to your
*wife*?"
"I'm not married," said the janitor. "This kid isn't mine."
"I'm sure you're telling the truth on both points," said the woman. "But
you better let him help you up the stairs anyway. Mama's waiting." She
started to walk away.
"What about my forty gilders?" he asked plaintively, knowing the
answer even as he asked.
She made an obscene gesture and walked on into the night.
"You little bastard," said the janitor.
"I had to talk to you alone," said Bean.
"Who the hell are you? Who's your mama?"
"That's what I'm here to find out," said Bean. "I'm the baby you found
and brought home. Three years ago."
The man looked at him in stupefaction.
Suddenly a light went on, then another. Bean and the janitor were bathed
in overlapping flashlight beams. Four policemen converged on them.
"Don't bother running, kid," said a cop. "Nor you, Mr. Fun Time."
Bean recognized Sister Carlotta's voice. "They aren't criminals," she
said. "I just need to talk to them. Up in his apartment."
"You followed me?" Bean asked her.
"I knew you were searching for him," she said. "I didn't want to
interfere until you found him. Just in case you think you were really smart,
young man, we intercepted four street thugs and two known sex offenders who
were after you."
Bean rolled his eyes. "You think I've forgotten how to deal with
them?"
Sister Carlotta shrugged. "I didn't want this to be the first time you
ever made a mistake in your life." She did have a sarcastic streak.
***
"So as I told you, there was nothing to learn from this Pablo de Noches.
He's an immigrant who lives to pay for prostitutes. Just another of the
worthless people who have gravitated here ever since the Netherlands
became international territory."
Sister Carlotta had sat patiently, waiting for the inspector to wind
down his I-told-you-so speech. But when he spoke of a man's worthlessness,
she could not let the remark go unchallenged. "He took in that baby," she
said. "And fed the child and cared for him."
The inspector waved off the objection. "We needed one more street
urchin? Because that's all that people like this ever produce."
"You didn't learn *nothing* from him," Sister Carlotta said. "You
learned the location where the boy was found."
"And the people renting the building during that time are untraceable. A
company name that never existed. Nothing to go on. No way to track them
down."
"But that nothing *is* something," said Sister Carlotta. "I tell you
that these people had many children in this place, which they closed down in
a hurry, with all the children but one taken away. You tell me that the
company was a false name and can't be traced. So now, in your experience,
doesn't that tell you a great deal about what was going on in that
building?"
The inspector shrugged. "Of course. It was obviously an organ farm."
Tears came to Sister Carlotta's eyes. "And that is the only
possibility?"
"A lot of defective babies are born to rich families," said the
inspector. "There is an illegal market in infant and toddler organs. We
close down the organ farms whenever we find out where they are. Perhaps we
were getting close to this organ farm and they got wind of it and closed
up shop. But there is no paper in the department on any organ farm that we
actually found at that time. So perhaps they closed down for another reason.
Still, nothing."
Patiently, Sister Carlotta ignored his inability to realize how valuable
this information was. "Where do the babies come from?"
The inspector looked at her blankly. As if he thought she was asking him
to explain the facts of life.
"The organ farm," she said. "Where do they get the babies?"
The inspector shrugged. "Late-term abortions, usually. Some
arrangement with the clinics, a kickback. That sort of thing."
"And that's the only source?"
"Well, I don't know. Kidnappings? I don't think that could be much of
a factor, there aren't *that* many babies leaking through the security
systems in the hospitals. People selling babies? It's been heard of, yes.
Poor refugees arrive with eight children, and then a few years later they
have only six, and they cry about the ones who died but who can prove
anything? But nothing you can trace."
"The reason I'm asking," said Sister Carlotta, "is that this child is
unusual. *Extremely* unusual."
"Three arms?" asked the inspector.
"Brilliant. Precocious. He escaped from this place before he was a
year old. Before he could walk."
The inspector thought about that for a few moments. "He *crawled* away?"
"He hid in a toilet tank."
"He got the lid up before he was a year old?"
"He said it was hard to lift."
"No, it was probably cheap plastic, not porcelain. You know how these
institutional plumbing fixtures are."
"You can see, though, why I want to know about the child's parentage.
Some miraculous combination of parents."
The inspector shrugged. "Some children are born smart."
"But there is a hereditary component in this, inspector. A child like
this must have ... remarkable parents. Parents likely to be prominent
because of the brilliance of their own minds."
"Maybe. Maybe not," said the inspector. "I mean, some of these refugees,
they might be brilliant, but they're caught up in desperate times. To
save the other children, maybe they sell a baby. That's even a *smart* thing
to do. It doesn't rule out refugees as the parents of this brilliant boy
you have. "
"I suppose that's possible," said Sister Carlotta.
"It's the most information you'll ever have. Because this Pablo de
Noches, he knows nothing. He barely could tell me the name of the town he
came from in Spain."
"He was drunk when he was questioned," said Sister Carlotta.
"We'll question him again when he's sober," said the inspector. "We'll
let you know if we learn anything more. In the meantime, though, you'll have
to make do with what I've already told you, because there isn't anything
more."
"I know all I need to know for now," said Sister Carlotta. "Enough to
know that this child truly is a miracle, raised up by God for some great
purpose."
"I'm not Catholic," said the inspector.
"God loves you all the same," said Sister Carlotta cheerfully. PART
TWO -- LAUNCHY
CHAPTER 5 -- READY OR NOT
"Why are you giving me a five-year-old street urchin to tend?"
"You've seen the scores."
"Am I supposed to take those seriously?"
"Since the whole Battle School program is based on the reliability of
our juvenile testing program, yes, I think you should take his scores
seriously. I did a little research. No child has ever done better. Not
even your star pupil."
"It's not the validity of the tests that I doubt. It's the tester."
"Sister Carlotta is a nun. You'll never find a more honest person.
"Honest people have been known to deceive themselves. To want so
desperately, after all these years of searching, to find one -- just one
-- child whose value will be worth all that work."
"And she's found him."
"Look at the way she found him. Her first report touts this Achilles
child, and this -- this Bean, this Legume -- he's just an afterthought. Then
Achilles is gone, not another mention of him -- did he die? Wasn't she
trying to get a leg operation for him? -- and it's Haricot Vert who is now
her candidate."
"'Bean' is the name he calls himself. Rather as your Andrew Wiggin calls
himself 'Ender.'"
"He's not *my* Andrew Wiggin."
"And Bean is not Sister Carlotta's child, either. If she were inclined
to fudge the scores or administer tests unfairly, she would have pushed
other students into the program long before now, and we'd already know how
unreliable she was. She has never done that. She washes out her most hopeful
children herself, then finds some place for them on Earth or in a
non-command program. I think you're merely annoyed because you've already
decided to focus all your attention and energy on the Wiggin boy, and you
don't want any distraction."
"When did I lie down on your couch?"
"If my analysis is wrong, do forgive me."
"Of course I'll give this little one a chance. Even if I don't for one
second believe these scores."
"Not just a chance. Advance him. Test him. Challenge him. Don't let
him languish."
"You underestimate our program. We advance and test and challenge all
our students."
"But some are more equal than others."
"Some take better advantage of the program than others."
"I'll look forward to telling Sister Carlotta about your enthusiasm."
***
Sister Carlotta shed tears when she told Bean that it was time for him
to leave. Bean shed none.
"I understand that you're afraid, Bean, but don't be," she said. "You'll
be safe there, and there's so much to learn. The way you drink down
knowledge, you'll be very happy there in no time. So you won't really miss
me at all."
Bean blinked. What sign had he given that made her think he was
afraid? Or that he would miss her?
He felt none of those things. When he first met her, he might have
been prepared to feel something for her. She was kind. She fed him. She
was keeping him safe, giving him a life.
But then he found Pablo the janitor, and there was Sister Carlotta,
stopping Bean from talking to the man who had saved him long before she did.
Nor would she tell him anything that Pablo had said, or anything she had
learned about the clean place.
From that moment, trust was gone. Bean knew that whatever Sister
Carlotta was doing, it wasn't for him. She was using him. He didn't know
what for. It might even be something he would have chosen to do himself.
But she wasn't telling him the truth. She had secrets from him. The
way Achilles kept secrets.
So during the months that she was his teacher, he had grown more and
more distant from her. Everything she taught, he learned -- and much that
she didn't teach as well. He took every test she gave him, and did well; but
he showed her nothing he had learned that she hadn't taught him.
Of course life with Sister Carlotta was better than life on the street
-- he had no intention of going back. But he did not trust her. He was on
guard all the time. He was as careful as he had ever been back in Achilles's
family. Those brief days at the beginning, when he wept in front of her,
when he let go of himself and spoke freely -- that had been a mistake that
he would not repeat. Life was better, but he wasn't safe, and this wasn't
home.
Her tears were real enough, he knew. She really did love him, and
would really miss him when he left. After all, he had been a perfect child,
compliant, quick, obedient. To her, that meant he was "good." To him, it
was only a way of keeping his access to food and learning. He wasn't stupid.
Why did she assume he was afraid? Because she was afraid *for* him.
Therefore there might indeed be something to fear. He would be careful.
And why did she assume that he would miss her? Because she would miss
him, and she could not imagine that what she was feeling, he might not
feel as well. She had created an imaginary version of him. Like the games of
Let's Pretend that she tried to play with him a couple of times. Harking
back to her own childhood, no doubt, growing up in a house where there was
always enough food. Bean didn't have to pretend things in order to
exercise his imagination when he was on the street. Instead he had to
imagine his plans for how to get food, for how to insinuate himself into a
crew, for how to survive when he knew he seemed useless to everyone. He
had to imagine how and when Achilles would decide to act against him for
having advocated that Poke kill him. He had to imagine danger around every
corner, a bully ready to seize every scrap of food. Oh, he had plenty of
imagination. But he had no interest at all in playing Let's Pretend.
That was *her* game. She played it all the time. Let's pretend that Bean
is a good little boy. Let's pretend that Bean is the son that this nun
can never have for real. Let's pretend that when Bean leaves, he'll cry --
that he's not crying now because he's too afraid of this new school, this
journey into space, to let his emotions show. Let's pretend that Bean
loves me.
And when he understood this, he made a decision: It will do no harm to
me if she believes all this. And she wants very much to believe it. So why
not give it to her? After all, Poke let me stay with the crew even though
she didn't need me, because it would do no harm. It's the kind of thing Poke
would do.
So Bean slid off his chair, walked around the table to Sister Carlotta,
and put his arms as far around her as they would reach. She gathered him up
onto her lap and held him tight, her tears flowing into his hair. He
hoped her nose wasn't running. But he clung to her as long as she clung to
him, letting go only when she let go of him. It was what she wanted from
him, the only payment that she had ever asked of him. For all the meals, the
lessons, the books, the language, for his future, he owed her no less
than to join her in this game of Let's Pretend.
Then the moment passed. He slid off her lap. She dabbed at her eyes.
Then she rose, took his hand, and led him out to the waiting soldiers, to
the waiting car.
As he approached the car, the uniformed men loomed over him. It was
not the grey uniform of the I.T. police, those kickers of children, those
wielders of sticks. Rather it was the sky blue of the International Fleet
that they wore, a cleaner look, and the people who gathered around to
watch showed no fear, but rather admiration. This was the uniform of distant
power, of safety for humanity, the uniform on which all hope depended. This
was the service he was about to join.
But he was so small, and as they looked down at him he *was* afraid
after all, and clung more tightly to Sister Carlotta's hand. Was he going to
become one of them? Was he going to be a man in such a uniform, with such
admiration directed at him? Then why was he afraid?
I'm afraid, Bean thought, because I don't see how I can ever be so tall.
One of the soldiers bent down to him, to lift him into the car. Bean
glared up at him, defying him to dare such a thing. "I can do it," he said.
The soldier nodded slightly, and stood upright again. Bean hooked his
leg up onto the running board of the car and hoisted himself in. It was high
off the ground, and the seat he held to was slick and offered scant
purchase to his hands. But he made it, and positioned himself in the
middle of the back seat, the only position where he could see between the
front seats and have some idea of where the car would be going.
One of the soldiers got into the driver's seat. Bean expected the
other to get into the back seat beside Bean, and anticipated an argument
about whether Bean could sit in the middle or not. Instead, he got into
the front on the other side. Bean was alone in back.
He looked out the side window at Sister Carlotta. She was still
dabbing at her eyes with a handkerchief. She gave him a little wave. He
waved back. She sobbed a little. The car glided forward along the magnetic
track in the road. Soon they were outside the city, gliding through the
countryside at a hundred and fifty kilometers an hour. Ahead was the
Amsterdam airport, one of only three in Europe that could launch one of
the shuttles that could fly into orbit. Bean was through with Rotterdam. For
the time being, at least, he was through with Earth.
***
Since Bean had never flown on an airplane, he did not understand how
different the shuttle was, though that seemed to be all that the other
boys could talk about at first. I thought it would be bigger. Doesn't it
take off straight up? That was the old shuttle, stupid. There aren't any
tray tables! That's cause in null-G you can't set anything down anyway,
bonehead.
To Bean, the sky was the sky, and all he'd ever cared about was
whether it was going to rain or snow or blow or burn. Going up into space
did not seem any more strange to him than going up to the clouds.
What fascinated him were the other children. Boys, most of them, and all
older than him. Definitely all larger. Some of them looked at him oddly,
and behind him he heard one whisper, "Is he a kid or a doll?" But snide
remarks about his size and his age were nothing new to him. In fact, what
surprised him was that there was only the one remark, and it was whispered.
The kids themselves fascinated him. They were all so fat, so soft. Their
bodies were like pillows, their cheeks full, their hair thick, their
clothes well fitted. Bean knew, of course, that he had more fat on him now
than at any time since he left the clean place, but he didn't see himself,
he only saw them, and couldn't help comparing them to the kids on the
street. Sergeant could take any of them apart. Achilles could ... well, no
use thinking about Achilles.
Bean tried to imagine them lining up outside a charity kitchen. Or
scrounging for candy wrappers to lick. What a joke. They had never missed
a meal in their lives. Bean wanted to punch them all so hard in the
stomach that they would puke up everything they ate that day. Let them
feel some pain there in their gut, that gnawing hunger. And then let them
feel it again the next day, and the next hour, morning and night, waking and
sleeping, the constant weakness fluttering just inside your throat, the
faintness behind your eyes, the headache, the dizziness, the swelling of
your joints, the distension of your belly, the thinning of your muscles
until you barely have strength to stand. These children had never looked
death in the face and then chosen to live anyway. They were confident.
They were unwary.
These children are no match for me.
And, with just as much certainty: I will never catch up to them. They'll
always be bigger, stronger, quicker, healthier. Happier. They talked to
each other boastfully, spoke wistfully of home, mocked the children who
had failed to qualify to come with them, pretended to have inside
knowledge about how things really were in Battle School. Bean said nothing.
Just listened, watched them maneuver, some of them determined to assert
their place in the hierarchy, others quieter because they knew their place
would be lower down; a handful relaxed, unworried, because they had never
had to worry about the pecking order, having been always at the top of it. A
part of Bean wanted to engage in the contest and win it, clawing his way to
the top of the hill. Another part of him disdained the whole group of them.
What would it mean, really, to be top dog in this mangy pack?
Then he glanced down at his small hands, and at the hands of the boy
sitting next to him.
I really do look like a doll compared to the rest of them.
Some of the kids were complaining about how hungry they were. There
was a strict rule against eating for twenty-four hours before the shuttle
flight, and most of these kids had never gone so long without eating. For
Bean, twenty-four hours without food was barely noticeable. In his crew, you
didn't worry about hunger until the second week.
The shuttle took off, just like any airplane, though it had a long, long
runway to get it up to speed, it was so heavy. Bean was surprised at the
motion of the plane, the way it charged forward yet seemed to hold still,
the way it rocked a little and sometimes bumped, as if it were rolling
over irregularities in an invisible road.
When they got up to a high altitude, they rendezvoused with two fuel
planes, in order to take on the rest of the rocket fuel needed to achieve
escape velocity. The plane could never have lifted off the ground with
that much fuel on board.
During the refueling, a man emerged from the control cabin and stood
at the front of the rows of seats. His sky blue uniform was crisp and
perfect, and his smile looked every bit as starched and pressed and
unstainable as his clothes.
"My dear darling little children," he said. "Some of you apparently
can't read yet. Your seat harnesses are to remain in place throughout the
entire flight. Why are so many of them unfastened? Are you going somewhere?"
Lots of little clicks answered him like scattered applause.
"And let me also warn you that no matter how annoying or enticing some
other child might be, keep your hands to yourself. You should keep in mind
that the children around you scored every bit as high as you did on every
test you took, and some of them scored higher."
Bean thought: That's impossible. Somebody here had to have the highest
score.
A boy across the aisle apparently had the same thought. "Right," he said
sarcastically.
"I was making a point, but I'm willing to digress," said the man.
"Please, share with us the thought that so enthralled you that you could not
contain it silently within you."
The boy knew he had made a mistake, but decided to tough it out.
"Somebody here has the highest score."
The man continued looking at him, as if inviting him to continue.
Inviting him to dig himself a deeper grave, thought Bean.
"I mean, you said that everybody scored as high as everybody else, and
some scored higher, and that's just obviously not true."
The man waited some more.
"That's all I had to say."
"Feel better?" said the man.
The boy sullenly kept his silence.
Without disturbing his perfect smile, the man's tone changed, and
instead of bright sarcasm, there was now a sharp whiff of menace. "I asked
you a question, boy."
"No, I don't feel better."
"What's your name?" asked the man.
"Nero."
A couple of children who knew a little bit about history laughed at
the name. Bean knew about the emperor Nero. He did not laugh, however. He
knew that a child named Bean was wise not to laugh at other kids' names.
Besides, a name like that could be a real burden to bear. It said
something about the boy's strength or at least his defiance that he didn't
give some nickname.
Or maybe Nero was his nickname.
"Just ... Nero?" asked the man.
"Nero Boulanger."
"French? Or just hungry?"
Bean did not get the joke. Was Boulanger a name that had something to do
with food?
"Algerian."
"Nero, you are an example to all the children on this shuttle. Because
most of them are so foolish, they think it is better to keep their stupidest
thoughts to themselves. You, however, understand the profound truth that
you must reveal your stupidity openly. To hold your stupidity inside you
is to embrace it, to cling to it, to protect it. But when you expose your
stupidity, you give yourself the chance to have it caught, corrected, and
replaced with wisdom. Be brave, all of you, like Nero Boulanger, and when
you have a thought of such surpassing ignorance that you think it's actually
smart, make sure to make some noise, to let your mental limitations
squeak out some whimpering fart of a thought, so that you have a chance to
learn."
Nero grumbled something.
"Listen -- another flatulence, but this time even less articulate than
before. Tell us, Nero. Speak up. You are teaching us all by the example of
your courage, however half-assed it might be."
A couple of students laughed.
"And listen -- your fart has drawn out other farts, from people
equally stupid, for they think they are somehow superior to you, and that
they could not just as easily have been chosen to be examples of superior
intellect."
There would be no more laughter.
Bean felt a kind of dread, for he knew that somehow, this verbal
sparring, or rather this one-sided verbal assault, this torture, this public
exposure, was going to find some twisted path that led to him. He did not
know how he sensed this, for the uniformed man had not so much as glanced at
Bean, and Bean had made no sound, had done nothing to call attention to
himself. Yet he knew that he, not Nero, would end up receiving the
cruelest thrust from this man's dagger.
Then Bean realized why he was sure it would turn against him. This had
turned into a nasty little argument about whether someone had higher test
scores than anyone else on the shuttle. And Bean had assumed, for no
reason whatsoever, that he was the child with the highest scores.
Now that he had seen his own belief, he knew it was absurd. These
children were all older and had grown up with far more advantages. He had
had only Sister Carlotta as a teacher -- Sister Carlotta and, of course, the
street, though few of the things he learned *there* had shown up on the
tests. There was no way that Bean had the highest score.
Yet he still knew, with absolute certainty, that this discussion was
full of danger for him.
"I told you to speak up, Nero. I'm waiting."
"I still don't see how anything I said was stupid," said Nero.
"First, it was stupid because I have all the authority here, and you
have none, so I have the power to make your life miserable, and you have
no power to protect yourself. So how much intelligence does it take just
to keep your mouth shut and avoid calling attention to yourself? What
could be a more obvious decision to make when confronted with such a
lopsided distribution of power?"
Nero withered in his seat.
"Second, you seemed to be listening to me, not to find out useful
information, but to try to catch me in a logical fallacy. This tells us
all that you are used to being smarter than your teachers, and that you
listen to them in order to catch them making mistakes and prove how smart
you are to the other students. This is such a pointless, stupid way of
listening to teachers that it is clear you are going to waste months of
our time before you finally catch on that the only transaction that
matters is a transfer of useful information from adults who possess it to
children who do not, and that catching mistakes is a criminal misuse of
time."
Bean silently disagreed. The criminal misuse of time was pointing out
the mistakes. Catching them -- noticing them -- that was essential. If you
did not in your own mind distinguish between useful and erroneous
information, then you were not *learning* at all, you were merely
replacing ignorance with false belief, which was no improvement.
The part of the man's statement that was true, however, was about the
uselessness of speaking up. If I know that the teacher is wrong, and say
nothing, then I remain the only one who knows, and that gives me an
advantage over those who believe the teacher.
"Third," said the man, "my statement only seems to be self-contradictory
and impossible because you did not think beneath the surface of the
situation. In fact it is not necessarily true that one person has the
highest scores of everyone on this shuttle. That's because there were many
tests, physical, mental, social, and psychological, and many ways to
define 'highest' as well, since there are many ways to be physically or
socially or psychologically fit for command. Children who tested highest
on stamina may not have tested highest on strength; children who tested
highest on memory may not have tested highest on anticipatory analysis.
Children with remarkable social skills might be weaker in delay of
gratification. Are you beginning to grasp the shallowness of your thinking
that led you to your stupid and useless conclusion?"
Nero nodded.
"Let us hear the sound of your flatulence again, Nero. Be just as loud
in acknowledging your errors as you were in making them."
"I was wrong."
There was not a boy on that shuttle who would not have avowed a
preference for death to being in Nero's place at that moment. And yet Bean
felt a kind of envy as well, though he did not understand why he would
envy the victim of such torture.
"And yet," said the man, "you happen to be less wrong on this particular
shuttle flight than you would have been in any other shuttle filled with
launchies heading for Battle School. And do you know why?"
He did not choose to speak.
"Does anyone know why? Can anyone guess? I am inviting speculation."
No one accepted the invitation.
"Then let me choose a volunteer. There is a child here named --
improbable as it might sound -- 'Bean.' Would that child please speak?"
Here it comes, thought Bean. He was filled with dread; but he was also
filled with excitement, because this was what he wanted, though he did not
know why. Look at me. Talk to me, you with the power, you with the
authority.
"I'm here, sir," said Bean.
The man made a show of looking and looking, unable to see where Bean
was. Of course it was a sham -- he knew exactly where Bean was sitting
before he ever spoke. "I can't see where your voice came from. Would you
raise a hand?"
Bean immediately raised his hand. He realized, to his shame, that his
hand did not even reach to the top of the high-backed seat.
"I still can't see you," said the man, though of course he could. "I
give you permission to unstrap and stand on your seat."
Bean immediately complied, peeling off the harness and bounding to his
feet. He was barely taller than the back of the seat in front of him.
"Ah, there you are," said the man. "Bean, would you be so kind as to
speculate about why, in this shuttle, Nero comes closer to being correct
than on any other?"
"Maybe somebody here scored highest on a lot of tests."
"Not just a lot of tests, Bean. All the tests of intellect. All the
psychological tests. All the tests pertinent to command. Every one of them.
Higher than anyone else on this shuttle."
"So I was right," said the newly defiant Nero.
"No you were not," said the man. "Because that remarkable child, the one
who scored highest on all the tests related to command, happens to have
scored the very lowest on the physical tests. And do you know why?"
No one answered.
"Bean, as long as you're standing, can you speculate about why this
one child might have scored lowest on the physical tests?"
Bean knew how he had been set up. And he refused to try to hide from the
obvious answer. He would say it, even though the question was designed to
make the others detest him for answering it. After all, they would detest
him anyway, no matter who said the answer.
"Maybe he scored lowest on the physical tests because he's very, very
small."
Groans from many boys showed their disgust at his answer. At the
arrogance and vanity that it suggested. But the man in uniform only nodded
gravely.
"As should be expected from a boy of such remarkable ability, you are
exactly correct. Only this boy's unusually small stature prevented Nero from
being correct about there being one child with higher scores than everybody
else." He turned to Nero. "So close to not being a complete fool," he said.
"And yet ... even if you had been right, it would only have been by
accident. A broken clock is right two times a day. Sit down now, Bean, and
put on your harness. The refueling is over and we're about to boost."
Bean sat down. He could feel the hostility of the other children.
There was nothing he could do about that right now, and he wasn't sure
that it was a disadvantage, anyway. What mattered was the much more puzzling
question: Why did the man set him up like that? If the point was to get the
kids competing with each other, they could have passed around a list with
everyone's scores on all the tests, so they all could see where they stood.
Instead, Bean had been singled out. He was already the smallest, and knew
from experience that he was therefore a target for every mean-spirited
impulse in a bully's heart. So why did they draw this big circle around
him and all these arrows pointing at him, practically demanding that he be
the main target of everyone's fear and hate?
Draw your targets, aim your darts. I'm going to do well enough in this
school that someday I'll be the one with the authority, and then it won't
matter who likes *me*. What will matter is who *I* like.
"As you may remember," said the man, "before the first fart from the
mouthhole of Nero Bakerboy here, I was starting to make a point. I was
telling you that even though some child here may seem like a prime target
for your pathetic need to assert supremacy in a situation where you are
unsure of being recognized for the hero that you want people to think you
are, you must control yourself, and refrain from poking or pinching, jabbing
or hitting, or even making snidely provocative remarks or sniggering like
warthogs just because you think somebody is an easy target. And the reason
why you should refrain from doing this is because you don't know who in this
group is going to end up being *your* commander in the future, the
admiral when you're a mere captain. And if you think for one moment that
they will forget how you treated them now, today, then you really are a
fool. If they're good commanders, they'll use you effectively in combat no
matter how they despise you. But they don't have to be helpful to you in
advancing your career. They don't have to nurture you and bring you along.
They don't have to be kind and forgiving. Just think about that. The
people you see around you will someday be giving you orders that will decide
whether you live or die. I'd suggest you work on earning their respect, not
trying to put them down so you can show off like some schoolyard punk."
The man turned his icy smile on Bean one more time.
"And I'll bet that Bean, here, is already planning to be the admiral who
gives you all orders someday. He's even planning how he'll order *me* to
stand solitary watch on some asteroid observatory till my bones melt from
osteoporosis and I ooze around the station like an amoeba."
Bean hadn't given a moment's thought to some future contest between
him and this particular officer. He had no desire for vengeance. He wasn't
Achilles. Achilles was stupid. And this officer was stupid for thinking that
Bean would think that way. No doubt, however, the man thought Bean would be
grateful because he had just warned the others not to pick on him. But Bean
had been picked on by tougher bastards than these could possibly be; this
officer's "protection" was not needed, and it made the gulf between Bean and
the other children wider than before. If Bean could have lost a couple of
tussles, he would have been humanized, accepted perhaps. But now there would
be no tussles. No easy way to build bridges.
That was the reason for the annoyance that the man apparently saw on
Bean's face. "I've got a word for you, Bean. I don't care what you do to me.
Because there's only one enemy that matters. The Buggers. And if you can
grow up to be the admiral who can give us victory over the Buggers and
keep Earth safe for humanity, then make me eat my own guts, ass-first, and
I'll still say, Thank you, sir. The Buggers are the enemy. Not Nero. Not
Bean. Not even me. So keep your hands off each other."
He grinned again, mirthlessly.
"Besides, the last time somebody tried picking on another kid, he
ended up flying through the shuttle in null-G and got his arm broken. It's
one of the laws of strategy. Until you know that you're tougher than the
enemy, you maneuver, you don't commit to battle. Consider that your first
lesson in Battle School."
First lesson? No wonder they used this guy to tend children on the
shuttle flights instead of having him teach. If you followed *that* little
piece of wisdom, you'd be paralyzed against a vigorous enemy. Sometimes
you *have* to commit to a fight even when you're weak. You *don't* wait till
you *know* you're tougher. You *make* yourself tougher by whatever means
you can, and then you strike by surprise, you sneak up, you backstab, you
blindside, you cheat, you lie, you do whatever it takes to make sure that
you come out on top.
This guy might be real tough as the only adult on a shuttle full of
kids, but if he were a kid on the streets of Rotterdam, he'd "maneuver"
himself into starvation in a month. If he wasn't killed before that just for
talking like he thought his piss was perfume.
The man turned to head back to the control cabin.
Bean called out to him.
"What's your name?"
The man turned and fixed him with a withering stare. "Already drafting
the orders to have my balls ground to powder, Bean?"
Bean didn't answer. Just looked him in the eye.
"I'm Captain Dimak. Anything else you want to know?"
Might as well find out now as later. "Do you teach at Battle School?"
"Yes," he said. "Coming down to pick up shuttle-loads of little boys and
girls is how we get Earthside leave. Just as with you, my being on this
shuttle means my vacation is over."
The refueling planes peeled away and rose above them. No, it was their
own craft that was sinking. And the tail was sinking lower than the nose
of the shuttle.
Metal covers came down over the windows. It felt like they were
falling faster, faster ... until, with a bone-shaking roar, the rockets
fired and the shuttle began to rise again, higher, faster, faster, until
Bean felt like he was going to be pushed right through the back of his
chair. It seemed to go on forever, unchanging.
Then ... silence.
Silence, and then a wave of panic. They were falling again, but this
time there was no downward direction, just nausea and fear.
Bean closed his eyes. It didn't help. He opened them again, tried to
reorient himself. No direction provided equilibrium. But he had schooled
himself on the street not to succumb to nausea -- a lot of the food he had
to eat had already gone a little bad, and he couldn't afford to throw it up.
So he went into his anti-nausea routine -- deep breaths, distracting
himself by concentrating on wiggling his toes. And, after a surprisingly
short time, he was used to the null-G. As long as he didn't expect any
direction to be down, he was fine.
The other kids didn't have his routine, or perhaps they were more
susceptible to the sudden, relentless loss of balance. Now the reason for
the prohibition against eating before the launch became clear. There was
plenty of retching going on, but with nothing to throw up, there was no
mess, no smell.
Dimak came back into the shuttle cabin, this time standing on the
ceiling. Very cute, thought Bean. Another lecture began, this time about how
to get rid of planetside assumptions about directions and gravity. Could
these kids possibly be so stupid they needed to be told such obvious
stuff?
Bean occupied the time of the lecture by seeing how much pressure it
took to move himself around within his loosely-fitting harness. Everybody
else was big enough that the harnesses fit snugly and prevented movement.
Bean alone had room for a little maneuvering. He made the most of it. By the
time they arrived at Battle School, he was determined to have at least a
little skill at movement in null-G. He figured that in space, his survival
might someday depend on knowing just how much force it would take to move
his body, and then how much force it would take to stop. Knowing it in his
mind wasn't half so important as knowing it with his body. Analyzing
things was fine, but good reflexes could save your life.CHAPTER 6 -- ENDER'S
SHADOW
"Normally your reports on a launch group are brief. A few troublemakers,
an incident report, or -- best of all -- nothing."
"You're free to disregard any portion of my report, sir."
"Sir? My, but aren't we the prickly martinet today."
"What part of my report did you think was excessive?"
"I think this report is a love song."
"I realize that it might seem like sucking up, to use with every
launch the technique you used with Ender Wiggin --"
"You use it with every launch?"
"As you noticed yourself, sir, it has interesting results. It causes
an immediate sorting out."
"A sorting out into categories that might not otherwise exist.
Nevertheless, I accept the compliment implied by your action. But seven
pages about Bean -- really, did you actually learn that much from a response
that was primarily silent compliance?"
"That is just my point, sir. It was not compliance at all. It was -- I
was performing the experiment, but it felt as though his were the big eye
looking down the microscope, and I were the specimen on the slide."
"So he unnerved you."
"He would unnerve anyone. He's cold, sir. And yet"
"And yet hot. Yes, I read your report. Every scintillating page of it.
"
"Yes sir."
"I think you know that it is considered good advice for us not to get
crushes on our students."
"Sir?"
"In this case, however, I am delighted that you are so interested in
Bean. Because, you see, I am not. I already have the boy I think gives us
our best chance. Yet there is considerable pressure, because of Bean's
damnable faked-up test scores, to give him special attention. Very well,
he shall have it. And you shall give it to him."
"But sir ..."
"Perhaps you are unable to distinguish an order from an invitation."
"I'm only concerned that ... I think he already has a low opinion of
me."
"Good. Then he'll underestimate you. Unless you think his low opinion
might be correct."
"Compared to him, sir, we might all be a little dim."
"Close attention is your assignment. Try not to worship him."
***
All that Bean had on his mind was survival, that first day in Battle
School. No one would help him -- that had been made clear by Dimak's
little charade in the shuttle. They were setting him up to be surrounded
by ... what? Rivals at best, enemies at worst. So it was the street again.
Well, that was fine. Bean had survived on the street. And would have kept on
surviving, even if Sister Carlotta hadn't found him. Even Pablo -- Bean
might have made it even without Pablo the janitor finding him in the
toilet of the clean place.
So he watched. He listened. Everything the others learned, he had to
learn just as well, maybe better. And on top of that, he had to learn what
the others were oblivious to -- the workings of the group, the systems of
the Battle School. How teachers got on with each other. Where the power was.
Who was afraid of whom. Every group had its bosses, its suckups, its
rebels, its sheep. Every group had its strong bonds and its weak ones,
friendships and hypocrisies. Lies within lies within lies. And Bean had to
find them all, as quickly as possible, in order to learn the spaces in which
he could survive.
They were taken to their barracks, given beds, lockers, little
portable desks that were much more sophisticated than the one he had used
when studying with Sister Carlotta. Some of the kids immediately began to
play with them, trying to program them or exploring the games built into
them, but Bean had no interest in that. The computer system of Battle School
was not a person; mastering it might be helpful in the long run, but for
today it was irrelevant. What Bean needed to find out was all outside the
launchy barracks.
Which is where, soon enough, they went. They arrived in the "morning"
according to space time -- which, to the annoyance of many in Europe and
Asia, meant Florida time, since the earliest stations had been controlled
from there. For the kids, having launched from Europe, it was late
afternoon, and that meant they would have a serious time-lag problem.
Dimak explained that the cure for this was to get vigorous physical exercise
and then take a short nap -- no more than three hours -- in the early
afternoon, following which they would again have plenty of physical exercise
so they could fall asleep that night at the regular bedtime for students.
They piled out to form a line in the corridor. "Green Brown Green," said
Dimak, and showed them how those lines on the corridor walls would always
lead them back to their barracks. Bean found himself jostled out of line
several times, and ended up right at the back. He didn't care -- mere
jostling drew no blood and left no bruise, and last in line was the best
place from which to observe.
Other kids passed them in the corridor, sometimes individuals, sometimes
pairs or trios, most with brightly-colored uniforms in many different
designs. Once they passed an entire group dressed alike and wearing
helmets and carrying extravagant sidearms, jogging along with an intensity
of purpose that Bean found intriguing. They're a crew, he thought. And
they're heading off for a fight.
They weren't too intense to notice the new kids walking along the
corridor, looking up at them in awe. Immediately there were catcalls.
"Launchies!" "Fresh meat!" "Who make coc [coco] in the hall and don't
clean it up!" "They even smell stupid!" But it was all harmless banter,
older kids asserting their supremacy. It meant nothing more than that. No
real hostility. In fact it was almost affectionate. They remembered being
launchies themselves.
Some of the launchies ahead of Bean in line were resentful and called
back some vague, pathetic insults, which only caused more hooting and
derision from the older kids. Bean had seen older, bigger kids who hated
younger ones because they were competition for food, and drove them away,
not caring if they caused the little ones to die. He had felt real blows,
meant to hurt. He had seen cruelty, exploitation, molestation, murder. These
other kids didn't know love when they saw it.
What Bean wanted to know was how that crew was organized, who led it,
how he was chosen, what the crew was *for*. The fact that they had their own
uniform meant that it had official status. So that meant that the adults
were ultimately in control -- the opposite of the way crews were organized
in Rotterdam, where adults tried to break them up, where newspapers wrote
about them as criminal conspiracies instead of pathetic little leagues for
survival.
That, really, was the key. Everything the children did here was shaped
by adults. In Rotterdam, the adults were either hostile, unconcerned, or,
like Helga with her charity kitchen, ultimately powerless. So the children
could shape their own society without interference. Everything was based
on survival -- on getting enough food without getting killed or injured or
sick. Here, there were cooks and doctors, clothing and beds. Power wasn't
about access to food-it was about getting the approval of adults.
That's what those uniforms meant. Adults chose them, and children wore
them because adults somehow made it worth their while.
So the key to everything was understanding the teachers.
All this passed through Bean's mind, not so much verbally as with a
clear and almost instantaneous understanding that within that crew there was
no power at all, compared to the power of the teachers, before the
uniformed catcallers reached him. When they saw Bean, so much smaller than
any of the other kids, they broke out laughing, hooting, howling. "That
one isn't big enough to be a turd!" "I can't believe he can walk!"
"Did'ums wose um's mama?" "Is it even human?"
Bean tuned them out immediately. But he could feel the enjoyment of
the kids ahead of him in line. They had been humiliated in the shuttle;
now it was Bean's turn to be mocked. They loved it. And so did
Bean-because it meant that he was seen as less of a rival. By diminishing
him, the passing soldiers had made him just that much safer from ...
From what? What was the danger here?
For there would be danger. That he knew. There was always danger. And
since the teachers had all the power, the danger would come from them. But
Dimak had started things out by turning the other kids against him. So the
children themselves were the weapons of choice. Bean had to get to know
the other kids, not because they themselves were going to be his problem,
but because their weaknesses, their desires could be used against him by the
teachers. And, to protect himself, Bean would have to work to undercut
their hold on the other children. The only safety here was to subvert the
teachers' influence. And yet that was the greatest danger -- if he was
caught doing it.
They palmed in on a wall-mounted pad, then slid down a pole -- the first
time Bean had ever done it with a smooth shaft. In Rotterdam, all his
sliding had been on rainspouts, signposts, and lightpoles. They ended up
in a section of Battle School with higher gravity. Bean did not realize
how light they must have been on the barracks level until he felt how
heavy he was down in the gym.
"This is just a little heavier than Earth normal gravity," said Dimak.
"You have to spend at least a half-hour a day here, or your bones start to
dissolve. And you have to spend the time exercising, so you keep at peak
endurance. And that's the key -- endurance exercise, not bulking up.
You're too small for your bodies to endure that kind of training, and it
fights you here. Stamina, that's what we want."
The words meant almost nothing to the kids, but soon the trainer had
made it clear. Lots of running on treadmills, riding on cycles,
stair-stepping, pushups, situps, chinups, backups, but no weights. Some
weight equipment was there, but it was all for the use of teachers. "Your
heartrate is monitored from the moment you enter here," said the trainer.
"If you don't have your heartrate elevated within five minutes of arrival
and you don't keep it elevated for the next twenty-five minutes, it goes
on your record and I see it on my control board here."
"I get a report on it too," said Dimak. "And you go on the pig list
for everyone to see you've been lazy."
Pig list. So that's the tool they used -- shaming them in front of the
others. Stupid. As if Bean cared.
It was the monitoring board that Bean was interested in. How could
they possibly monitor their heartrates and know what they were doing,
automatically, from the moment they arrived? He almost asked the question,
until he realized the only possible answer: The uniform. It was in the
clothing. Some system of sensors. It probably told them a lot more than
heartrate. For one thing, they could certainly track every kid wherever he
was in the station, all the time. There must be hundreds and hundreds of
kids here, and there would be computers reporting the whereabouts, the
heartrates, and who could guess what other information about them. Was there
a room somewhere with teachers watching every step they took?
Or maybe it wasn't the clothes. After all, they had to palm in before
coming down here, presumably to identify themselves. So maybe there were
special sensors in this room.
Time to find out. Bean raised his hand. "Sir," he said.
"Yes?" The trainer did a doubletake on seeing Bean's size, and a smile
played around the corners of his mouth. He glanced at Dimak. Dimak did not
crack a smile or show any understanding of what the trainer was thinking.
"Is the heartrate monitor in our clothing? If we take off any part of
our clothes while we're exercising, does it --"
"You are not authorized to be out of uniform in the gym," said the
trainer. "The room is kept cold on purpose so that you will not need to
remove clothing. You will be monitored at all times."
Not really an answer, but it told him what he needed to know. The
monitoring depended on the clothes. Maybe there was an identifier in the
clothing and by palming in, they told the gym sensors which kid was
wearing which set of clothing. That would make sense.
So clothing was probably anonymous from the time you put on a clean
set until you palmed in somewhere. That was important -- it meant that it
might be possible to be untagged without being naked. Naked, Bean figured,
would probably be conspicuous around here.
They all exercised and the trainer told them which of them were not up
to the right heartrate and which of them were pushing too hard and would
fatigue themselves too soon. Bean quickly got an idea of the level he had to
work at, and then forgot about it. He'd remember by reflex, now that he
knew.
It was mealtime, then. They were alone in the mess hall -- as fresh
arrivals, they were on a separate schedule that day. The food was good and
there was a lot of it. Bean was stunned when some of the kids looked at
their portion and complained about how little there was. It was a feast!
Bean couldn't finish it. The whiners were informed by the cooks that the
quantities were all adapted to their individual dietary needs -- each
kid's portion size came up on a computer display when he palmed in upon
entering the mess hall.
So you don't eat without your palm on a pad. Important to know.
Bean soon found out that his size was going to get official attention.
When he brought his half-finished tray to the disposal unit, an electronic
chiming sound brought the on-duty nutritionist to speak to him. "It's your
first day, so we aren't going to be rigid about it. But your portions are
scientifically calibrated to meet your dietary needs, and in the future
you will finish every bit of what you are served."
Bean looked at him without a word. He had already made his decision.
If his exercise program made him hungrier, then he'd eat more. But if they
were expecting him to gorge himself, they could forget it. It would be a
simple enough matter to dump excess food onto the trays of the whiners.
They'd be happy with it, and Bean would eat only as much as his body wanted.
He remembered hunger very well, but he had lived with Sister Carlotta for
many months, and he knew to trust his own appetite. For a while he had let
her goad him into eating more than he actually was hungry for. The result
had been a sense of loginess, a harder time sleeping and a harder time
staying awake. He went back to eating only as much as his body wanted,
letting his hunger be his guide, and it kept him sharp and quick. That was
the only nutritionist he trusted. Let the whiners get sluggish.
Dimak stood after several of them had finished eating. "When you're
through, go back to the barracks. If you think you can find it. If you
have any doubt, wait for me and I'll bring the last group back myself."
The corridors were empty when Bean went out into the corridor. The other
kids palmed the wall and their green-brown-green strip turned on. Bean
watched them go. One of them turned back. "Aren't you coming?" Bean said
nothing. There was nothing to say. He was obviously standing still. It was a
stupid question. The kid turned around and jogged on down the corridor
toward the barracks.
Bean went the other way. No stripes on the wall. He knew that there
was no better time to explore than now. If he was caught out of the area
he was supposed to be in, they'd believe him if he claimed to have got lost.
The corridor sloped up both behind him and in front of him. To his
eyes it looked like he was always going uphill, and when he looked back,
it was uphill to go back the way he had come. Strange. But Dimak had already
explained that the station was a huge wheel, spinning in space so that
centrifugal force would replace gravity. That meant the main corridor on
each level was a big circle, so you'd always come back to where you started,
and "down" was always toward the outside of the circle. Bean made the
mental adjustment. It was dizzying at first, to picture himself on his
side as he walked along, but then he mentally changed the orientation so
that he imagined the station as a wheel on a cart, with him at the bottom of
it no matter how much it turned. That put the people above him upside down,
but he didn't care. Wherever he was was the bottom, and that way down
stayed down and up stayed up.
The launchies were on the mess hall level, but the older kids must not
be, because after the mess halls and the kitchens, there were only
classrooms and unmarked doors with palmpads high enough that they were
clearly not meant for children to enter. Other kids could probably reach
those pads, but not even by jumping could Bean hope to palm one. It didn't
matter. They wouldn't respond to any child's handprint, except to bring some
adult to find out what the kid thought he was doing, trying to enter a room
where he had no business.
By long habit -- or was it instinct? -- Bean regarded such barriers as
only temporary blocks. He knew how to climb over walls in Rotterdam, how
to get up on roofs. Short as he was, he still found ways to get wherever
he needed to go. Those doors would not stop him if he decided he needed to
get beyond them. He had no idea right now how he'd do it, but he had no
doubt that he would find a way. So he wasn't annoyed. He simply tucked the
information away, waiting until he thought of some way to use it.
Every few meters there was a pole for downward passage or a ladderway
for going up. To get down the pole to the gym, he had had to palm a pad. But
there seemed to be no pad on most of these. Which made sense. Most poles
and ladderways would merely let you pass between floors -- no, they called
them decks; this was the International Fleet and so everything pretended
to be a ship -- while only one pole led down to the gym, to which they
needed to control access so that it didn't get overcrowded with people
coming when they weren't scheduled. As soon as he had made sense of it, Bean
didn't have to think of it anymore. He scrambled up a ladder.
The next floor up had to be the barracks level for the older kids. Doors
were more widely spaced, and each door had an insignia on it. Using the
colors of some uniform -- no doubt based on their stripe colors, though he
doubted the older kids ever had to palm the wall to find their way around --
there was also the silhouette of an animal. Some of them he didn't
recognize, but he recognized a couple of birds, some cats, a dog, a lion.
Whatever was in use symbolically on signs in Rotterdam. No pigeon. No fly.
Only noble animals, or animals noted for courage. The dog silhouette
looked like some kind of hunting animal, very thin around the hips. Not a
mongrel.
So this is where the crews meet, and they have animal symbols, which
means they probably call themselves by animal names. Cat Crew. Or maybe Lion
Crew. And probably not Crew. Bean would soon learn what they called
themselves. He closed his eyes and tried to remember the colors and insignia
on the crew that passed and mocked him in the corridor earlier. He could
see the shape in his mind, but didn't see it on any of the doors he passed.
It didn't matter -- not worth traveling the whole corridor in search of it,
when that would only increase his risk of getting caught.
Up again. More barracks, more classrooms. How many kids in a barracks?
This place was bigger than he thought.
A soft chime sounded. Immediately, several doors opened and kids began
to pour out into the corridor. A changeover time.
At first Bean felt more secure among the big kids, because he thought he
could get lost in the crowd, the way he always did in Rotterdam. But that
habit was useless here. This wasn't a random crowd of people on their own
errands. These might be kids but they were military. They knew where
everybody was supposed to be, and Bean, in his launchy uniform, was way
out of place. Almost at once a couple of older kids stopped him.
"You don't belong on this deck," said one. At once several others
stopped to look at Bean as if he were an object washed into the street by
a storm.
"Look at the size of this one."
"Poor kid gots to sniff everybody's butt, neh?"
"Eh!"
"You're out of area, launchy."
Bean said nothing, just looked at each one as he spoke. Or she.
"What are your colors?" asked a girl.
Bean said nothing. Best excuse would be that he didn't remember, so he
couldn't very well name them now.
"He's so small he could walk between my legs without touching my --"
"Oh. shut up, Dink, that's what you said when Ender --"
"Yeah, Ender, right."
"You don't think this is the kid they --"
"Was Ender *this* small when he arrived?"
"-- been saying, he another Ender?"
"Right, like this one's going to shoot to the top of the standings."
"It wasn't Ender's fault that Bonzo wouldn't let him fire his weapon."
"But it's a fluke, that's all I'm saying --"
"This the one they talking about? One like Ender? Top scores?"
"Just get him down to the launchy level."
"Come with me," said the girl, taking him firmly by the hand.
Bean came along meekly.
"My name is Petra Arkanian," she said.
Bean said nothing.
"Come on, you may be little and you may be scared, but they don't let
you in here if you're deaf or stupid."
Bean shrugged.
"Tell me your name before I break your stubby little fingers."
"Bean," he said.
"That's not a name, that's a lousy meal."
He said nothing.
"You don't fool me," she said. "This mute thing, it's just a cover.
You came up here on purpose."
He kept his silence but it stabbed at him, that she had figured him
out so easily.
"Kids for this school, they're chosen because they're smart and
they've got initiative. So of course you wanted to explore. The thing is,
they expect it. They probably know you're doing it. So there's no point in
hiding it. What are they going to do, give you some big bad piggy points?"
So that's what the older kids thought about the pig list.
"This stubborn silence thing, it'll just piss people off. I'd forget
about it if I were you. Maybe it worked with Mommy and Daddy, but it just
makes you look stubborn and ridiculous because anything that matters, you're
going to tell anyway, so why not just talk?"
"OK," said Bean.
Now that he was complying, she didn't crow about it. The lecture worked,
so the lecture was over. "Colors?" she asked.
"Green brown green."
"Those launchy colors sound like something you'd find in a dirty toilet,
don't you think?"
So she was just another one of the stupid kids who thought it was cute
to make fun of launchies.
"It's like they designed everything to get the older kids to make fun of
the younger ones."
Or maybe she wasn't. Maybe she was just talking. She was a talker. There
weren't a lot of talkers on the streets. Not among the kids, anyway. Plenty
of them among the drunks.
"The system around here is screwed. It's like they want us to act like
little kids. Not that that's going to bother you. Hell, you're already doing
some dumb lost-little-kid act."
"Not now," he said.
"Just remember this. No matter what you do, the teachers know about it
and they already have some stupid theory about what this means about your
personality or whatever. They always find a way to use it against you, if
they want to, so you might as well not try. No doubt it's already in your
report that you took this little jaunt when you were supposed to be having
beddy-bye time and that probably tells them that you 'respond to
insecurity by seeking to be alone while exploring the limits of your new
environment.'" She used a fancy voice for the last part.
And maybe she had more voices to show off to him, but he wasn't going to
stick around to find out. Apparently she was a take-charge person and
didn't have anybody to take charge of until he came along. He wasn't
interested in becoming her project. It was all right being Sister Carlotta's
project because she could get him out of the street and into Battle School.
But what did this Petra Arkanian have to offer him?
He slid down a pole, stopped in front of the first opening, pushed out
into the corridor, ran to the next ladderway, and scooted up two decks
before emerging into another corridor and running full out. She was probably
right in what she said, but one thing was certain -- he was not going to
have her hold his hand all the way back to green-brown-green. The last thing
he needed, if he was going to hold his own in this place, was to show up
with some older kid holding his hand.
Bean was four decks above the mess level where he was supposed to be
right now. There were kids moving through here, but nowhere near as many
as the deck below. Most of the doors were unmarked, but a few stood open,
including one wide arch that opened into a game room.
Bean had seen computer games in some of the bars in Rotterdam, but
only from a distance, through the doors and between the legs of men and
women going in and out in their endless search for oblivion. He had never
seen a child playing a computer game, except on the vids in store windows.
Here it was real, with only a few players catching quick games between
classes so that each game's sounds stood out. A few kids playing solo games,
and then four of them playing a four-sided space game with a holographic
display. Bean stood back far enough not to intrude in their sightlines and
watched them play. Each of them controlled a squadron of four tiny ships,
with the goal of either wiping out all the other fleets or capturing --
but not destroying -- each player's slow-moving mothership. He learned the
rules and the terminology by listening to the four boys chatter as they
played.
The game ended by attrition, not by any cleverness -- the last boy
simply happened to be the least stupid in his use of his ships. Bean watched
as they reset the game. No one put in a coin. The games here were free.
Bean watched another game. It was just as quick as the first, as each
boy committed his ships clumsily, forgetting about whichever one was not
actively engaged. It was as if they thought of their force as one active
ship and three reserves.
Maybe the controls didn't allow anything different. Bean moved closer.
No, it was possible to set the course for one, flip to control another ship,
and another, then return to the first ship to change its course at any
time.
How did these boys get into Battle School if this was all they could
think of? Bean had never played a computer game before, but he saw at once
that any competent player could quickly win if this was the best competition
available.
"Hey, dwarf, want to play?"
One of them had noticed him. Of course the others did, too.
"Yes," said Bean.
"Well Bugger that," said the one who invited him. "Who do you think
you are, Ender Wiggin?"
They laughed and then all four of them walked away from the game,
heading for their next class. The room was empty. Class time.
Ender Wiggin. The kids in the corridor talked about him, too.
Something about Bean made these kids think of Ender Wiggin. Sometimes with
admiration, sometimes with resentment. This Ender must have beaten some
older kids at a computer game or something. And he was at the top of the
standings, that's what somebody said. Standings in what?
The kids in the same uniform, running like one crew, heading for a fight
-- that was the central fact of life here. There was one core game that
everyone played. They lived in barracks according to what team they were on.
Every kid's standings were reported so everybody else knew them. And
whatever the game was, the adults ran it.
So this was the shape of life here. And this Ender Wiggin, whoever he
was, he was at the top of it all, he led the standings.
Bean reminded people of him.
That made him a little proud, yes, but it also annoyed him. It was safer
not to be noticed. But because this other small kid had done brilliantly,
everybody who saw Bean thought of Ender and that made Bean memorable. That
would limit his freedom considerably. There was no way to disappear here, as
he had been able to disappear in crowds in Rotterdam.
Well, who cared? He couldn't be hurt now, not really. No matter what
happened, as long as he was here at Battle School he would never be hungry.
He'd always have shelter. He had made it to heaven. All he had to do was
the minimum required to not get sent home early. So who cared if people
noticed him or not? It made no difference. Let them worry about their
standings. Bean had already won the battle for survival, and after that,
no other competition mattered.
But even as he had that thought, he knew it wasn't true. Because he
did care. It wasn't enough just to survive. It never had been. Deeper than
his need for food had been his hunger for order, for finding out how
things worked, getting a grasp on the world around him. When he was
starving, of course he used what he learned in order to get himself into
Poke's crew and get her crew enough food that there would be enough to
trickle some down to him at the bottom of the pecking order. But even when
Achilles had turned them into his family and they had something to eat every
day, Bean hadn't stopped being alert, trying to understand the changes, the
dynamics in the group. Even with Sister Carlotta, he had spent a lot of
effort trying to understand why and how she had the power to do for him what
she was doing, and the basis on which she had chosen him. He had to know.
He had to have the picture of everything in his mind.
Here, too. He could have gone back to the barracks and napped. Instead,
he risked getting in trouble just to find out things that no doubt he would
have learned in the ordinary course of events.
Why did I come up here? What was I looking for?
The key. The world was full of locked doors, and he had to get his hands
on every key.
He stood still and listened. The room was nearly silent. But there was
white noise, background rumble and hiss that made it so sounds didn't
carry throughout the entire station.
With his eyes closed, he located the source of the faint rushing sound.
Eyes open, he then walked to where the vent was. An out-flowing vent with
slightly warmer air making a very slight breeze. The rushing sound was not
the hiss of air here at the vent, but rather a much louder, more distant
sound of the machinery that pumped air throughout the Battle School.
Sister Carlotta had told him that in space, there was no air, so
wherever people lived, they had to keep their ships and stations closed
tight, holding in every bit of air. And they also had to keep changing the
air, because the oxygen, she said, got used up and had to be replenished.
That's what this air system was about. It must go everywhere through the
ship.
Bean sat before the vent screen, feeling around the edges. There were no
visible screws or nails holding it on. He got his fingernails under the rim
and carefully slid his fingers around it, prying it out a little, then a
little more. His fingers now fit under the edges. He pulled straight
forward. The vent came free, and Bean toppled over backward.
Only for a moment. He set aside the screen and tried to see into the
vent. The vent duct was only about fifteen centimeters deep from front to
back. The top was solid, but the bottom was open, leading down into the duct
system.
Bean sized up the vent opening just the way he had, years before,
stood on the seat of a toilet and studied the inside of the toilet tank,
deciding whether he could fit in it. And the conclusion was the same -- it
would be cramped, it would be painful, but he could do it.
He reached an arm inside and down. He couldn't feel the bottom. But with
arms as short as his, that didn't mean much. There was no way to tell by
looking which way the duct went when it got down to the floor level. Bean
could imagine a duct leading under the floor, but that felt wrong to him.
Sister Carlotta had said that every scrap of material used to build the
station had to be hauled up from Earth or the manufacturing plants on the
moon. They wouldn't have big gaps between the decks and the ceilings below
because that would be wasted space into which precious air would have to
be pumped without anyone breathing it. No, the ductwork would be in the
outside walls. It was probably no more than fifteen centimeters deep
anywhere.
He closed his eyes and imagined an air system. Machinery making a warm
wind blow through the narrow ducts, flowing into every room, carrying
fresh breathable air everywhere.
No, that wouldn't work. There had to be a place where the air was
getting sucked in and drawn back. And if the air blew in at the outside
walls, then the intake would be ... in the corridors.
Bean got up and ran to the door of the game room. Sure enough, the
corridor's ceiling was at least twenty centimeters lower than the ceiling
inside the room. But no vents. Just light fixtures.
He stepped back into the room and looked up. All along the top of the
wall that bordered on the corridor there was a narrow vent that looked
more decorative than practical. The opening was about three centimeters. Not
even Bean could fit through the intake system.
He ran back to the open vent and took off his shoes. No reason to get
hung up because his feet were so much bigger than they needed to be.
He faced the vent and swung his feet down into the opening. Then he
wriggled until his legs were entirely down the hole and his buttocks
rested on the rim of the vent. His feet still hadn't found bottom. Not a
good sign. What if the vent dropped straight down into the machinery?
He wriggled back out, then went in the other way. It was harder and more
painful, but now his arms were more usable, giving him a good grip on the
floor as he slid chest-deep into the hole.
His feet touched bottom.
Using his toes, he probed. Yes, the ductwork ran to the left and the
right, along the outside wall of the room. And the opening was tall enough
that he could slide down into it, then wriggle -- always on his side --
along from room to room.
That was all he needed to know at present. He gave a little jump so
his anus reached farther out onto the floor, meaning to use friction to
let him pull himself up. Instead, he just slid back down into the vent.
Oh, this was excellent. Someone would come looking for him, eventually,
or he'd be found by the next batch of kids who came in to play games, but
he did not want to be found like this. More to the point, the ductwork would
only give him an alternate route through the station if he could climb
out of the vents. He had a mental image of somebody opening a vent and
seeing his skull looking out at them, his dead body completely dried up in
the warm wind of the air ducts where he starved to death or died of thirst
trying to get out of the vents.
As long as he was just standing there, though, he might as well find out
if he could cover the vent opening from the inside.
He reached over and, with difficulty, got a finger on the screen and was
able to pull it toward him. Once he got a hand solidly on it, it wasn't
hard at all to get it over the opening. He could even pull it in, tightly
enough that it probably wouldn't be noticeably different to casual observers
on the other side. With the vent closed, though, he had to keep his head
turned to one side. There wasn't room enough for him to turn it. So once
he got in the duct system, his head would either stay turned to the left
or to the right. Great.
He pushed the vent back out, but carefully, so that it didn't fall to
the floor. Now it was time to climb out in earnest.
After a couple more failures, he finally realized that the screen was
exactly the tool he needed. Laying it down on the floor in front of the
vent, he hooked his fingers under the far end. Pulling back on the screen
provided him with the leverage to lift his body far enough to get his
chest over the rim of the vent opening. It hurt, to hang the weight of his
body on such a sharp edge, but now he could get up on his elbows and then on
his hands, lifting his whole body up through the opening and back into
the room.
He thought carefully through the sequence of muscles he had used and
then thought about the equipment in the gym. Yes, he could strengthen
those muscles.
He put the vent screen back into place. Then he pulled up his shirt
and looked at the red marks on his skin where the rim of the vent opening
had scraped him mercilessly. There was some blood. Interesting. How would he
explain it, if anyone asked? He'd have to see if he could reinjure the same
spot by climbing around on the bunks later.
He jogged out of the game room and down the corridor to the nearest
pole, then dropped to the mess hall level. All the way, he wondered why he
had felt such urgency about getting into the ducts. Whenever he got like
that in the past, doing some task without knowing why it even mattered, it
had turned out that there was a danger that he had sensed but that hadn't
yet risen to his conscious mind. What was the danger here?
Then he realized -- in Rotterdam, out on the street, he had always
made sure he knew a back way out of everything, an alternate path to get
from one place to another. If he was running from someone, he never dodged
into a cul-de-sac to hide unless he knew another way out. In truth, he never
really hid at all -- he evaded pursuit by keeping on the move, always. No
matter how awful the danger following him might be, he could not hold still.
It felt terrible to be cornered. It hurt.
It hurt and was wet and cold and he was hungry and there wasn't enough
air to breathe and people walked by and if they just lifted the lid they
would find him and he had no way to run if they did that, he just had to sit
there waiting for them to pass without noticing him. If they used the
toilet and flushed it, the equipment wouldn't work right because the whole
weight of his body was pressing down on the float. A lot of the water had
spilled out of the tank when he climbed in. They'd notice something was
wrong and they'd find him.
It was the worst experience of his life, and he couldn't stand the
idea of ever hiding like that again. It wasn't the small space that bothered
him, or that it was wet, or that he was hungry or alone. It was the fact
that the only way out was into the arms of his pursuers.
Now that he understood that about himself, he could relax. He hadn't
found the ductwork because he sensed some danger that hadn't yet risen to
his conscious mind. He found the ductwork because he remembered how bad it
felt to hide in the toilet tank as a toddler. So whatever danger there might
be, he hadn't sensed it yet. It was just a childhood memory coming to the
surface. Sister Carlotta had told him that a lot of human behavior was
really acting out our responses to dangers long past. It hadn't sounded
sensible to Bean at the time, but he didn't argue, and now he could see that
she was right.
And how could he know there would never be a time when that narrow,
dangerous highway through the ductwork might not be exactly the route he
needed to save his life?
He never did palm the wall to light up green-brown-green. He knew
exactly where his barracks was. How could he not? He had been there before,
and knew every step between the barracks and every other place he had
visited in the station.
And when he got there, Dimak had not yet returned with the slow eaters.
His whole exploration hadn't taken more than twenty minutes, including
his conversation with Petra and watching two quick computer games during the
class break.
He awkwardly hoisted himself up from the lower bunk, dangling for a
while from his chest on the rim of the second bunk. Long enough that it hurt
in pretty much the same spot he had injured climbing out of the vent. "What
are you doing?" asked one of the launchies near him.
Since the truth wouldn't be understood, he answered truthfully.
"Injuring my chest," he said.
"I'm trying to sleep," said the other boy. "You're supposed to sleep,
too."
"Naptime," said another boy. "I feel like I'm some stupid
four-year-old."
Bean wondered vaguely what these boys' lives had been like, when
taking a nap made them think of being four years old.
***
Sister Carlotta stood beside Pablo de Noches, looking at the toilet
tank. "Old-fashioned kind," said Pablo. "Norteamericano. Very popular for
a while back when the Netherlands first became international."
She lifted the lid on the toilet tank. Very light. Plastic.
As they came out of the lavatory, the office manager who had been
showing them around looked at her curiously. "There's not any kind of danger
from using the toilets, is there?" she asked.
"No," said Sister Carlotta. "I just had to see it, that's all. It's
Fleet business. I'd appreciate it if you didn't talk about our visit here.
"
Of course, that almost guaranteed that she would talk about nothing
else. But Sister Carlotta counted on it sounding like nothing more than
strange gossip.
Whoever had run an organ farm in this building would not want to be
discovered, and there was a lot of money in such evil businesses. That was
how the devil rewarded his friends -- lots of money, up to the moment he
betrayed them and left them to face the agony of hell alone.
Outside the building, she spoke again to Pablo. "He really hid in
there?"
"He was very tiny," said Pablo de Noches. "He was crawling when I
found him, but he was soaking wet up to his shoulder on one side, and his
chest. I thought he peed himself, but he said no. Then he showed me the
toilet. And he was red here, here, where he pressed against the mechanism.
"
"He was talking," she said.
"Not a lot. A few words. So tiny. I could not believe a child so small
could talk." talk."
"How long was he in there?"
Pablo shrugged. "Shriveled up skin like old lady. All over. Cold. I
was thinking, he will die. Not warm water like a swimming pool. Cold. He
shivered all night."
"I can't understand why he *didn't* die," said Sister Carlotta.
Pablo smiled. "No hay nada que Dios no puede hacer."
"True," she answered. "But that doesn't mean we can't figure out *how*
God works his miracles. Or why."
Pablo shrugged. "God does what he does. I do my work and live, the
best man I can be."
She squeezed his arm. "You took in a lost child and saved him from
people who meant to kill him. God saw you do that and he loves you."
Pablo said nothing, but Sister Carlotta could guess what he was thinking
-- how many sins, exactly, were washed away by that good act, and would
it be enough to keep him out of hell?
"Good deeds do not wash away sins," said Sister Carlotta. "Solo el
redentor puede limpiar su alma."
Pablo shrugged. Theology was not his skill.
"You don't do good deeds for yourself," said Sister Carlotta. "You do
them because God is in you, and for those moments you are his hands and
his feet, his eyes and his lips."
"I thought God was the baby. Jesus say, if you do it to this little one,
you do it to me."
Sister Carlotta laughed. "God will sort out all the fine points in his
own due time. It is enough that we try to serve him."
"He was so small," said Pablo. "But God was in him."
She bade him goodbye as he got out of the taxi in front of his apartment
building.
Why did I have to see that toilet with my own eyes? My work with Bean is
done. He left on the shuttle yesterday. Why can't I leave the matter alone?
Because he should have been dead, that's why. And after starving on
the streets for all those years, even if he lived he was so malnourished
he should have suffered serious mental damage. He should have been
permanently retarded.
That was why she could not abandon the question of Bean's origin.
Because maybe he *was* damaged. Maybe he *is* retarded. Maybe he started out
so smart that he could lose half his intellect and still be the
miraculous boy he is.
She thought of how St. Matthew kept saying that all the things that
happened in Jesus' childhood, his mother treasured them in her heart. Bean
is not Jesus, and I am not the Holy Mother. But he is a boy, and I have
loved him as my son. What he did, no child of that age could do.
No child of less than a year, not yet walking by himself, could have
such clear understanding of his danger that he would know to do the things
that Bean did. Children that age often climbed out of their cribs, but
they did not hide in a toilet tank for hours and then come out alive and ask
for help. I can call it a miracle all I want, but I have to understand it.
They use the dregs of the Earth in those organ farms. Bean has such
extraordinary gifts that he could only have come from extraordinary parents.
And yet for all her research during the months that Bean lived with her,
she had never found a single kidnapping that could possibly have been Bean.
No abducted child. Not even an accident from which someone might have taken
a surviving infant whose body was therefore never found. That wasn't
proof -- not every baby that disappeared left a trace of his life in the
newspapers, and not every newspaper was archived and available for a
search on the nets. But Bean had to be the child of parents so brilliant
that the world took note of them -- didn't he? Could a mind like his come
from ordinary parents? Was that the miracle from which all other miracles
flowed?
No matter how much Sister Carlotta tried to believe it, she could not.
Bean was not what he seemed to be. He was in Battle School now, and there
was a good chance he would end up someday as the commander of a great fleet.
But what did anyone know about him? Was it possible that he was not a
natural human being at all? That his extraordinary intelligence had been
given him, not by God, but by someone or something else?
There was the question: If not God, then who could make such a child?
Sister Carlotta buried her face in her hands. Where did such thoughts
come from? After all these years of searching, why did she have to keep
doubting the one great success she had?
We have seen the beast of Revelation, she said silently. The Bugger, the
Formic monster bringing destruction to the Earth, just as prophesied. We
have seen the beast, and long ago Mazer Rackham and the human fleet, on
the brink of defeat, slew that great dragon. But it will come again, and St.
John the Revelator said that when it did, there would be a prophet who came
with him.
No, no. Bean is good, a good-hearted boy. He is not any kind of devil,
not the servant of the beast, just a boy of great gifts that God may have
raised up to bless this world in the hour of its greatest peril. I know
him as a mother knows her child. I am not wrong.
Yet when she got back to her room, she set her computer to work,
searching now for something new. For reports from or about scientists who
had been working, at least five years ago, on projects involving alterations
in human DNA.
And while the search program was querying all the great indexes on the
nets and sorting their replies into useful categories, Sister Carlotta
went to the neat little pile of folded clothing waiting to be washed. She
would not wash it after all. She put it in a plastic bag along with Bean's
sheets and pillowcase, and sealed the bag. Bean had worn this clothing,
slept on this bedding. His skin was in it, small bits of it. A few hairs.
Maybe enough DNA for a serious analysis.
He was a miracle, yes, but she would find out just what the dimensions
of this miracle might be. For her ministry had not been to save the children
of the cruel streets of the cities of the world. Her ministry had been to
help save the one species made in the image of God. That was still her
ministry. And if there was something wrong with the child she had taken into
her heart as a beloved son, she would find out about it, and give warning.
CHAPTER 7 -- EXPLORATION
"So this launch group was slow getting back to their barracks."
"There is a twenty-one-minute discrepancy."
"Is that a lot? I didn't even know this sort of thing was tracked."
"For safety. And to have an idea, in the event of emergency, where
everyone is. Tracking the uniforms that departed from the mess hall and
the uniforms that entered the barracks, we come up with an aggregate of
twenty-one minutes. That could be twenty-one children loitering for
exactly one minute, or one child for twenty-one minutes."
"That's very helpful. Am I supposed to ask them?"
"No! They aren't supposed to know that we track them by their uniforms.
It isn't good for them to know how much we know about them."
"And how little."
"Little?"
"If it was one student, it wouldn't be good for him to know that our
tracking methods don't tell us who it was."
"Ah. Good point. And ... actually, I came to you because I believe
that it was one student only."
"Even though your data aren't clear?"
"Because of the arrival pattern. Spaced out in groups of two or three, a
few solos. Just the way they left the mess hall. A little bit of clumping
-- three solos become a threesome, two twos arrive as four -- but if there
had been some kind of major distraction in the corridor, it would have
caused major coalescing, a much larger group arriving at once after the
disturbance ended."
"So. One student with twenty-one minutes unaccounted for."
"I thought you should at least be aware."
"What would he do with twenty-one minutes?"
"You know who it was?"
"I will, soon enough. Are the toilets tracked? Are we sure it wasn't
somebody so nervous he went in to throw up his lunch?"
"Toilet entry and exit patterns were normal. In and out."
"Yes, I'll find out who it was. And keep watching the data for this
launch group."
"So I was right to bring this to your attention?"
"Did you have any doubt of it?"
***
Bean slept lightly, listening, as he always did, waking twice that he
remembered. He didn't get up, just lay there listening to the breathing of
the others. Both times, there was a little whispering somewhere in the room.
Always children's voices, no urgency about them, but the sound was enough
to rouse Bean and kindle his attention, just for a moment till he was sure
there was no danger.
He woke the third time when Dimak entered the room. Even before
sitting up, Bean knew that's who it was, from the weight of his step, the
sureness of his movement, the press of authority. Bean's eyes were open
before Dimak spoke; he was on all fours, ready to move in any direction,
before Dimak finished his first sentence.
"Naptime is over, boys and girls, time for work."
It was not about Bean. If Dimak knew what Bean had done after lunch
and before their nap, he gave no sign. No immediate danger.
Bean sat on his bunk as Dimak instructed them in the use of their
lockers and desks. Palm the wall beside the locker and it opens. Then turn
on the desk and enter your name and a password.
Bean immediately palmed his own locker with his right hand, but did
not palm the desk. Instead, he checked on Dimak -- busy helping another
student near the door -- then scrambled to the unoccupied third bunk above
his own and palmed *that* locker with his left hand. There was a desk inside
that one, too. Quickly he turned on his own desk and typed in his name
and a password. Bean. Achilles. Then he pulled out the other desk and turned
it on. Name? Poke. Password? Carlotta.
He slipped the second desk back into the locker and closed the door,
then tossed his first desk down onto his own bunk and slipped down after it.
He did not look around to see if anyone noticed him. If they did, they'd
say something soon enough; visibly checking around would merely call
attention to him and make people suspect him who would not otherwise have
noticed what he did.
Of course the adults would know what he had done. In fact, Dimak was
certainly noticing already, when one child complained that his locker
wouldn't open. So the station computer knew how many students there were and
stopped opening lockers when the right total had been opened. But Dimak did
not turn and demand to know who had opened two lockers. Instead, he pressed
his own palm against the last student's locker. It popped open. He closed
it again, and now it responded to the student's palm.
So they were going to let him have his second locker, his second desk,
his second identity. No doubt they would watch him with special interest
to see what he did with it. He would have to make a point of fiddling with
it now and then, clumsily, so they'd think they knew what he wanted a second
identity for. Maybe some kind of prank. Or to write down secret thoughts.
That would be fun -- Sister Carlotta was always prying after his secret
thoughts, and no doubt these teachers would, too. Whatever he wrote,
they'd eat it up.
Therefore they wouldn't be looking for his truly private work, which
he would perform on his own desk. Or, if it was risky, on the desk of one of
the boys across from him, both of whose passwords he had carefully
noticed and memorized. Dimak was lecturing them about protecting their desks
at all times, but it was inevitable that kids would be careless, and
desks would be left lying around.
For now, though, Bean would do nothing riskier than what he had
already done. The teachers had their own reasons for letting him do it. What
mattered is that they not know his own.
After all, he didn't know himself. It was like the vent -- if he thought
of something that might get him some advantage later, he did it.
Dimak went on talking about how to submit homework, the directory of
teachers' names, and the fantasy game that was on every desk. "You are not
to spend study time playing the game," he said. "But when your studies are
done, you are permitted a few minutes to explore."
Bean understood at once. The teachers *wanted* the students to play
the game, and knew that the best way to encourage it was to put strict
limits on it ... and then not enforce them. A game-Sister Carlotta had
used games to try to analyze Bean from time to time. So Bean always turned
them into the same game: Try to figure out what Sister Carlotta is trying to
learn from the way I play this game.
In this case, though, Bean figured that anything he did with the game
would tell them things that he didn't want them to know about him. So he
would not play at all, unless they compelled him. And maybe not even then.
It was one thing to joust with Sister Carlotta; here, they no doubt had real
experts, and Bean was not going to give them a chance to learn more about
him than he knew himself.
Dimak took them on the tour, showing them most of what Bean had
already seen. The other kids went ape over the game room. Bean did not so
much as glance at the vent into which he had climbed, though he did make
it a point to fiddle with the game he had watched the bigger boys play,
figuring out how the controls worked and verifying that his tactics could,
in fact, be carried out.
They did a workout in the gym, in which Bean immediately began working
on the exercises that he thought he'd need -- one-armed pushups and
pullups being the most important, though they had to get a stool for him
to stand on in order to reach the lowest chinning bar. No problem. Soon
enough he'd be able to jump to reach it. With all the food they were
giving him, he could build up strength quickly.
And they seemed grimly determined to pack food into him at an
astonishing rate. After the gym they showered, and then it was suppertime.
Bean wasn't even hungry yet, and they piled enough food onto his tray to
feed his whole crew back in Rotterdam. Bean immediately headed for a
couple of the kids who had whined about their small portions and, without
even asking permission, scraped his excess onto their trays. When one of
them tried to talk to him about it, Bean just put his finger to his lips. In
answer, the boy grinned. Bean still ended up with more food than he wanted,
but when he turned in his tray, it was scraped clean. The nutritionist
would be happy. It remained to be seen if the janitors would report the food
Bean left on the floor.
Free time. Bean headed back to the game room, hoping that tonight he'd
actually see the famous Ender Wiggin. If he was there, he would no doubt
be the center of a group of admirers. But at the center of the groups he saw
were only the ordinary prestige-hungry clique-formers who thought they were
leaders and so would follow their group anywhere in order to maintain
that delusion. No way could any of them be Ender Wiggin. And Bean was not
about to ask.
Instead, he tried his hand at several games. Each time, though, the
moment he lost for the first time, other kids would push him out of the way.
It was an interesting set of social rules. The students knew that even
the shortest, greenest launchy was entitled to his turn -- but the moment
a turn ended, so did the protection of the rule. And they were rougher in
shoving him than they needed to be, so the message was clear -- you
shouldn't have been using that game and making me wait. Just like the food
lines at the charity kitchens in Rotterdam -- except that absolutely nothing
that mattered was at stake.
That was interesting, to find that it wasn't hunger that caused children
to become bullies on the street. The bulliness was already in the child,
and whatever the stakes were, they would find a way to act as they needed to
act. If it was about food, then the children who lost would die; if it
was about games, though, the bullies did not hesitate to be just as
intrusive and send the same message. Do what I want, or pay for it.
Intelligence and education, which all these children had, apparently
didn't make any important difference in human nature. Not that Bean had
really thought they would.
Nor did the low stakes make any difference in Bean's response to the
bullies. He simply complied without complaint and took note of who the
bullies were. Not that he had any intention of punishing them or of avoiding
them, either. He would simply remember who acted as a bully and take that
into account when he was in a situation where that information might be
important.
No point in getting emotional about anything. Being emotional didn't
help with survival. What mattered was to learn everything, analyze the
situation, choose a course of action, and then move boldly. Know, think,
choose, do. There was no place in that list for "feel." Not that Bean didn't
have feelings. He simply refused to think about them or dwell on them or
let them influence his decisions, when anything important was at stake.
"He's even smaller than Ender was."
Again, again. Bean was so tired of hearing that.
"Don't talk about that hijo de puta to me, bicho."
Bean perked up. Ender had an enemy. Bean was wondering when he'd spot
one, for someone who was first in the standings *had* to have provoked
something besides admiration. Who said it? Bean drifted nearer to the
group the conversation had come from. The same voice came up again. Again.
And then he knew: That one was the boy who had called Ender an hijo de puta.
He had the silhouette of some kind of lizard on his uniform. And a
single triangle on his sleeve. None of the boys around him had the triangle.
All were focused on him. Captain of the team?
Bean needed more information. He tugged on the sleeve of a boy
standing near him.
"What," said the boy, annoyed.
"Who's that boy there?" asked Bean. "The team captain with the lizard.
"
"It's a salamander, pinhead. Salamander *army*. And he's the
*commander*."
Teams are called armies. Commander is the triangle rank. "What's his
name?"
"Bonzo Madrid. And he's an even bigger asshole than you." The boy
shrugged himself away from Bean.
So Bonzo Madrid was bold enough to declare his hatred for Ender Wiggin,
but a kid who was not in Bonzo's army had contempt for *him* in turn and
wasn't afraid to say so to a stranger. Good to know. The only enemy Ender
had, so far, was contemptible.
But ... contemptible as Bonzo might be, he was a commander. Which
meant it was possible to become a commander without being the kind of boy
that everybody respected. So what was their standard of judgment, in
assigning command in this war game that shaped the life of Battle School?
More to the point, how do I get a command?
That was the first moment that Bean realized that he even had such a
goal. Here in Battle School, he had arrived with the highest scores in his
launch group -- but he was the smallest and youngest and had been isolated
even further by the deliberate actions of his teacher, making him a target
of resentment. Somehow, in the midst of all this, Bean had made the decision
that this would not be like Rotterdam. He was not going to live on the
fringes, inserting himself only when it was absolutely essential for his own
survival. As rapidly as possible, he was going to put himself in place to
command an army.
Achilles had ruled because he was brutal, because he was willing to
kill. That would always trump intelligence, when the intelligent one was
physically smaller and had no strong allies. But here, the bullies only
shoved and spoke rudely. The adults controlled things tightly and so
brutality would not prevail, not in the assignment of command. Intelligence,
then, had a chance to win out. Eventually, Bean might not have to live
under the control of stupid people.
If this was what Bean wanted -- and why not try for it, as long as
some more important goal didn't come along first? -- then he had to learn
how the teachers made their decisions about command. Was it solely based
on performance in classes? Bean doubted it. The International Fleet had to
have smarter people than that running this school. The fact that they had
that fantasy game on every desk suggested that they were looking at
personality as well. Character. In the end, Bean suspected, character
mattered more than intelligence. In Bean's litany of survival -- know,
think, choose, do -- intelligence only mattered in the first three, and
was the decisive factor only in the second one. The teachers knew that.
Maybe I *should* play the game, thought Bean.
Then: Not yet. Let's see what happens when I don't play.
At the same time he came to another conclusion he did not even know he
had been concerned about. He would talk to Bonzo Madrid.
Bonzo was in the middle of a computer game, and he was obviously the
kind of person who thought of anything unexpected as an affront to his
dignity. That meant that for Bean to accomplish what he wanted, he could not
approach Bonzo in a cringing way, like the suckups who surrounded him as he
played, commending him even for his stupid mistakes in game-play.
Instead, Bean pushed close enough to see when Bonzo's onscreen character
died -- again. "Ser [Senor] Madrid, puedo hablar convozco?" The Spanish
came to mind easily enough -- he had listened to Pablo de Noches talk to
fellow immigrants in Rotterdam who visited his apartment, and on the
telephone to family members back in Valencia. And using Bonzo's native
language had the desired effect. He didn't ignore Bean. He turned and glared
at him.
"What do you want, bichinho?" Brazilian slang was common in Battle
School, and Bonzo apparently felt no need to assert the purity of his
Spanish.
Bean looked him in the eye, even though he was about twice Bean's
height, and said, "People keep saying that I remind them of Ender Wiggin,
and you're the only person around here who doesn't seem to worship him. I
want to know the truth."
The way the other kids fell silent told Bean that he had judged aright
-- it was dangerous to ask Bonzo about Ender Wiggin. Dangerous, but that's
why Bean had phrased his request so carefully.
"Damn right I don't worship the farteating insubordinate traitor, but
why should I tell *you* about him?"
"Because you won't lie to me," said Bean, though he actually thought
it was obvious Bonzo would probably lie outrageously in order to make
himself look like the hero of what was obviously a story of his own
humiliation at Ender's hands. "And if people are going to keep comparing
me to the guy, I've got to know what he really is. I don't want to get
iced because I do it all wrong here. You don't owe me nothing, but when
you're small like me, you gots to have somebody who can tell you the stuff
you gots to know to survive." Bean wasn't quite sure of the slang here yet,
but what he knew, he used.
One of the other kids chimed in, as if Bean had written him a script and
he was right on cue. "Get lost, launchy, Bonzo Madrid doesn't have time
to change diapers."
Bean rounded on him and said fiercely, "I can't ask the teachers, they
don't tell the truth. If Bonzo don't talk to me who I ask then? *You*? You
don't know zits from zeroes."
It was pure Sergeant, that spiel, and it worked. Everybody laughed at
the kid who had tried to brush him off, and Bonzo joined in, then put a hand
on Bean's shoulder. "I'll tell you what I know, kid, it's about time
somebody wanted to hear the truth about that walking rectum." To the kid
that Bean had just fronted, Bonzo said, "Maybe you better finish my game,
it's the only way you'll ever get to play at that level."
Bean could hardly believe a commander would say such a pointlessly
offensive thing to one of his own subordinates. But the boy swallowed his
anger and grinned and nodded and said, "That's right, Bonzo," and turned
to the game, as instructed. A real suckup.
By chance Bonzo led him to stand right in front of the wall vent where
Bean had been stuck only a few hours before. Bean gave it no more than a
glance.
"Let me tell you about Ender. He's all about beating the other guy.
Not just winning -- he has to beat the other guy into the ground or he isn't
happy. No rules for him. You give him a plain order, and he acts like
he's going to obey it, but if he sees a way to make himself look good and
all he has to do is disobey the order, well, all I can say is, I pity
whoever has him in his army."
"He used to be Salamander?"
Bonzo's face reddened. "He wore a uniform with our colors, his name
was on my roster, but he was *never* Salamander. The minute I saw him, I
knew he was trouble. That cocky look on his face, like he thinks the whole
Battle School was made just to give him a place to strut. I wasn't having
it. I put in to transfer him the second he showed up and I refused to let
him practice with us, I knew he'd learn our whole system and then take it to
some other army and use what he learned from me to stick it to my army as
fast as he could. I'm not stupid!"
In Bean's experience, that was a sentence never uttered except to
prove its own inaccuracy.
"So he didn't follow orders."
"It's more than that. He goes crying like a baby to the teachers about
how I don't let him practice, even though they *know* I've put in to
transfer him out, but he whines and they let him go in to the battleroom
during freetime and practice alone. Only he starts getting kids from his
launch group and then kids from other armies, and they go in there as if
he was their commander, doing what he tells them. That really pissed off a
lot of us. And the teachers always give that little suckup whatever he
wants, so when we commanders *demanded* that they bar our soldiers from
practicing with him, they just said, 'Freetime is *free*,' but everything is
part of the game, sabe? Everything, so they're letting him cheat, and every
lousy soldier and sneaky little bastard goes to Ender for those freetime
practices so every army's system is compromised, sabe? You plan your
strategy for a game and you never know if your plans aren't being told to
a soldier in the enemy army the second they come out of your mouth, sabe?"
Sabe sabe sabe. Bean wanted to shout back at him, Si, yo *s? [*se*], but
you couldn't show impatience with Bonzo. Besides, this was all fascinating.
Bean was getting a pretty good picture of how this army game shaped the
life of Battle School. It gave the teachers a chance to see not only how the
kids handled command, but also how they responded to incompetent commanders
like Bonzo. Apparently, he had decided to make Ender the goat of his army,
only Ender refused to take it. This Ender Wiggin was the kind of kid who
got it that the teachers ran everything and used them by getting that
practice room. He didn't ask them to get Bonzo to stop picking on him, he
asked them for an alternate way to train himself. Smart. The teachers had to
love that, and Bonzo couldn't do a thing about it.
Or could he?
"What did you do about it?"
"It's what we're going to do. I'm about fed up. If the teachers won't
stop it, somebody else will have to, neh?" Bonzo grinned wickedly. "So I'd
stay out of Ender Wiggin's freetime practice if I were you."
"Is he really number one in the standings?"
"Number one is piss," said Bonzo. "He's dead last in loyalty. There's
not a commander who wants him in his army."
"Thanks," said Bean. "Only now it kind of pisses me off that people
say I'm like him."
"Just because you're small. They made him a soldier when he was still
way too young. Don't let them do that to you, and you'll be OK, sabe?"
"Ahora s [se]," said Bean. He gave Bonzo his biggest grin.
Bonzo smiled back and clapped him on his shoulder. "You'll do OK. When
you get big enough, if I haven't graduated yet, maybe you'll be in
Salamander."
If they leave you in command of an army for another day, it's just so
that the other students can learn how to make the best of taking orders from
a higher-ranking idiot. "I'm not going to be a soldier for a *long* time,
" said Bean.
"Work hard," said Bonzo. "It pays off." He clapped him on the shoulder
yet again, then walked off with a big grin on his face. Proud of having
helped a little kid. Glad to have convinced somebody of his own twisted
version of dealing with Ender Wiggin, who was obviously smarter farting than
Bonzo was talking.
And there was a threat of violence against the kids who practiced with
Ender Wiggin in freetime. That was good to know. Bean would have to decide
now what to do with that information. Get the warning to Ender? Warn the
teachers? Say nothing? Be there to watch?
Freetime ended. The game room cleared out as everyone headed to their
barracks for the time officially dedicated to independent study. Quiet time,
in other words. For most of the kids in Bean's launch group, though,
there was nothing to study -- they hadn't had any classes yet. So for
tonight, study meant playing the fantasy game on their desks and bantering
with each other to assert position. Everybody's desk popped up with the
suggestion that they could write letters home to their families. Some of the
kids chose to do that. And, no doubt, they all assumed that's what Bean was
doing.
But he was not. He signed on to his first desk as Poke and discovered
that, as he suspected, it didn't matter which desk he used, it was the
name and password that determined everything. He would never have to pull
that second desk out of its locker. Using the Poke identity, he wrote a
journal entry. This was not unexpected -- "diary" was one of the options
on the desk.
What should he be? A whiner? "Everybody pushed me out of the way in
the game room just because I'm little, it isn't fair!" A baby? "I miss
Sister Carlotta so so so much, I wish I could be in my own room back in
Rotterdam." Ambitious? "I'll get the best scores on everything, they'll
see."
In the end, he decided on something a little more subtle.
{What would Achilles do if he were me? Of course he's not little, but
with his bad leg it's almost the same thing. Achilles always knew how to
wait and not show them anything. That's what I've got to do, too. Just
wait and see what pops up. Nobody's going to want to be my friend at first.
But after a while, they'll get used to me and we'll start sorting ourselves
out in the classes. The first ones who'll let me get close will be the
weaker ones, but that's not a problem. You build your crew based on
loyalty first, that's what Achilles did, build loyalty and train them to
obey. You work with what you have, and go from there.}
Let them stew on *that*. Let them think he was trying to turn Battle
School into the street life that he knew. They'd believe it. And in the
meantime, he'd have time to learn as much as he could about how Battle
School actually worked, and come up with a strategy that actually fit the
situation.
Dimak came in one last time before lights out. "Your desks keep
working after lights out," he said, "but if you use it when you're
supposed to be sleeping, we'll know about it and we'll know what you're
doing. So it better be important, or you go on the pig list."
Most of the kids put their desks away; a couple of them defiantly kept
them out. Bean didn't care either way. He had other things to think about.
Plenty of time for the desk tomorrow, or the next day.
He lay in the near-darkness -- apparently the babies here had to have
a little light so they could find their way to the toilet without tripping
-- and listened to the sounds around him, learning what they meant. A few
whispers, a few shushes. The breathing of boys and girls as, one by one,
they fell asleep. A few even had light child-snores. But under those human
sounds, the windsound from the air system, and random clicking and distant
voices, sounds of the flexing of a station rotating into and out of
sunlight, the sound of adults working through the night.
This place was so expensive. Huge, to hold thousands of kids and
teachers and staff and crew. As expensive as a ship of the fleet, surely.
And all of it just to train little children. The adults may keep the kids
wrapped up in a game, but it was serious business to *them*. This program of
training children for war wasn't just some wacko educational theory gone
mad, though Sister Carlotta was probably right when she said that a lot of
people thought it was. The I.F. wouldn't maintain it at this level if it
weren't expected to give serious results. So these kids snoring and soughing
and whispering their way into the darkness, they really mattered.
They expect results from me. It's not just a party up here, where you
come for the food and then do what you want. They really do want to make
commanders out of us. And since Battle School has been going for a while,
they probably have proof that it works -- kids who already graduated and
went on to compile a decent service record. That's what I've got to keep
in mind. Whatever the system is here, it works.
A different sound. Not regular breathing. Jagged little breaths. An
occasional gasp. And then ... a sob.
Crying. Some boy was crying himself to sleep.
In the nest, Bean had heard some of the kids cry in their sleep, or as
they neared sleep. Crying because they were hungry or injured or sick or
cold. But what did these kids have to cry about here?
Another set of soft sobs joined the first.
They're homesick, Bean realized. They've never been away from mommy
and daddy before, and it's getting to them.
Bean just didn't get it. He didn't feel that way about anybody. You just
live in the place you're in, you don't worry about where you used to be
or where you wish you were, *here* is where you are and here's where
you've got to find a way to survive and lying in bed boo-hooing doesn't help
much with *that*.
No problem, though. Their weakness just puts me farther ahead. One
less rival on my road to becoming a commander.
Is that how Ender Wiggin thought about things? Bean recalled
everything he had learned about Ender so far. The kid was resourceful. He
didn't openly fight with Bonzo, but he didn't put up with his stupid
decisions, either. It was fascinating to Bean, because on the street the one
rule he knew for sure was, you don't stick your neck out unless your
throat's about to be slit anyway. If you have a stupid crew boss, you
don't tell him he's stupid, you don't show him he's stupid, you just go
along and keep your head down. That's how kids survived.
When he had to, Bean had taken a bold risk. Got himself onto Poke's crew
that way. But that was about food. That was about not dying. Why did
Ender take such a risk when there was nothing at stake but his standing in
the war game?
Maybe Ender knew something Bean didn't know. Maybe there was some reason
why the game was more important than it seemed.
Or maybe Ender was one of those kids who just couldn't stand to lose,
ever. The kind of kid who's for the team only as long as the team is
taking him where he wants to go, and if it isn't, then it's every man for
himself. That's what Bonzo thought. But Bonzo was stupid.
Once again, Bean was reminded that there were things he didn't
understand. Ender wasn't doing every man for himself. He didn't practice
alone. He opened his free time practice to other kids. Launchies, too, not
just kids who could do things for him. Was it possible he did that just
because it was a decent thing to do?
The way Poke had offered herself to Achilles in order to save Bean's
life?
No, Bean didn't *know* that's what she did, he didn't know that's why
she died.
But the possibility was there. And in his heart, he believed it. That
was the thing he had always despised about her. She acted tough but she
was soft at heart. And yet ... that softness was what saved his life. And
try as he might, he couldn't get himself to take the too-bad-for-her
attitude that prevailed on the street. She listened to me when I talked to
her, she did a hard thing that risked her own life on the chance that it
would lead to a better life for all her crew. Then she offered me a place at
her table and, in the end, she put herself between me and danger. Why?
What was this great secret? Did Ender know it? How did he learn it?
Why couldn't Bean figure it out for himself? Try as he might, though, he
couldn't understand Poke. He couldn't understand Sister Carlotta, either.
Couldn't understand the arms she held him with, the tears she shed over him.
Didn't they understand that no matter how much they loved him, he was still
a separate person, and doing good for him didn't improve their lives in any
way?
If Ender Wiggin has this weakness, then I will not be anything like him.
I am not going to sacrifice myself for anybody. And the beginning of that
is that I refuse to lie in my bed and cry for Poke floating there in the
water with her throat slit, or boo-hoo because Sister Carlotta isn't
asleep in the next room.
He wiped his eyes, rolled over, and willed his body to relax and go to
sleep. Moments later, he was dozing in that light, easy-to-rouse sleep. Long
before morning his pillow would be dry.
***
He dreamed, as human beings always dream -- random firings of memory and
imagination that the unconscious mind tries to put together into coherent
stories. Bean rarely paid attention to his own dreams, rarely even
remembered that he dreamed at all. But this morning he awoke with a clear
image in his mind.
Ants, swarming from a crack in the sideway. Little black ants. And
larger red ants, doing battle with them, destroying them. All of them
scurrying. None of them looking up to see the human shoe coming down to
stamp the life out of them.
When the shoe came back up, what was crushed under it was not ant bodies
at all. They were the bodies of children, the urchins from the streets of
Rotterdam. All of Achilles' family. Bean himself -- he recognized his own
face, rising above his flattened body, peering around for one last glimpse
at the world before death.
Above him loomed the shoe that killed him. But now it was worn on the
end of a bugger's leg, and the bugger laughed and laughed.
Bean remembered the laughing bugger when he awoke, and remembered the
sight of all those children crushed flat, of his own body mashed like gum
under a shoe. The meaning was obvious: While we children play at war, the
buggers are coming to crush us. We must look above the level of our
private struggles and keep in mind the greater enemy.
Except that Bean rejected that interpretation of his own dream the
moment he thought of it. Dreams have no meaning at all, he reminded himself.
And even if they do mean something, it's a meaning that reveals what I
feel, what I fear, not some deep abiding truth. So the buggers are coming.
So they might crush us all like ants under their feet. What's that to me? My
business right now is to keep Bean alive, to advance myself to a position
where I might be useful in the war against the buggers. There's nothing I
can do to stop them right now.
Here's the lesson Bean took from his own dream: Don't be one of the
scurrying, struggling ants.
Be the shoe.
***
Sister Carlotta had reached a dead end in her search of the nets. Plenty
of information on human genetics studies, but nothing like what she was
looking for.
So she sat there, doodling with a nuisance game on her desk while trying
to think of what to do next and wondering why she was bothering to look
into Bean's beginnings at all, when the secure message arrived from the I.F.
Since the message would erase itself a minute after arrival, to be
re-sent every minute until it was read by the recipient, she opened it at
once and keyed in her first and second passwords.
{FROM: Col.Graff@BattleSchool.IF
TO: Ss.Carlotta@SpecAsn.RemCon.IF
RE: Achilles
Please report all info on "Achilles" as known to subject.}
As usual, a message so cryptic that it didn't actually have to be
encrypted, though of course it had been. This was a secure message, wasn't
it? So why not just use the kid's name. "Please report on 'Achilles' as
known to *Bean*."
Somehow Bean had given them the name Achilles, and under circumstances
such that they didn't want to ask him directly to explain. So it had to be
in something he had written. A letter to her? She felt a little thrill of
hope and then scoffed at her own feelings. She knew perfectly well that mail
from the kids in Battle School was almost never passed along, and besides,
the chance of Bean actually writing to her was remote. But they had the
name somehow, and wanted to know from her what it meant.
The trouble is, she didn't want to give him that information without
knowing what it would mean for Bean.
So she prepared an equally cryptic reply:
{Will reply by secure conference only.}
Of course this would infuriate Graff, but that was just a perk. Graff
was so used to having power far beyond his rank that it would be good for
him to have a reminder that all obedience was voluntary and ultimately
depended on the free choice of the person receiving the orders. And she
would obey, in the end. She just wanted to make sure Bean was not going to
suffer from the information. If they knew he had been so closely involved
with both the perpetrator and the victim of a murder, they might drop him
from the program. And even if she was sure it would be all right to talk
about it, she might be able to get a quid pro quo.
It took another hour before the secure conference was set up, and when
Graff's head appeared in the display above her computer, he was not happy.
"What game are you playing today, Sister Carlotta?"
"You've been putting on weight, Colonel Graff. That's not healthy."
"Achilles," he said.
"Man with a bad heel," she said. "Killed Hector and dragged his body
around the gates of Troy. Also had a thing for a captive girl named
Briseis."
"You know that's not the context."
"I know more than that. I know you must have got the name from something
Bean wrote, because the name is not pronounced uh-KILL-eez, it's pronounced
ah-SHEEL. French."
"Someone local there."
"Dutch is the native language here, though Fleet Common has just about
driven it out as anything but a curiosity."
"Sister Carlotta, I don't appreciate your wasting the expense of this
conference."
"And I'm not going to talk about it until I know why you need to know.
"
Graff took a few deep breaths. She wondered if his mother taught him
to count to ten, or if, perhaps, he had learned to bite his tongue from
dealing with nuns in Catholic school.
"We are trying to make sense of something Bean wrote."
"Let me see it and I'll help you as I can."
"He's not your responsibility anymore, Sister Carlotta," said Graff.
"Then why are you asking me about him? He's your responsibility, yes? So
I can get back to work, yes?"
Graff sighed and did something with his hands, out of sight in the
display. Moments later the text of Bean's diary entry appeared on her
display below and in front of Graff's face. She read it, smiling slightly.
"Well?" asked Graff.
"He's doing a number on you, Colonel."
"What do you mean?"
"He knows you're going to read it. He's misleading you."
"You *know* this?"
"Achilles might indeed be providing him with an example, but not a
good one. Achilles once betrayed someone that Bean valued highly."
"Don't be vague, Sister Carlotta."
"I wasn't vague. I told you precisely what I wanted you to know. Just as
Bean told you what he wanted you to hear. I can promise you that his
diary entries will only make sense to you if you recognize that he is
writing these things for you, with the intent to deceive."
"Why, because he didn't keep a diary down there?"
"Because his memory is perfect," said Sister Carlotta. "He would never,
never commit his real thoughts to a readable form. He keeps his own
counsel. Always. You will never find a document written by him that is not
meant to be read."
"Would it make a difference if he was writing it under another identity?
Which he thinks we don't know about?"
"But you *do* know about it, and so he *knows* you will know about it,
so the other identity is there only to confuse you, and it's working."
"I forgot, you think this kid is smarter than God."
"I'm not worried that you don't accept my evaluation. The better you
know him, the more you'll realize that I'm right. You'll even come to
believe those test scores."
"What will it take to get you to help me with this?" asked Graff.
"Try telling me the truth about what this information will mean to
Bean."
"He's got his primary teacher worried. He disappeared for twenty-one
minutes on the way back from lunch -- we have a witness who talked to him on
a deck where he had no business, and that still doesn't account for that
last seventeen minutes of his absence. He doesn't play with his desk --"
"You think setting up false identities and writing phony diary entries
isn't playing?"
"There's a diagnostic / therapeutic game that all the children play --
he hasn't even signed on yet."
"He'll know that the game is psychological, and he won't play it until
he knows what it will cost him."
"Did you teach him that attitude of default hostility?"
"No, I learned it from him."
"Tell me straight. Based on this diary entry, it looks as though he
plans to set up his own crew here, as if this were the street. We need to
know about this Achilles so we'll know what he actually has in mind."
"He plans no such thing," said Sister Carlotta.
"You say it so forcefully, but without giving me a single reason to
trust your conclusion."
"You called *me*, remember?"
"That's not enough, Sister Carlotta. Your opinions on this boy are
suspect."
"He would never emulate Achilles. He would never write his true plans
where you could find them. He does not build crews, he joins them and uses
them and moves on without a backward glance."
"So investigating this Achilles won't give us a clue about Bean's future
behavior?"
"Bean prides himself on not holding grudges. He thinks they're
counterproductive. But at some level, I believe he wrote about Achilles
specifically because you would read what he wrote and would want to know
more about Achilles, and if you investigated him you would discover a very
bad thing that Achilles did."
"To Bean?"
"To a friend of his."
"So he *is* capable of having friendships?"
"The girl who saved his life here on the street."
"And what's *her* name?"
"Poke. But don't bother looking for her. She's dead."
Graff thought about that a moment. "Is that the bad thing Achilles did?"
"Bean has reason to believe so, though I don't think it would be
evidence enough to convict in court. And as I said, all these things may
be unconscious. I don't think Bean would knowingly try to get even with
Achilles, or anybody else, for that matter, but he might hope you'd do it
for him."
"You're still holding back, but I have no choice but to trust your
judgment, do I?"
"I promise you that Achilles is a dead end."
"And if you think of a reason why it might not be so dead after all?"
"I want your program to succeed, Colonel Graff, even more than I want
Bean to succeed. My priorities are not skewed by the fact that I do care
about the child. I really have told you everything now. But I hope you'll
help me also."
"Information isn't traded in the I.F., Sister Carlotta. It flows from
those who have it to those who need it."
"Let me tell you what I want, and you decide if I need it."
"Well?"
"I want to know of any illegal or top secret projects involving the
alteration of the human genome in the past ten years."
Graff looked off into the distance. "It's too soon for you to be off
on a new project, isn't it. So this is the same old project. This is about
Bean."
"He came from somewhere."
"You mean his mind came from somewhere."
"I mean the whole package. I think you're going to end up relying on
this boy, betting all our lives on him, and I think you need to know
what's going on in his genes. It's a poor second to knowing what's happening
in his mind, but that, I suspect, will always be out of reach for you."
"You sent him up here, and then you tell me something like this. Don't
you realize that you have just guaranteed that I will never let him move
to the top of our selection pool?"
"You say that now, when you've only had him for a day," said Sister
Carlotta. "He'll grow on you."
"He damn well better not shrink or he'd get sucked away by the air
system."
"Tut-tut, Colonel Graff."
"Sorry, Sister," he answered.
"Give me a high enough clearance and I'll do the search myself."
"No," he said. "But I'll get summaries sent to you."
She knew that they would give her only as much information as they
thought she should have. But when he tried to fob her off with useless
drivel, she'd deal with that problem, too. Just as she would try to get to
Achilles before the I.F. found him. Get him away from the streets and into a
school. Under another name. Because if the I.F. found him, in all
likelihood they would test him -- or find her scores on him. If they
tested him, they would fix his foot and bring him up to Battle School. And
she had promised Bean that he would never have to face Achilles again.
CHAPTER 8 -- GOOD STUDENT
"He doesn't play the fantasy game at *all*?"
"He has never so much as chosen a figure, let alone come through the
portal."
"It's not possible that he hasn't discovered it."
"He reset the preferences on his desk so that the invitation no longer
pops up."
"From which you conclude ..."
"He knows it isn't a game. He doesn't want us analyzing the workings
of his mind."
"And yet he wants us to advance him."
"I don't know that. He buries himself in his studies. For three months
he's been getting perfect scores on every test. But he only reads the lesson
material once. His study is on other subjects of his own choosing."
"Such as?"
"Vauban."
"Seventeenth-century fortifications? What is he *thinking*?"
"You see the problem?"
"How does he get along with the other children?"
"I think the classic description is 'loner.' He is polite. He volunteers
nothing. He asks only what he's interested in. The kids in his launch group
think he's strange. They know he scores better than them on everything, but
they don't hate him. They treat him like a force of nature. No friends, but
no enemies."
"That's important, that they don't hate him. They should, if he stays
aloof like that." like that."
"I think it's a skill he learned on the street -- to turn away anger. He
never gets angry himself. Maybe that's why the teasing about his size
stopped."
"Nothing that you're telling me suggests that he has command potential."
"If you think he's trying to show command potential and failing at it,
then you're right."
"So ... what do you think he's doing?"
"Analyzing us."
"Gathering information without giving any. Do you really think he's that
sophisticated?"
"He stayed alive on the street."
"I think it's time for you to probe a little."
"And let him know that his reticence bothers us?"
"If he's as clever as you think, he already knows."
***
Bean didn't mind being dirty. He had gone years without bathing, after
all. A few days didn't bother him. And if other people minded, they kept
their opinions to themselves. Let them add it to the gossip about him.
Smaller and younger than Ender! Perfect scores on every test! Stinks like
a pig!
That shower time was precious. That's when he could sign on to his
desk as one of the boys bunking near him -- while they were showering.
They were naked, wearing only towels to the shower, so their uniforms
weren't tracking them. During that time Bean could sign on and explore the
system without letting the teachers know that he was learning the tricks
of the system. It tipped his hand, just a little, when he altered the
preferences so he didn't have to face that stupid invitation to play their
mind game every time he changed tasks on his desk. But that wasn't a very
difficult hack, and he decided they wouldn't be particularly alarmed that
he'd figured it out.
So far, Bean had found only a few really useful things, but he felt as
though he was on the verge of breaking through more important walls. He knew
that there was a virtual system that the students were meant to hack
through. He had heard the legends about how Ender (of course) had hacked the
system on his first day and signed on as God, but he knew that while
Ender might have been unusually quick about it, he wasn't doing anything
that wasn't expected of bright, ambitious students.
Bean's first achievement was to find the way the teachers' system
tracked student computer activity. By avoiding the actions that were
automatically reported to the teachers, he was able to create a private file
area that they wouldn't see unless they were deliberately looking for it.
Then, whenever he found something interesting while signed on as someone
else, he would remember the location, then go and download the information
into his secure area and work on it at his leisure -- while his desk
reported that he was reading works from the library. He actually read
those works, of course, but far more quickly than his desk reported.
With all that preparation, Bean expected to make real progress. But
far too quickly he ran into the firewalls -- information the system had to
have but wouldn't yield. He found several workarounds. For instance, he
couldn't find any maps of the whole station, only of the
student-accessible areas, and those were always diagrammatic and cute,
deliberately out of scale. But he did find a series of emergency maps in a
program that would automatically display them on the walls of the
corridors in the event of a pressure-loss emergency, showing the nearest
safety locks. These maps were to scale, and by combining them into a
single map in his secure area, he was able to create a schema of the whole
station. Nothing was labeled except the locks, of course, but he learned
of the existence of a parallel system of corridors on either side of the
student area. The station must be not one but three parallel wheels,
cross-linked at many points. That's where the teachers and staff lived,
where the life support was located, the communications with the Fleet. The
bad news was that they had separate air-circulation systems. The ductwork in
one would not lead him to either of the others. Which meant that while he
could probably spy on anything going on in the student wheel, the other
wheels were out of reach.
Even within the student wheel, however, there were plenty of secret
places to explore. The students had access to four decks, plus the gym below
A-Deck and the battleroom above D-Deck. There were actually nine decks,
however, two below A-Deck and three above D. Those spaces had to be used for
something. And if they thought it was worth hiding it from the students,
Bean figured it was worth exploring.
And he would have to start exploring soon. His exercise was making him
stronger, and he was staying lean by not overeating -- it was unbelievable
how much food they tried to force on him, and they kept increasing his
portions, probably because the previous servings hadn't caused him to gain
as much weight as they wanted him to gain. But what he could not control was
the increase in his height. The ducts would be impassable for him before
too long -- if they weren't already. Yet using the air system to get him
access to the hidden decks was not something he could do during showers.
It would mean losing sleep. So he kept putting it off -- one day wouldn't
make that much difference.
Until the morning when Dimak came into the barracks first thing in the
morning and announced that everyone was to change his password immediately,
with his back turned to the rest of the room, and was to tell no one what
the new password was. "Never type it in where anyone can see," he said.
"Somebody's been using other people's passwords?" asked a kid, his
tone suggesting that he thought this an appalling idea. Such dishonor!
Bean wanted to laugh.
"It's required of all I.F. personnel, so you might as well develop the
habit now," said Dimak. "Anyone found using the same password for more
than a week will go on the pig list."
But Bean could only assume that they had caught on to what he was doing.
That meant they had probably looked back into his probing for the past
months and knew pretty much what he had found out. He signed on and purged
his secure file area, on the chance that they hadn't actually found it yet.
Everything he really needed there, he had already memorized. He would never
rely on the desk again for anything his memory could hold.
Stripping and wrapping his towel around him, Bean headed for the showers
with the others. But Dimak stopped him at the door.
"Let's talk," he said.
"What about my shower?" asked Bean.
"Suddenly you care about cleanliness?" asked Dimak.
So Bean expected to be chewed out for stealing passwords. Instead, Dimak
sat beside him on a lower bunk near the door and asked him far more general
questions. "How are you getting on here?"
"Fine."
"I know your test scores are good, but I'm concerned that you aren't
making many friends among the other kids."
"I've got a lot of friends."
"You mean you know a lot of people's names and don't quarrel with
anybody."
Bean shrugged. He didn't like this line of questioning any better than
he would have liked an inquiry into his computer use.
"Bean, the system here was designed for a reason. There are a lot of
factors that go into our decisions concerning a student's ability to
command. The classwork is an important part of that. But so is leadership.
"
"Everybody here is just full of leadership ability, right?"
Dimak laughed. "Well, that's true, you can't all be leaders at once."
"I'm about as big as a three-year-old," said Bean. "I don't think a
lot of kids are eager to start saluting me."
"But you could be building networks of friendship. The other kids are.
You don't."
"I guess I don't have what it takes to be a commander."
Dimak raised an eyebrow. "Are you suggesting you *want* to be iced?"
"Do my test scores look like I'm trying to fail?"
"What *do* you want?" asked Dimak. "You don't play the games the other
kids play. Your exercise program is weird, even though you know the
regular program is designed to strengthen you for the battleroom. Does
that mean you don't intend to play that game, either? Because if that's your
plan, you really *will* get iced. That's our primary means of assessing
command ability. That's why the whole life of the school is centered
around the armies."
"I'll do fine in the battleroom," said Bean.
"If you think you can do it without preparation, you're mistaken. A
quick mind is no replacement for a strong, agile body. You have no idea
how physically demanding the battleroom can be."
"I'll join the regular workouts, sir."
Dimak leaned back and closed his eyes with a small sigh. "My, but you're
compliant, aren't you, Bean."
"I try to be, sir."
"That is such complete bullshit," said Dimak.
"Sir?" Here it comes, thought Bean.
"If you devoted the energy to making friends that you devote to hiding
things from the teachers, you'd be the most beloved kid in the school."
"That would be Ender Wiggin, sir."
"And don't think we haven't picked up on the way you obsess about
Wiggin."
"Obsess?" Bean hadn't asked about him after that first day. Never joined
in discussions about the standings. Never visited the battleroom during
Ender's practice sessions.
Oh. What an obvious mistake. Stupid.
"You're the only launchy who has completely avoided so much as seeing
Ender Wiggin. You track his schedule so thoroughly that you are never in the
same room with him. That takes real effort."
"I'm a launchy, sir. He's in an army."
"Don't play dumb, Bean. It's not convincing and it wastes my time."
Tell a useless and obvious truth, that was the rule. "Everyone
compares me to Ender all the time 'cause I came here so young and small. I
wanted to make my own way."
"I'll accept that for now because there's a limit to how deeply I want
to wade into your bullshit," said Dimak.
But in saying what he'd said about Ender, Bean wondered if it might
not be true. Why shouldn't I have such a normal emotion as jealousy? I'm not
a machine. So he was a little offended that Dimak seemed to assume that
something more subtle had to be going on. That Bean was lying no matter what
he said.
"Tell me," said Dimak, "why you refuse to play the fantasy game."
"It looks boring and stupid," said Bean. That was certainly true.
"Not good enough," said Dimak. "For one thing, it *isn't* boring and
stupid to any other kid in Battle School. In fact, the game adapts itself to
your interests."
I have no doubt of *that*, thought Bean. "It's all pretending," said
Bean. "None of it's real."
"Stop hiding for one second, can't you?" snapped Dimak. "You know
perfectly well that we use the game to analyze personality, and that's why
you refuse to play."
"Sounds like you've analyzed my personality anyway," said Bean.
"You just don't let up, do you?"
Bean said nothing. There was nothing to say.
"I've been looking at your reading list," said Dimak. "Vauban?"
"Yes?"
"Fortification engineering from the time of Louis the Fourteenth?"
Bean nodded. He thought back to Vauban and how his strategies had
adapted to fit Louis's ever-more-straitened finances. Defense in depth had
given way to a thin line of defenses; building new fortresses had largely
been abandoned, while razing redundant or poorly placed ones continued.
Poverty triumphing over strategy. He started to talk about this, but Dimak
cut him off.
"Come on, Bean. Why are you studying a subject that has nothing to do
with war in space?"
Bean didn't really have an answer. He had been working through the
history of strategy from Xenophon and Alexander to Caesar and Machiavelli.
Vauban came in sequence. There was no plan -- mostly his readings were a
cover for his clandestine computer work. But now that Dimak was asking him,
what *did* seventeenth-century fortifications have to do with war in space?
"I'm not the one who put Vauban in the library."
"We have the full set of military writings that are found in every
library in the fleet. Nothing more significant than that."
Bean shrugged.
"You spent two hours on Vauban."
"So what? I spent as long on Frederick the Great, and I don't think
we're doing field drills, either, or bayoneting anyone who breaks ranks
during a march into fire."
"You didn't actually read Vauban, did you," said Dimak. "So I want to
know what you *were* doing."
"I *was* reading Vauban."
"You think we don't know how fast you read?"
"And *thinking* about Vauban?"
"All right then, what were you thinking?"
"Like you said. About how it applies to war in space." Buy some time
here. What *does* Vauban have to do with war in space?
"I'm waiting," said Dimak. "Give me the insights that occupied you for
two hours just yesterday."
"Well of course fortifications are impossible in space," said Bean.
"In the traditional sense, that is. But there are things you can do. Like
his mini-fortresses, where you leave a sallying force outside the main
fortification. You can station squads of ships to intercept raiders. And
there are barriers you can put up. Mines. Fields of flotsam to cause
collisions with fast-moving ships, holing them. That sort of thing."
Dimak nodded, but said nothing.
Bean was beginning to warm to the discussion. "The real problem is
that unlike Vauban, we have only one strong point worth defending -- Earth.
And the enemy is not limited to a primary direction of approach. He could
come from anywhere. From anywhere all at once. So we run into the classic
problem of defense, cubed. The farther out you deploy your defenses, the
more of them you have to have, and if your resources are limited, you soon
have more fortifications than you can man. What good are bases on moons
Jupiter or Saturn or Neptune, when the enemy doesn't even have to come in on
the plane of the ecliptic? He can bypass all our fortifications. The way
Nimitz and MacArthur used two-dimensional island-hopping against the defense
in depth of the Japanese in World War II. Only our enemy can work in
three dimensions. Therefore we cannot possibly maintain defense in depth.
Our only defense is early detection and a single massed force."
Dimak nodded slowly. His face showed no expression. "Go on."
Go on? That wasn't enough to explain two hours of reading? "Well, so I
thought that even that was a recipe for disaster, because the enemy is
free to divide his forces. So even if we intercept and defeat ninety-nine of
a hundred attacking squadrons, he only has to get one squadron through to
cause terrible devastation on Earth. We saw how much territory a single ship
could scour when they first showed up and started burning over China. Get
ten ships to Earth for a single day -- and if they spread us out enough,
they'd have a lot more than a day! -- and they could wipe out most of our
main population centers. All our eggs are in that one basket."
"And all this you got from Vauban," said Dimak.
Finally. That was apparently enough to satisfy him. "From thinking about
Vauban, and how much harder our defensive problem is."
"So," said Dimak, "what's your solution?"
Solution? What did Dimak think Bean was? I'm thinking about how to get
control of the situation here in Battle School, not how to save the world!
"I don't think there is a solution," said Bean, buying time again. But then,
having said it, he began to believe it. "There's no point in trying to
defend Earth at all. In fact, unless they have some defensive device we
don't know about, like some way of putting an invisible shield around a
planet or something, the enemy is just as vulnerable. So the only strategy
that makes any sense at all is an all-out attack. To send our fleet
against *their* home world and destroy it."
"What if our fleets pass in the night?" asked Dimak. "We destroy each
other's worlds and all we have left are ships?"
"No," said Bean, his mind racing. "Not if we sent out a fleet
immediately after the Second Bugger War. After Mazer Rackham's strike
force defeated them, it would take time for word of their defeat to come
back to them. So we build a fleet as quickly as possible and launch it
against their home world immediately. That way the news of their defeat
reaches them at the same time as our devastating counterattack."
Dimak closed his eyes. "Now you tell us."
"No," said Bean, as it dawned on him that he was right about everything.
"That fleet was already sent. Before anybody on this station was born, that
fleet was launched."
"Interesting theory," said Dimak. "Of course you're wrong on every
point."
"No I'm not," said Bean. He knew he wasn't wrong, because Dimak's air of
calm was not holding. Sweat was standing out on his forehead. Bean had
hit on something really important here, and Dimak knew it.
"I mean your theory is right, about the difficulty of defense in space.
But hard as it is, we still have to do it, and that's why you're here. As
to some fleet we supposedly launched -- the Second Bugger War exhausted
humanity's resources, Bean. It's taken us this long to get a
reasonable-sized fleet again. And to get better weaponry for the next
battle. If you learned anything from Vauban, you should have learned that
you can't build more than your people have resources to support. Besides
which, you're assuming we know where the enemy's home world is. But your
analysis is good insofar as you've identified the magnitude of the problem
we face."
Dimak got up from the bunk. "It's nice to know that your study time
isn't completely wasted on breaking into the computer system," he said.
With that parting shot, he left the barracks.
Bean got up and walked back to his own bunk, where he got dressed. No
time for a shower now, and it didn't matter anyway. Because he knew that
he had struck a nerve in what he said to Dimak. The Second Bugger War hadn't
exhausted humanity's resources, Bean was sure of that. The problems of
defending a planet were so obvious that the I.F. couldn't possibly have
missed them, especially not in the aftermath of a nearly-lost war. They knew
they had to attack. They built the fleet. They launched it. It was gone. It
was inconceivable that they had done anything else.
So what was all this nonsense with the Battle School for? Was Dimak
right, that Battle School was simply about building up the defensive fleet
around Earth to counter any enemy assault that might have passed our
invasion fleet on the way?
If that were true, there would be no reason to conceal it. No reason
to lie. In fact, all the propaganda on Earth was devoted to telling people
how vital it was to prepare for the next Bugger invasion. So Dimak had
done nothing more than repeat the story that the I.F. had been telling
everybody on Earth for three generations. Yet Dimak was sweating like a
fish. Which suggested that the story wasn't true.
The defensive fleet around Earth was already fully manned, that was
the problem. The normal process of recruitment would have been enough.
Defensive war didn't take brilliance, just alertness. Early detection,
cautious interception, protection of an adequate reserve. Success depended,
not on the quality of command, but on the quantity of available ships and
the quality of the weaponry. There was no reason for Battle School -- Battle
School only made sense in the context of an offensive war, a war where
maneuver, strategy, and tactics would play an important role. But the
offensive fleet was already gone. For all Bean knew, the battle had
already been fought years ago and the I.F. was just waiting for news about
whether we had won or lost. It all depended on how many light-years away the
Bugger home planet was.
For all we know, thought Bean, the war is already over, the I.F. knows
that we won, and they simply haven't told anybody.
And the reason for that was obvious. The only thing that had ended war
on Earth and bound together all of humanity was a common cause --
defeating the Buggers. As soon as it was known that the Bugger threat was
eliminated, all the pent-up hostilities would be released. Whether it was
the Muslim world against the West, or long-restrained Russian imperialism
and paranoia against the Atlantic alliance, or Indian adventurism, or ... or
all of them at once. Chaos. The resources of the International Fleet
would be co-opted by mutinying commanders from one faction or another.
Conceivably it could mean the destruction of Earth -- without any help
from the Formics at all.
That's what the I.F. was trying to prevent. The terrible cannibalistic
war that would follow. Just as Rome tore itself apart in civil war after the
final elimination of Carthage -- only far worse, because the weapons were
more terrible and the hatreds far deeper, national and religious hatreds
rather than the mere personal rivalries among leading citizens of Rome.
The I.F. was determined to prevent it.
In that context, Battle School made perfect sense. For many years,
almost every child on Earth had been tested, and those with any potential
brilliance in military command were taken out of their homeland and put into
space. The best of the Battle School graduates, or at least those most
loyal to the I.F., might very well be used to command armies when the I.F.
finally announced the end of the war and struck preemptively to eliminate
national armies and unify the world, finally and permanently, under one
government. But the main purpose of the Battle School was to get these
kids off Earth so that they could not become commanders of the armies of any
one nation or faction.
After all, the invasion of France by the major European powers after the
French Revolution led to the desperate French government discovering and
promoting Napoleon, even though in the end he seized the reins of power
instead of just defending the nation. The I.F. was determined that there
would be no Napoleons on Earth to lead the resistance. All the potential
Napoleons were here, wearing silly uniforms and battling each other for
supremacy in a stupid game. It was all pig lists. By taking us, they have
tamed the world.
"If you don't get dressed, you'll be late for class," said Nikolai,
the boy who slept on the bottommost bunk directly across from Bean.
"Thanks," said Bean. He shed his dry towel and hurriedly pulled on his
uniform.
"Sorry I had to tell them about your using my password," said Nikolai.
Bean was dumfounded.
"I mean, I didn't *know* it was you, but they started asking me what I
was looking for in the emergency map system, and since I didn't know what
they were talking about, it wasn't hard to guess that somebody was signing
on as me, and there you are, in the perfect place to see my desk whenever
I sign on, and ... I mean, you're really smart. But it's not like I set
out to tell on you."
"That's fine," said Bean. "Not a problem."
"But, I mean, what *did* you find out? From the maps?"
Until this moment, Bean would have blown off the question -- and the
boy. Nothing much, I was just curious, that's what he would have said. But
now his whole world had changed. Now it mattered that he have connections
with the other boys, not so he could show his leadership ability to the
teachers, but so that when war did break out on Earth, and when the I.F.'s
little plan failed, as it was bound to do, he would know who his allies
and enemies were among the commanders of the various national and
factional armies.
For the I.F.'s plan *would* fail. It was a miracle it hadn't failed
already. It depended too heavily on millions of soldiers and commanders
being more loyal to the I.F. than to their homeland. It would not happen.
The I.F. itself would break up into factions, inevitably.
But the plotters no doubt were aware of that danger. They would have
kept the number of plotters as small as possible -- perhaps only the
triumvirate of Hegemon, Strategos, and Polemarch and maybe a few people here
at Battle School. Because this station was the heart of the plan. Here
was where every single gifted commander for two generations had been studied
intimately. There were records on every one of them -- who was most
talented, most valuable. What their weaknesses were, both in character and
in command. Who their friends were. What their loyalties were. Which of
them, therefore, should be approached to command the I.F.'s forces in the
intrahuman wars to come, and which should be stripped of command and held
incommunicado until hostilities were over.
No wonder they were worried about Bean's lack of participation in
their little mind game. It made him an unknown quantity. It made him
dangerous.
Now it was even more dangerous for Bean to play than ever. Not playing
might make them suspicious and fearful -- but in whatever move they
planned against him, at least they wouldn't know anything about him. While
if he did play, then they might be less suspicious -- but if they did move
against him, they would do it knowing whatever information the game gave
to them. And Bean was not at all confident of his ability to outplay the
game. Even if he tried to give them misleading results, that strategy in
itself might tell them more about him than he wanted them to know.
And there was another possibility, too. He might be completely wrong.
There might be key information that he did not have. Maybe no fleet had been
launched. Maybe they hadn't defeated the Buggers at their home world. Maybe
there really was a desperate effort to build a defensive fleet. Maybe maybe
maybe.
Bean had to get more information in order to have some hope that his
analysis was correct and that his choices would be valid.
And Bean's isolation had to end.
"Nikolai," said Bean, "you wouldn't believe what I found out from
those maps. Did you know there are nine decks, not just four?"
"Nine?"
"And that's just in this wheel. There are two other wheels they never
tell us about."
"But the pictures of the station show only the one wheel."
"Those pictures were all taken when there *was* only one wheel. But in
the plans, there are three. Parallel to each other, turning together."
Nikolai looked thoughtful. "But that's just the plans. Maybe they
never built those other wheels."
"Then why would they still have maps for them in the emergency
system?"
Nikolai laughed. "My father always said, bureaucrats never throw
anything away."
Of course. Why hadn't he thought of that? The emergency map system was
no doubt programmed before the first wheel was ever brought into service. So
all those maps would already be in the system, even if the other wheels
were never built, even if two-thirds of the maps would never have a corridor
wall to be displayed on. No one would bother to go into the system and
clean them out.
"I never thought of that," said Bean. He knew, given his reputation
for brilliance, that he could pay Nikolai no higher compliment. As indeed
the reaction of the other kids in nearby bunks showed. No one had ever had
such a conversation with Bean before. No one had ever thought of something
that Bean hadn't obviously thought of first. Nikolai was blushing with
pride.
"But the nine decks, that makes sense," said Nikolai.
"Wish I knew what was on them," said Bean.
"Life support," said the girl named Corn Moon. "They got to be making
oxygen somewhere here. That takes a lot of plants."
More kids joined in. "And staff. All we ever see are teachers and
nutritionists."
"And maybe they *did* build the other wheels. We don't *know* they
didn't."
The speculation ran rampant through the group. And at the center of it
all: Bean.
Bean and his new friend, Nikolai.
"Come on," said Nikolai, "we'll be late for math."PART THREE --
SCHOLAR
CHAPTER 9 -- GARDEN OF SOFIA
"So he found out how many decks there are. What can he possibly do
with that information?"
"Yes, that's the exact question. What was he planning, that he felt it
necessary to find that out? Nobody else even looked for that, in the whole
history of this school."
"You think he's plotting revolution?"
"All we know about this kid is that he survived on the streets of
Rotterdam. It's a hellish place, from what I hear. The kids are vicious.
They make _Lord of the Flies_ look like _Pollyanna_."
"When did you read _Pollyanna_?"
"It was a book?"
"How can he plot a revolution? He doesn't have any friends."
"I never said anything about revolution, that's *your* theory."
"I don't have a theory. I don't understand this kid. I never even wanted
him up here. I think we should just send him home."
"No."
"No *sir*, I'm sure you meant to say."
"After three months in Battle School, he figured out that defensive
war makes no sense and that we must have launched a fleet against the Bugger
home worlds right after the end of the last war."
"He knows *that*? And you come telling me he knows how many *decks*
there are?" are?"
"He doesn't *know* it. He guessed. I told him he was wrong."
"I'm sure he believed you."
"I'm sure he's in doubt."
"This is all the more reason to send him back to Earth. Or out to some
distant base somewhere. Do you realize the nightmare if there's a breach
of security on this?"
"Everything depends on how he uses the information."
"Only we don't know anything about him, so we have no way of knowing how
he'll use it."
"Sister Carlotta --"
"Do you *hate* me? That woman is even more inscrutable than your
little dwarf."
"A mind like Bean's is not to be thrown away just because we fear
there might be a security breach."
"Nor is security to be thrown away for the sake of one really smart
kid."
"Aren't we smart enough to create new layers of deception for him? Let
him find out something that he'll think is the truth. All we have to do is
come up with a lie that we think he'll believe."
***
Sister Carlotta sat in the terrace garden, across the tiny table from
the wizened old exile.
"I'm just an old Russian scientist living out the last years of his life
on the shores of the Black Sea." Anton took a long drag on his cigarette
and blew it out over the railing, adding it to the pollution flowing from
Sofia out over the water.
"I'm not here with any law enforcement authority," said Sister Carlotta.
"You have something much more dangerous to me. You are from the Fleet.
"
"You're in no danger."
"That's true, but only because I'm not going to tell you anything."
"Thank you for your candor."
"You value candor, but I don't think you would appreciate it if I told
you the thoughts your body arouses in the mind of this old Russian."
"Trying to shock nuns is not much sport. There is no trophy."
"So you take nunnitude seriously."
Sister Carlotta sighed. "You think I came here because I know
something about you and you don't want me to find out more. But I came
here because of what I can't find out about you."
"Which is?"
"Anything. Because I was researching a particular matter for the I.F.,
they gave me a summary of articles on the topic of research into altering
the human genome." genome."
"And my name came up?"
"On the contrary, your name was never mentioned."
"How quickly they forget."
"But when I read the few papers available from the people they did
mention -- always early work, before the I.F. security machine clamped
down on them -- I noticed a trend. Your name was always cited in their
footnotes. Cited constantly. And yet not a word of yours could be found. Not
even abstracts of papers. Apparently you have never published."
"And yet they quote me. Almost miraculous, isn't it? You people do
collect miracles, don't you? To make saints?"
"No beatification until after you're dead, sorry."
"I have only one lung left as it is," said Anton. "So I don't have
that long to wait, as long as I keep smoking."
"You could stop."
"With only one lung, it takes twice as many cigarettes to get the same
nicotine. Therefore I have had to increase my smoking, not cut down. This
should be obvious, but then, you do not think like a scientist, you think
like a woman of faith. You think like an obedient person. When you find
out something is bad, you don't do it."
"Your research was into genetic limitations on human intelligence."
"Was it?"
"Because it's in that area that you are always cited. Of course, these
papers were never *about* that exact subject, or they too would have been
classified. But the titles of the articles mentioned in the footnotes -- the
ones you never wrote, since you never published anything -- are all tied to
that area."
"It is so easy in a career to find oneself in a rut."
"So I want to ask you a hypothetical question."
"My favorite kind. Next to rhetorical ones. I can nap equally well
through either kind." either kind."
"Suppose someone were to break the law and attempt to alter the human
genome, specifically to enhance intelligence."
"Then someone would be in serious danger of being caught and punished.
"
"Suppose that, using the best available research, he found certain genes
that he could alter in an embryo that would enhance the intelligence of the
person when he was born."
"Embryo! Are you testing me? Such changes can only happen in the egg.
A single cell."
"And suppose a child was born with these alterations in place. The child
was born and he grew up enough for his great intelligence to be noticed."
"I assume you are not speaking of your own child."
"I'm speaking of no child at all. A hypothetical child. How would
someone recognize that this child had been genetically altered? Without
actually examining the genes."
Anton shrugged. "What does it matter if you examine the genes? They will
be normal."
"Even though you altered them?"
"It is such a little change. Hypothetically speaking."
"Within the normal range of variation?"
"It is two switches, one that you turn on, one that you turn off. The
gene is already there, you see."
"What gene?"
"Savants were the key, for me. Autistic, usually. Dysfunctional. They
have extraordinary mental powers. Lightning-fast calculations. Phenomenal
memories. But they are inept, even retarded in other areas. Square roots
of twelve-digit numbers in seconds, but incapable of conducting a simple
purchase in a store. How can they be so brilliant, and so stupid?"
"That gene?"
"No, it was another, but it showed me what was possible. The human brain
could be far smarter than it is. But is there a, how you say, bargain?"
"Trade-off."
"A terrible bargain. To have this great intellect, you have to give up
everything else. That's how the brains of autistic savants accomplish such
feats. They do one thing, and the rest is a distraction, an annoyance,
beyond the reach of any conceivable interest. Their attention truly is
undivided."
"So all hyperintelligent people would be retarded in some other way."
"That is what we all assumed, because that is what we saw. The
exceptions seemed to be only mild savants, who were thus able to spare
some concentration on ordinary life. Then I thought ... but I can't tell you
what I thought, because I have been served with an order of inhibition."
He smiled helplessly. Sister Carlotta's heart fell. When someone was a
proven security risk, they implanted in his brain a device that caused any
kind of anxiety to launch a feedback loop, leading to a panic attack. Such
people were then given periodic sensitization to make sure that they felt
a great deal of anxiety when they contemplated talking about the forbidden
subject. Viewed one way, it was a monstrous intrusion on a person's life;
but if it was compared to the common practice of imprisoning or killing
people who could not be trusted with a vital secret, an order of
intervention could look downright humane.
That explained, of course, why Anton was amused by everything. He had to
be. If he allowed himself to become agitated or angry -- any strong
negative emotion, really -- then he would have a panic attack even without
talking about forbidden subjects. Sister Carlotta had read an article once
in which the wife of a man equipped with such a device said that their
life together had never been happier, because now he took everything so
calmly, with good humor. "The children love him now, instead of dreading his
time at home." She said that, according to the article, only hours before
he threw himself from a cliff. Life was better, apparently, for everyone but
him.
And now she had met a man whose very memories had been rendered
inaccessible.
"What a shame," said Sister Carlotta.
"But stay. My life here is a lonely one. You're a sister of mercy,
aren't you? Have mercy on a lonely old man, and walk with me."
She wanted to say no, to leave at once. At that moment, however, he
leaned back in his chair and began to breathe deeply, regularly, with his
eyes closed, as he hummed a little tune to himself.
A ritual of calming. So ... at the very moment of inviting her to walk
with him, he had felt some kind of anxiety that triggered the device. That
meant there was something important about his invitation.
"Of course I'll walk with you," she said. "Though technically my order
is relatively unconcerned with mercy to individuals. We are far more
pretentious than that. Our business is trying to save the world."
He chuckled. "One person at a time would be too slow, is that it?"
"We make our lives of service to the larger causes of humanity. The
Savior already died for sin. We work on trying to clean up the
consequences of sin on other people."
"An interesting religious quest," said Anton. "I wonder whether my old
line of research would have been considered a service to humanity, or just
another mess that someone like you would have to clean up."
"I wonder that myself," said Sister Carlotta.
"We will never know." They strolled out of the garden into the alley
behind the house, and then to a street, and across it, and onto a path
that led through an untended park.
"The trees here are very old," Sister Carlotta observed.
"How old are *you*, Carlotta?"
"Objectively or subjectively?"
"Stick to the Gregorian calendar, please, as most recently revised."
"That switch away from the Julian system still sticks in the Russian
craw, does it?"
"It forced us for more than seven decades to commemorate an October
Revolution that actually occurred in November."
"You are much too young to remember when there were Communists in
Russia."
"On the contrary, I am old enough now to have all the memories of my
people locked within my head. I remember things that happened long before
I was born. I remember things that never happened at all. I live in memory."
"Is that a pleasant place to dwell?"
"Pleasant?" He shrugged. "I laugh at all of it because I must. Because
it is so sweetly sad -- all the tragedies, and yet nothing is learned."
"Because human nature never changes," she said.
"I have imagined," he said, "how God might have done better, when he
made man -- in his own image, I believe."
"Male and female created he them. Making his image anatomically vague,
one must suppose."
He laughed and clapped her rather too forcefully on the back. "I
didn't know you could laugh about such things! I am pleasantly surprised!"
"I'm glad I could bring cheer into your bleak existence."
"And then you sink the barb into the flesh." They reached an overlook
that had rather less of a view of the sea than Anton's own terrace. "It is
not a bleak existence, Carlotta. For I can celebrate God's great
compromise in making human beings as we are."
"Compromise?"
"Our bodies could live forever, you know. We don't have to wear out. Our
cells are all alive; they can maintain and repair themselves, or be
replaced by fresh ones. There are even mechanisms to keep replenishing our
bones. Menopause need not stop a woman from bearing children. Our brains
need not decay, shedding memories or failing to absorb new ones. But God
made us with death inside."
"You are beginning to sound serious about God."
"God made us with death inside, and also with intelligence. We have
our seventy years or so -- perhaps ninety, with care -- in the mountains
of Georgia, a hundred and thirty is not unheard of, though I personally
believe they are all liars. They would claim to be immortal if they
thought they could get away with it. We could live forever, if we were
willing to be stupid the whole time."
"Surely you're not saying that God had to choose between long life and
intelligence for human beings!"
"It's there in your own Bible, Carlotta. Two trees -- knowledge and
life. You eat of the tree of knowledge, and you will surely die. You eat
of the tree of life, and you remain a child in the garden forever, undying."
"You speak in theological terms, and yet I thought you were an
unbeliever."
"Theology is a joke to me. Amusing! I laugh at it. I can tell amusing
stories about theology, to jest with believers. You see? It pleases me and
keeps me calm."
At last she understood. How clearly did he have to spell it out? He
was telling her the information she asked about, but doing it in code, in
a way that fooled not only any eavesdroppers -- and there might well be
listeners to every word they said -- but even his own mind. It was all a
jest; therefore he could tell her the truth, as long as he did it in this
form.
"Then I don't mind hearing your wild humorous forays into theology."
"Genesis tells of men who lived to be more than nine hundred years old.
What it does not tell you is how very stupid these men all were."
Sister Carlotta laughed aloud.
"That's why God had to destroy humanity with his little flood," Anton
went on. "Get rid of those stupid people and replace them with quicker ones.
Quick quick quick, their minds moved, their metabolism. Rushing onward into
the grave."
"From Methuselah at nearly a millennium of life to Moses with his
hundred and twenty years, and now to us. But our lives are getting longer.
"
"I rest my case."
"Are we stupider now?"
"So stupid that we would rather have long life for our children than see
them become too much like God, knowing ... good and evil ... knowing ...
everything." He clutched at his chest, gasping. "Ah, God! God in heaven!" He
sank to his knees, His breath was shallow and rapid now. His eyes rolled
back in his head. He fell over.
Apparently he hadn't been able to maintain his self-deception. His
body finally caught on to how he had managed to tell his secret to this
woman by speaking it in the language of religion.
She rolled him onto his back. Now that he had fainted, his panic
attack was subsiding. Not that fainting was trivial in a man of Anton's age.
But he would not need any heroism to bring him back, not this time. He
would wake up calm.
Where were the people who were supposed to be monitoring him? Where were
the spies who were listening in to their conversation?
Pounding feet on the grass, on the leaves.
"A bit slow, weren't you?" she said without looking up.
"Sorry, we didn't expect anything." The man was youngish, but not
terribly bright-looking. The implant was supposed to keep him from
spilling his tale; it was not necessary for his guards to be clever.
"I think he'll be all right."
"What were you talking about?"
"Religion," she said, knowing that her account would probably be checked
against a recording. "He was criticizing God for mis-making human beings.
He claimed to be joking, but I think that a man of his age is never really
joking when he talks about God, do you?"
"Fear of death gets in them," said the young man sagely -- or at least
as sagely as he could manage.
"Do you think he accidentally triggered this panic attack by agitating
his own anxiety about death?" If she asked it as a question, it wasn't
actually a lie, was it?
"I don't know. He's coming around."
"Well, I certainly don't want to cause him any more anxiety about
religious matters. When he wakes up, tell him how grateful I am for our
conversation. Assure him that he has clarified for me one of the great
questions about God's purpose."
"Yes, I'll tell him," said the young man earnestly.
Of course he would garble the message hopelessly.
Sister Carlotta bent over and kissed Anton's cold, sweaty forehead. Then
she rose to her feet and walked away.
So that was the secret. The genome that allowed a human being to have
extraordinary intelligence acted by speeding up many bodily processes. The
mind worked faster. The child developed faster. Bean was indeed the
product of an experiment in unlocking the savant gene. He had been given the
fruit of the tree of knowledge. But there was a price. He would not be able
to taste of the tree of life. Whatever he did with his life, he would
have to do it young, because he would not live to be old.
Anton had not done the experiment. He had not played God, bringing forth
human beings who would live in an explosion of intelligence, sudden
fireworks instead of single, long-burning candles. But he had found a key
God had hidden in the human genome. Someone else, some follower, some
insatiably curious soul, some would-be visionary longing to take human
beings to the next stage of evolution or some other such mad, arrogant cause
-- this someone had taken the bold step of turning that key, opening that
door, putting the killing, brilliant fruit into the hand of Eve. And because
of that act -- that serpentine, slithering crime -- it was Bean who had
been expelled from the garden. Bean who would now, surely, die -- but die
like a god, knowing good and evil.CHAPTER 10 -- SNEAKY
"I can't help you. You didn't give me the information I asked for."
"We gave you the damned summaries."
"You gave me nothing and you know it. And now you come to me asking me
to evaluate Bean for you -- but you do not tell me why, you give me no
context. You expect an answer but you deprive me of the means of providing
it."
"Frustrating, isn't it?"
"Not for me. I simply won't give you any answer."
"Then Bean is out of the program."
"If your mind is made up, no answer of mine will change you,
especially because you have made certain my answer will be unreliable."
"You know more than you've told me, and I must have it."
"How marvelous. You have achieved perfect empathy with me, for that is
the exact statement I have repeatedly made to you."
"An eye for an eye? How Christian of you."
"Unbelievers always want *other* people to act like Christians."
"Perhaps you haven't heard, but there's a war on."
"Again, I could have said the same thing to you. There's a war on, yet
you fence me around with foolish secrecy. Since there is no evidence of
the Formic enemy spying on us, this secrecy is not about the war. It's about
the Triumvirate maintaining their power over humanity. And I am not
remotely interested in that."
"You're wrong. That information is secret in order to prevent some
terrible experiments from being performed."
"Only a fool closes the door when the wolf is already inside the barn.
"
"Do you have proof that Bean is the result of a genetic experiment?"
"How can I prove it, when you have cut me off from all evidence?
Besides, what matters is not *whether* he has altered genes, but what
those genetic changes, if he has them, might lead him to do. Your tests were
all designed to allow you to predict the behavior of normal human beings.
They may not apply to Bean."
"If he's that unpredictable, then we can't rely on him. He's out."
"What if he's the only one who can win the war? Do you drop him from the
program then?"
***
Bean didn't want to have much food in his body, not tonight, so he
gave away almost all his food and turned in a clean tray long before
anyone else was done. Let the nutritionist be suspicious -- he had to have
time alone in the barracks.
The engineers had always located the intake at the top of the wall
over the door into the corridor. Therefore the air must flow into the room
from the opposite end, where the extra bunks were unoccupied. Since he had
not been able to see a vent just glancing around that end of the room, it
had to be located under one of the lower bunks. He couldn't search for it
when others would see him, because no one could be allowed to know that he
was interested in the vents. Now, alone, he dropped to the floor and in
moments was jimmying at the vent cover. It came off readily. He tried
putting it back on, listening carefully for the level of noise that
operation caused. Too much. The vent screen would have to stay off. He
laid it on the floor beside the opening, but out of the way so he wouldn't
accidentally bump into it in the darkness. Then, to be sure, he took it
completely out from under that bunk and slid it under the one directly
across.
Done. He then resumed his normal activities.
Until night. Until the breathing of the others told him that most, if
not all, were asleep.
Bean slept naked, as many of the boys did -- his uniform would not
give him away. They were told to wear their towels when going to and from
the toilet in the night, so Bean assumed that it, too, could be tracked.
So as Bean slid down from his bunk, he pulled his towel from its hook on
the bunk frame and wrapped it around himself as he trotted to the door of
the barracks.
Nothing unusual. Toilet trips were allowed, if not encouraged, after
lights out, and Bean had made it a point to make several such runs during
his time in Battle School. No pattern was being violated. And it was a
good idea to make his first excursion with an empty bladder.
When he came back, if anyone was awake all they saw was a kid in a towel
heading back to his bunk.
But he walked past his bunk and quietly sank down and slid under the
last bunk, where the uncovered vent awaited him. His towel remained on the
floor under the bunk, so that if anyone woke enough to notice that Bean's
bunk was empty, they would see that his towel was missing and assume he
had gone to the toilet.
It was no less painful this time, sliding into the vent, but once
inside, Bean found that his exercise had paid off. He was able to slide down
at an angle, always moving slowly enough to make no noise and to avoid
snagging his skin on any protruding metal. He wanted no injuries he'd have
to explain.
In the utter darkness of the air duct, he had to keep his mental map
of the station constantly in mind. The faint nightlight of each barracks
cast only enough light into the air ducts to allow him to make out the
location of each vent. But what mattered was not the location of the other
barracks on this level. Bean had to get either up or down to a deck where
teachers lived and worked. Judging from the amount of time it took Dimak
to get to their barracks the rare times that a quarrel demanded his
attention, Bean assumed that his quarters were on another deck. And
because Dimak always arrived breathing a little heavily, Bean also assumed
it was a deck below their own level, not above -- Dimak had to climb a
ladder, not slide down a pole, to reach them.
Nevertheless, Bean had no intention of going down first. He had to see
whether he could successfully climb to a higher deck before getting
himself potentially trapped on a lower one.
So when he finally -- after passing three barracks -- came to a vertical
shaft, he did not climb down. Instead, he probed the walls to see how
much larger it was than the horizontals. It was much wider -- Bean could not
reach all the way across it. But it was only slightly deeper, front to
back. That was good. As long as Bean didn't work too hard and sweat too
much, friction between his skin and the front and back walls of the duct
would allow him to inch his way upward. And in the vertical duct, he could
face forward, giving his neck a much-needed respite from being perpetually
turned to one side.
Downward was almost harder than upward, because once he started
sliding it was harder to stop. He was also aware that the lower he went, the
heavier he would become. And he had to keep checking the wall beside him,
looking for another side duct.
But he didn't have to find it by probing, after all. He could see the
side duct, because there was light in both directions. The teachers didn't
have the same lights-out rules as the students, and their quarters were
smaller, so that vents came more frequently, spilling more light into the
duct.
In the first room, a teacher was awake and working at his desk. The
trouble was that Bean, peering out of a vent screen near the floor, could
not see a thing he was typing.
It would be that way in all the rooms. The floor vents would not work
for him. He had to get into the air-intake system.
Back to the vertical duct. The wind was coming from above, and so that
was where he had to go if he was to cross over from one system to another.
His only hope was that the duct system would have an access door before he
reached the fans, and that he would be able to find it in the dark.
Heading always into the wind, and finding himself noticeably lighter
after climbing past seven decks, he finally reached a wider area with a
small light strip. The fans were much louder, but he still wasn't near
enough to see them. It didn't matter. He would be out of this wind.
The access door was clearly marked. It also might be wired to sound an
alarm if it was opened. But he doubted it. That was the kind of thing that
was done in Rotterdam to guard against burglars. Burglary wasn't a serious
problem on space stations. This door would only have been alarmed if all
doors in the station were fitted with alarms. He'd find out soon enough.
He opened the door, slipped out into a faintly lighted space, closed the
door behind him.
The structure of the station was visible here, the beams, the sections
of metal plating. There were no solid surfaces. The room was also noticeably
colder, and not just because he was out of the hot wind. Cold hard space
was on the other side of those curved plates. The furnaces might be
located here, but the insulation was very good, and they had not bothered to
pump much of that hot air into this space, relying instead on seepage to
heat it. Bean hadn't been this cold since Rotterdam ... but compared to
wearing thin clothing in the winter streets with the wind off the North Sea,
this was still almost balmy. It annoyed Bean that he had become so pampered
here that he even cared about such a slight chill. And yet he couldn't keep
himself from shivering a couple of times. Even in Rotterdam, he hadn't been
naked.
Following the ductwork, he climbed up the workmen's ladderways to the
furnaces and then found the air-intake ducts and followed them back down. It
was easy to find an access door and enter the main vertical duct.
Because the air in the intake system did not have to be under positive
pressure, the ducts did not have to be so narrow. Also, this was the part of
the system where dirt had to be caught and removed, so it was more
important to maintain access; by the time air got past the furnaces, it
was already as clean as it was ever going to get. So instead of shinnying up
and down narrow shafts, Bean scrambled easily down a ladder, and in the low
light still had no trouble reading the signs telling which deck each side
opening led to.
The side passages weren't really ducts at all. Instead, they consisted
of the entire space between the ceiling of one corridor and the floor of the
one above. All the wiring was here, and the water pipes -- hot, cold,
sewer. And besides the strips of dim worklights, the space was frequently
lighted by the vents on both sides of the space -- those same narrow
strips of vent openings that Bean had seen from the floor below on his first
excursion.
Now he could see easily down into each teacher's quarters. He crept
along, making as little noise as possible -- a skill he had perfected
prowling through Rotterdam. He quickly found what he was looking for -- a
teacher who was awake, but not working at his desk. The man was not well
known to Bean, because he supervised an older group of launchies and did not
teach any of the classes Bean was taking. He was heading for a shower. That
meant he would come back to the room and, perhaps, would sign in again,
allowing Bean to have a chance at getting both his log-in name and his
password.
No doubt the teachers changed passwords often, so whatever he got
wouldn't last long. Moreover, it was always possible that attempting to
use a teacher's password on a student desk might set off some kind of alarm.
But Bean doubted it. The whole security system was designed to shut
students out, to monitor student behavior. The teachers would not be so
closely watched. They frequently worked on their desks at odd hours, and
they also frequently signed on to student desks during the day to call on
their more powerful tools to help solve a student's problem or give a
student more personalized computer resources. Bean was reasonably sure
that the risk of discovery was outweighed by the benefits of snagging a
teacher's identity.
While he waited, he heard voices a few rooms up. He wasn't quite close
enough to make out the words. Did he dare risk missing the bather's
return?
Moments later he was looking down into the quarters of ... Dimak
himself. Interesting. He was talking to a man whose holographic image
appeared in the air over his desk. Colonel Graff, Bean realized. The
commandant of Battle School.
"My strategy was simple enough," Graff was saying. "I gave in and got
her access to the stuff she wanted. She was right, I can't get good
answers from her unless I let her see the data she's asking for."
"So did she give you any answers?"
"No, too soon. But she gave me a very good question."
"Which is?"
"Whether the boy is actually human."
"Oh, come on. Does she think he's a Bugger larva in a human suit?"
"Nothing to do with the Buggers. Genetically enhanced. It would
explain a lot."
"But still human, then."
"Isn't that debatable? The difference between humans and chimpanzees
is genetically slight. Between humans and neanderthals it had to be minute.
How much difference would it take for him to be a different species?"
"Philosophically interesting, but in practical terms --"
"In practical terms, we don't know what this kid will do. There's no
data on his species. He's a primate, which suggests certain regularities,
but we can't assume anything about his motivations that --"
"Sir, with all due respect, he's still a kid. He's a human being. He's
not some alien --"
"That's precisely what we've got to find out before we determine how
much we can rely on him. And that's why you are to watch him even more
carefully. If you can't get him into the mind game, then find some other way
to figure out what makes him tick. Because we can't use him until we know
just how much we can rely on him." on him."
Interesting that they openly call it the mind game among themselves,
thought Bean.
Then he realized what they were saying. "Can't get him into the mind
game." As far as Bean knew, he was the only kid who didn't play the
fantasy game. They were talking about him. New species. Genetically altered.
Bean felt his heart pounding in his chest. What am I? Not just smart, but
... different.
"What about the breach of security?" Dimak asked.
"That's the other thing. You've got to figure out what he knows. Or at
least how likely he is to spill it to any other kids. That's the greatest
danger right now. Is the possibility of this kid being the commander we need
great enough to balance the risk of breaching security and collapsing the
program? I thought with Ender we had an all-or-nothing long-odds bet, but
this one makes Ender look like a sure thing."
"I didn't think of you as a gambler, sir."
"I'm not. But sometimes you're forced into the game."
"I'm on it, sir."
"Encrypt everything you send me on him. No names. No discussions with
other teachers beyond the normal. Contain this."
"Of course."
"If the only way we can beat the Buggers is to replace ourselves with
a new species, Dimak, then have we really saved humanity?"
"One kid is not replacement of a species," said Dimak.
"Foot in the door. Camel's nose in the tent. Give them an inch."
"*Them*, sir?"
"Yes, I'm paranoid and xenophobic. That's how I got this job.
Cultivate those virtues and you, too, might rise to my lofty station."
Dimak laughed. Graff didn't. His head disappeared from the display.
Bean had the discipline to remember that he was waiting to get a
password. He crept back to the bather's room.
Still not back.
What breach of security were they talking about? It must have been
recent, for them to be discussing it with such urgency. That meant it had to
be Bean's conversation with Dimak about what was really going on with the
Battle School. And yet his guess that the battle had already happened
could not be it, or Dimak and Graff would not be talking about how he
might be the only way they could beat the Buggers. If the Buggers were still
unbeaten, the breach of security had to be something else.
It could still be that his earlier guess was partly right, and Battle
School existed as much to strip the Earth of good commanders as to beat
the Buggers. Graff and Dimak's fear might be that Bean would let other
kids in on the secret. For some of them, at least, it might rekindle their
loyalty to the nation or ethnic group or ideology of their parents.
And since Bean had definitely been planning to probe the loyalties of
other students over the next months and years, he now would have to be
doubly cautious not to let his pattern of conversation attract the attention
of the teachers. All he needed to know was which of the best and
brightest kids had the strongest home loyalties. Of course, for that Bean
would need to figure out just how loyalty worked, so he would have some idea
of how to weaken it or strengthen it, how to exploit it or turn it.
But just because this first guess of Bean's could explain their words
didn't mean it was right. And just because the final Bugger war had not
yet been fought didn't mean his initial guess was completely wrong. They
might, for instance, have launched a fleet against the Bugger home world
years ago, but were still preparing commanders to fight off an invasion
fleet now approaching Earth. In that case, the security breach Graff and
Dimak feared was that Bean would frighten others by letting them know how
urgent and dire the situation of humanity was.
The irony was that of all the children Bean had ever known, none could
keep a secret as well as he did. Not even Achilles, for in refusing his
share of Poke's bread, he had tipped his hand.
Bean could keep a secret, but he also knew that sometimes you had to
give some hint of what you knew in order to get more information. That was
what had prompted Bean's conversation with Dimak. It was dangerous, but in
the long run, if he could keep them from removing him from the school
entirely in order to silence him -- not to mention keeping them from killing
him -- he had learned more important information than he had given them. In
the end, the only things they could learn from him were about himself.
And what he learned from them was about everything else -- a much larger
pool of knowledge.
Himself. That was their puzzle -- who he was. Silly to be concerned
about whether he was human. What else *could* he be? He had never seen any
child show any desire or emotion that he himself had not felt. The only
difference was that Bean was stronger, and did not let his fleeting needs
and passions control his actions. Did that make him alien? He was human --
only better.
The teacher came back into the room. He hung up his damp towel, but even
before he dressed he sat back down and logged on. Bean watched his
fingers move over the keys. It was so quick. A blur of keystrokes. He
would have to replay the memory in his mind many times to make sure. But
at least he had seen it; nothing obstructed his view.
Bean crawled back toward the vertical intake shaft. The evening's
expedition had already taken as long as he dared -- he needed his sleep, and
every minute away increased the risk of chance discovery.
In fact, he had been very lucky on this first foray through the ducts.
To happen to hear Dimak and Graff conversing about him, to happen to watch a
teacher who conveniently gave him a clear view of his log-in. For a
moment it crossed Bean's mind that they might know he was in the air system,
might even have staged all this for him, to see what he'd do. It might be
just one more experiment.
No. It wasn't just luck that this teacher showed him the log-in. Bean
had chosen to watch him because he was going to shower, because his desk was
sitting on the table in such a way that Bean had a reasonable chance of
seeing the log-in. It was an intelligent choice on Bean's part. He had
gone with the best odds, and it paid off.
As for Dimak and Graff, it might have been chance that he overheard them
talking, but it was his own choice to move closer at once in order to hear.
And, come to think of it, he had chosen to go exploring in the ducts
because of precisely the same event that had prompted Graff and Dimak to
be so concerned. Nor was it a surprise that their conversation happened
after lights-out for the children -- that's when things would have quieted
down, and, with duties done, there would be time for a conversation
without Graff calling Dimak in for a special meeting, which might arouse
questions in the minds of the other teachers. Not luck, really -- Bean had
made his own luck. He saw the log-in and overheard the conversation
because he had made that quick decision to get into the intake system and
acted on it at once.
He had always made his own luck.
Maybe that was something that went along with whatever genetic
alteration Graff had found out about.
*She*, they had said. *She* had raised the question of whether Bean
was genetically human. Some woman who was searching for information, and
Graff had given in, was letting her have access to facts that had been
hidden from her. That meant that he would receive more answers from this
woman as she began to use that new data. More answers about Bean's origins.
Could it be Sister Carlotta who had doubted Bean's humanity?
Sister Carlotta, who wept when he left her and went into space? Sister
Carlotta, who loved him as a mother loves her child? How could *she* doubt
him?
If they wanted to find some inhuman human, some alien in a human suit,
they ought to take a good long look at a nun who embraces a child as her
own, and then goes around casting doubt about whether he's a real boy. The
opposite of Pinocchio's fairy. She touches a real boy and turns him into
something awful and fearful. fearful.
It could not have been Sister Carlotta they were talking about. Just
another woman. His guess that it might be her was simply wrong, just like
his guess that the final battle with the Buggers had already happened.
That's why Bean never fully trusted his own guesses. He acted on them, but
always kept himself open to the possibility that his interpretations might
be wrong.
Besides, *his* problem was not figuring out whether he really was
human or not. Whatever he was, he was himself and must act in such a way
as to not only stay alive but also get as much control over his own future
as possible. The only danger to him was that *they* were concerned about the
issue of his possible genetic alteration. Bean's task was therefore to
appear so normal that their fears on that score would be dispelled.
But how could he pretend to be normal? He hadn't been brought here
because he was normal, he was brought here because he was extraordinary. For
that matter, so were all the other kids. And the school put so much
strain on them that some became downright odd. Like Bonzo Madrid, with his
loud vendetta against Ender Wiggin. So in fact, Bean shouldn't appear
normal, he should appear weird in the expected ways.
Impossible to fake that. He didn't know yet what signs the teachers were
looking for in the behavior of the children here. He could find ten
things to do, and do them, never guessing that there were ninety things he
hadn't noticed.
No, what he had to do was not to *act* in predictable ways, but to
*become* what they hoped their perfect commander would be.
When he got back to his barracks, climbed back up to his bunk, and
checked the time on his desk, he found that he had done it all in less
than an hour. He put away his desk and lay there replaying in his mind the
image in his memory of the teacher's fingers, logging in. When he was
reasonably certain of what the log-in and password were, he allowed
himself to drift toward sleep.
Only then, as he was beginning to doze, did he realize what his
perfect camouflage would be, quelling their fears and bringing him both
safety and advancement.
He had to become Ender Wiggin.CHAPTER 11 -- DADDY
"Sir. I asked for a private interview."
"Dimak is here because your breach of security affects his work."
"Breach of security! This is why you reassign me?"
"There is a child who used your log-in to the master teacher system.
He found the log-in record files and rewrote them to give himself an
identity."
"Sir, I have faithfully adhered to all regulations. I never sign on in
front of the students."
"Everyone *says* they never sign on, but then it turns out they do."
"Excuse me, sir, but Uphanad does not. He's always on the others when he
catches them doing it. Actually, he's kind of anal about it. Drives us
all crazy."
"You can check my log-in records. I never sign on during teaching hours.
In fact, I never sign on outside my quarters."
"Then how could this child possibly get in using your log-in?"
"My desk sits on my table, like so. If I may use your desk to
demonstrate."
"Of course."
"I sit like so. I keep my back to the door so no one can even see in.
I never sign on in any other position."
"Well it's not like there's a window he can peek through!"
"Yes there is, sir."
"Dimak?"
"There *is* a window, sir. Look. The vent."
"Are you seriously suggesting that he could --"
"He is the smallest child who ever --"
"It was that little *Bean* child who got my log-in?"
"Excellent, Dimak, you've managed to let his name slip out, haven't
you."
"I'm sorry, sir."
"Ah. Another security breach. Will you send Dimak home with me?"
"I'm not sending anybody home."
"Sir, I must point out that Bean's intrusion into the master teacher
system is an excellent opportunity."
"To have a student romping through the student data files?"
"To study Bean. We don't have him in the fantasy game, but now we have
the game *he* chooses to play. We watch where he goes in the system, what he
does with this power he has created for himself."
"But the damage he can do is --"
"He won't do any damage, sir. He won't do anything to give himself away.
This kid is too street-smart. It's information he wants. He'll look, not
touch."
"So you've got him analyzed already, is that it? You know what he's
doing at all times?"
"I know that if there's a story we really want him to believe, he has to
discover it himself. He has to *steal* it from us. So I think this little
security breach is the perfect way to heal a much more important one."
"What I'm wondering is, if he's been crawling through the ducts, what
*else* has he heard?"
"If we close off the duct system, he'll know he was caught, and then
he won't trust what we set up for him to find."
"So I have to permit a child to crawl around through the ductwork and
--"
"He can't do it much longer. He's growing, and the ducts are extremely
shallow."
"That's not much comfort right now. And, unfortunately, we'll still have
to kill Uphanad for knowing too much."
"Please assure me that you're joking."
"Yes, I'm joking. You'll have him as a student soon enough, Captain
Uphanad. Watch him very carefully. Speak of him only with me. He's
unpredictable and dangerous."
"Dangerous. Little Bean."
"He cleaned *your* clock, didn't he?"
"Yours too, sir, begging your pardon."
***
Bean worked his way through every student at Battle School, reading
the records of a half dozen or so per day. Their original scores, he found,
were the least interesting thing about them. Everyone here had such high
scores on all the tests given back on Earth that the differences were almost
trivial. Bean's own scores were the highest, and the gap between him and
the next highest, Ender Wiggin, was wide -- as wide as the gap between Ender
and the next child after him. But it was all relative. The difference
between Ender and Bean amounted to half of a percentage point; most of the
children clustered between 97 and 98 percent.
Of course, Bean knew what they could not know, that for him getting
the highest possible score on the tests had been easy. He could have done
more, he could have done better, but he had reached the boundary of what the
test could discover. The gap between him and Ender was much wider than they
supposed.
And yet ... in reading the records, Bean came to see that the scores
were merely a guide to a child's potential. The teachers talked most about
things like cleverness, insight, intuition; the ability to develop rapport,
to outguess an opponent; the courage to act boldly, the caution to make
certain before committing, the wisdom to know which course was the
appropriate one. And in considering this, Bean realized that he was not
necessarily any better at *these* things than the other students.
Ender Wiggin really did know things that Bean did not know. Bean might
have thought to do as Wiggin did, arranging extra practices to make up for
being with a commander who wouldn't train him. Bean even might have tried to
bring in a few other students to train with him, since many things could
not be done alone. But Wiggin had taken all comers, no matter how
difficult it became to practice with so many in the battleroom, and
according to the teachers' notes, he spent more time now training others
than in working on his own technique. Of course, that was partly because
he was no longer in Bonzo Madrid's army, so he got to take part in the
regular practices. But he still kept working with the other kids, especially
the eager launchies who wanted a head start before they were promoted
into a regular army. Why?
Is he doing what I'm doing, studying the other students to prepare for a
later war on Earth? Is he building some kind of network that reaches out
into all the armies? Is he somehow mistraining them, so he can take
advantage of their mistakes later?
From what Bean heard about Wiggin from the kids in his launch group
who attended those practices, he came to realize that it was something
else entirely. Wiggin seemed really to care about the other kids doing their
best. Did he need so badly for them to like him? Because it was working, if
that's what he was trying for. They worshiped him.
But there had to be more to it than some hunger for love. Bean
couldn't get a handle on it.
He found that the teachers' observations, while helpful, didn't really
help him get inside Wiggin's head. For one thing, they kept the
psychological observations from the mind game somewhere else that Bean
didn't have access to. For another, the teachers couldn't really get into
Wiggin's mind because they simply didn't think at his level.
Bean did.
But Bean's project wasn't to analyze Wiggin out of scientific curiosity,
or to compete with him, or even to understand him. It was to make himself
into the kind of child that the teachers would trust, would rely on. Would
regard as fully human. For that project, Wiggin was his teacher because
Wiggin had already done what Bean needed to do.
And Wiggin had done it without being perfect. Without being, as far as
Bean could tell, completely sane. Not that anyone was. But Wiggin's
willingness to give up hours every day to training kids who could do nothing
for him -- the more Bean thought about it, the less sense it made. Wiggin
was not building a network of supporters. Unlike Bean, he didn't have a
perfect memory, so Bean was quite sure Wiggin was not compiling a mental
dossier on every other kid in Battle School. The kids he worked with were
not the best, and were often the most fearful and dependent of the launchies
and of the losers in the regular armies. They came to him because they
thought being in the same room with the soldier who was leading in the
standings might bring some luck to them. But why did Wiggin keep giving
his time to *them*?
Why did Poke die for me?
That was the same question. Bean knew it. He found several books about
ethics in the library and called them up on his desk to read. He soon
discovered that the only theories that explained altruism were bogus. The
stupidest was the old sociobiological explanation of uncles dying for
nephews -- there were no blood ties in armies now, and people often died for
strangers. Community theory was fine as far as it went -- it explained
why communities all honored sacrificial heroes in their stories and rituals,
but it still didn't explain the heroes themselves.
For that was what Bean saw in Wiggin. This was the hero at his root.
Wiggin really does not care as much about himself as he does about these
other kids who aren't worth five minutes of his time.
And yet this may be the very trait that makes everyone focus on him.
Maybe this is why in all those stories Sister Carlotta told him, Jesus
always had a crowd around him.
Maybe this is why I'm so afraid of Wiggin. Because *he's* the alien, not
me. He's the unintelligible one, the unpredictable one. He's the one who
doesn't do things for sensible, predictable reasons. I'm going to survive,
and once you know that, there's nothing more to know about me. Him, though,
he could do anything.
The more he studied Wiggin, the more mysteries Bean uncovered. The
more he determined to act like Wiggin until, at some point, he came to see
the world as Wiggin saw it.
But even as he tracked Wiggin -- still from a distance -- what Bean
could not let himself do was what the younger kids did, what Wiggin's
disciples did. He could not call him Ender. Calling him by his last name
kept him at a distance. A microscope's distance, anyway.
What did Wiggin study when he read on his own? Not the books of military
history and strategy that Bean had blown through in a rush and was now
rereading methodically, applying everything to both space combat and modem
warfare on Earth. Wiggin did his share of reading, too, but when he went
into the library he was just as likely to look at combat vids, and the
ones he watched most often were of Bugger ships. Those and the clips of
Mazer Rackham's strike force in the heroic battle that broke the back of the
Second Invasion.
Bean watched them too, though not over and over again -- once he saw
them, he remembered them perfectly and could replay them in his mind, with
enough detail that he could notice things later that he hadn't realized at
first. Was Wiggin seeing something new each time he went back to these vids?
Or was he looking for something that he hadn't yet found?
Is he trying to understand the way the Buggers think? Why doesn't he
realize that the library here simply doesn't have enough of the vids to make
it useful? It's all propaganda stuff here. They withheld all the terrible
scenes of dead guys, of fighting and killing hand to hand when ships were
breached and boarded. They didn't have vids of defeats, where the Buggers
blew the human ships out of the sky. All they had here was ships moving
around in space, a few minutes of preparation for combat.
War in space? So exciting in the made-up stories, so boring in reality.
Occasionally something would light up, mostly it was just dark.
And, of course, the obligatory moment of Mazer Rackham's victory.
What could Wiggin possibly hope to learn?
Bean learned more from the omissions than from what he actually saw. For
instance, there was not one picture of Mazer Rackham anywhere in the
library. That was odd. The Triumvirates' faces were everywhere, as were
those of other commanders and political leaders. Why not Rackham? Had he
died in the moment of victory? Or was he, perhaps, a fictitious figure, a
deliberately-created legend, so that there could be a name to peg the
victory to? But if that were the case, they'd have created a face for him --
it was too easy to do that. Was he deformed?
Was he really, really small?
If I grow up to be the commander of the human fleet that defeats the
Buggers, will they hide my picture, too, because someone so tiny can never
be seen as a hero?
Who cares? I don't want to be a hero.
That's Wiggin's gig.
***
Nikolai, the boy across from him. Bright enough to make some guesses
Bean hadn't made first. Confident enough not to get angry when he caught
Bean intruding on him. Bean was so hopeful when he came at last to Nikolai's
file.
The teacher evaluation was negative. "A place-holder." Cruel -- but
was it true?
Bean realized: I have been putting too much trust in the teachers'
evaluations. Do I have any real evidence that they're right? Or do I believe
in their evaluations because I am rated so highly? Have I let them
flatter me into complacency?
What if all their evaluations were hopelessly wrong?
I had no teacher files on the streets of Rotterdam. I actually knew
the children. Poke -- I made my own judgment of her, and I was almost right,
just a few surprises here and there. Sergeant -- no surprises at all.
Achilles -- yes, I knew him.
So why have I stayed apart from the other students? Because they
isolated me at first, and because I decided that the teachers had the power.
But now I see that I was only partly right. The teachers have the power
here and now, but someday I will not be in Battle School, and what does it
matter then what the teachers think of me? I can learn all the military
theory and history that I want, and it will do me no good if they never
entrust me with command. And I will never be placed in charge of an army
or a fleet unless they have reason to believe that other men would follow
me.
Not men today, but boys, most of them, a few girls. Not men, but they
*will* be men. How do they choose their leaders? How do I make them follow
one who is so small, so resented?
What did Wiggin do?
Bean asked Nikolai which of the kids in their launch group practiced
with Wiggin.
"Only a few. And they on the fringes, neh? Suckups and brags."
"But who are they?"
"You trying to get in with Wiggin?"
"Just want to find out about him."
"What you want to know?"
The questions bothered Bean. He didn't like talking so much about what
he was doing. But he didn't sense any malice in Nikolai. He just wanted to
know.
"History. He the best, neh? How he get that way?" Bean wondered if he
sounded quite natural with the soldier slang. He hadn't used it that much.
The music of it, he still wasn't quite there.
"You find out, you tell me." He rolled his eyes in self-derision.
"I'll tell you," said Bean.
"I got a chance to be best like Ender?" Nikolai laughed. "*You* got a
chance, the way you learn."
"Wiggin's snot ain't honey," said Bean.
"What does that mean?"
"He human like anybody. I find out, I tell you, OK?"
Bean wondered why Nikolai already despaired about his own chances of
being one of the best. Could it be that the teachers' negative evaluation
was right after all? Or had they unconsciously let him see their disdain for
him, and he believed them?
From the boys Nikolai had pointed out -- the brags and suckups, which
wasn't an inaccurate evaluation as far as it went -- Bean learned what he
wanted to know. The names of Wiggin's closest friends.
Shen. Alai. Petra -- her again! But Shen the longest.
Bean found him in the library during study time. The only reason to go
there was for the vids -- all the books could be read from the desks. Shen
wasn't watching vids, though. He had his desk with him, and he was playing
the fantasy game.
Bean sat down beside him to watch. A lion-headed man in chain mail stood
before a giant, who seemed to be offering him a choice of drinks -- the
sound was shaped so that Bean couldn't hear it from beside the desk,
though Shen seemed to be responding; he typed in a few words. His lion-man
figure drank one of the substances and promptly died.
Shen muttered something and shoved the desk away.
"That the Giant's Drink?" said Bean. "I heard about that."
"You've never played it?" said Shen. "You can't win it. I *thought*."
"I heard. Didn't sound fun."
"*Sound* fun? You haven't tried it? It's not like it's hard to find."
Bean shrugged, trying to fake the mannerisms he'd seen other boys use.
Shen looked amused. Because Bean did the cool-guy shrug wrong? Or because it
looked cute to have somebody so small do it?
"Come on, you don't play the fantasy game?"
"What you said," Bean prompted him. "You *thought* nobody ever won it.
"
"I saw a guy in a place I'd never seen. I asked him where it was, and he
said, 'Other side of the Giant's Drink.'"
"He tell you how to get there?"
"I didn't ask."
"Why not?"
Shen grinned, looked away.
"It be Wiggin, neh?" asked Bean.
The grin faded. "I didn't say that."
"I know you're his friend, that's why I came here."
"What is this? You spying on him? You from Bonzo?"
This was not going well. Bean hadn't realized how protective Wiggin's
friends might be. "I'm from me. Look, nothing bad, OK? I just -- look, I
just want to know about -- you know him from the start, right? They say
you been his friend from launchy days."
"So what?"
"Look, he got friends, right? Like you. Even though he always does
better in class, always the best on everything, right? But they don't hate
him."
"Plenty bich僶 [bichao] hate him."
"I got to make some friends, man." Bean knew that he shouldn't try to
sound pitiful. Instead, he should sound like a pitiful kid who was trying
really hard *not* to sound pitiful. So he ended his maudlin little plea with
a laugh. As if he was trying to make it sound like a joke.
"You're pretty short," said Shen.
"Not on the planet I'm from," said Bean.
For the first time, Shen let a genuine smile come to his face. "The
planet of the pygmies."
"Them boys too big for me."
"Look, I know what you're saying," said Shen. "I had this funny walk.
Some of the kids were ragging me. Ender stopped them."
"How?"
"Ragged them more."
"I never heard he got a mouth."
"No, he didn't say nada. Did it on the desk. Sent a message from God."
Oh, yeah. Bean had heard about that. "He did that for you?"
"They were making fun of my butt. I had a big butt. Before workouts, you
know? Back then. So he make fun of them for looking at my butt. But he
signs it God."
"So they didn't know it was him."
"Oh, they knew. Right away. But he didn't say anything. Out loud."
"That's how you got to be friends? He the protector of the little guys?"
Like Achilles ...
"*Little* guys?" said Shen. "He was the smallest in our launch group.
Not like you, but way small. Younger, see."
"He was youngest, but he became your protector?"
"No. Not like that. No, he kept it from going on, that's all. He went to
the group -- it was Bernard, he was getting together the biggest guys,
the tough guys --"
"The bullies."
"Yeah, I guess. Only Ender, he goes to Bernard's number one, his best
friend. Alai. He gets Alai to be his friend, too."
"So he stole away Bernard's support?"
"No, man. No, it's not like that. He made friends with Alai, and then
got Alai to help him make friends with Bernard."
"Bernard ... he's the one, Ender broke his arm in the shuttle."
"That's right. And I think, really, Bernard never forgave him, but he
saw how things were."
"How were things?"
"Ender's *good*, man. You just -- he doesn't hate anybody. If you're a
good person, you're going to like him. You want him to like you. If he likes
you, then you're OK, see? But if you're scum, he just makes you mad. Just
knowing he exists, see? So Ender, he tries to wake up the good part of you."
"How do you wake up 'good parts'?"
"I don't know, man. You think I know? It just ... you know Ender long
enough, he just makes you want him to be proud of you. That sounds so ...
sounds like I'm a baby, neh?"
Bean shook his head. What it sounded like to him was devotion. Bean
hadn't really understood this. Friends were friends, he thought. Like
Sergeant and Poke used to be, before Achilles. But it was never love. When
Achilles came, they loved him, but it was more like worship, like ... a god,
he got them bread, they gave bread back to him. Like ... well, like what he
called himself. Papa. Was it the same thing? Was Ender Achilles all over
again?
"You're smart, kid," said Shen. "I was there, neh? Only I never once
thought, How did Ender *do* it? How can I do the same, be like him? It's
like that was Ender, he's great, but it's nothing *I* could do. Maybe I
should have tried. I just wanted to be ... *with* him."
"Cause you're good, too," said Bean.
Shen rolled his eyes. "I guess that's what I was saying, wasn't it?
Implying, anyway. Guess that makes me a brag, neh?"
"Big old brag," said Bean, grinning.
"He's just ... he makes you want to ... I'd die for him. That sounds
like hero talk, neh? But it's true. I'd die for him. I'd kill for him."
"You'd fight for him."
Shen got it at once. "That's right. He's a born commander."
"Alai fight for him too?"
"A lot of us."
"But some not, yes?"
"Like I said, the bad ones, they hate him, he makes them crazy."
"So the whole world divides up -- good people love Wiggin, bad people
hate Wiggin."
Shen's face went suspicious again. "I don't know why I told you all that
merda. You too smart to believe any of it."
"I do believe it," said Bean. "Don't be mad at me." He'd learned that
one a long time ago. Little kid says, Don't be mad at me, they feel a little
silly.
"I'm not mad," said Shen. "I just thought you were making fun of me."
"I wanted to know how Wiggin makes friends."
"If I knew that, if I really understood that, I'd have more friends than
I do, kid. But I got Ender as my friend, and all his friends are my friends
too, and some hope of doing what he's done. But me, I have to learn my
own way.
Even as he made the decision, though, he knew he wasn't done with
Wiggin. Whatever Wiggin had, whatever Wiggin knew, Bean *would* learn it.
And so passed the weeks, the months. Bean did all his regular classwork.
He attended the regular battleroom classes with Dimak teaching them how
to move and shoot, the basic skills. On his own he completed all the
enrichment courses you could take at your own desk, certifying in
everything. He studied military history, philosophy, strategy. He read
ethics, religion, biology. He kept track of every student in the school,
from the newly arrived launchies to the students about to graduate. When
he saw them in the halls, he knew more about them than they knew about
themselves. He knew their nation of origin. He knew how much they missed
their families and how important their native country or ethnic or religious
group was to them. He knew how valuable they might be to a nationalist or
idealist resistance movement.
And he kept reading everything Wiggin read, watching everything Wiggin
watched. Hearing about Wiggin from the other kids. Watching Wiggin's
standings on the boards. Meeting more of Wiggin's friends, hearing them talk
about him. Bean listened to all the things Wiggin was quoted as saying
and tried to fit them into some coherent philosophy, some worldview, some
attitude, some plan.
And he found out something interesting. Despite Wiggin's altruism,
despite his willingness to sacrifice, not one of his friends ever said
that Wiggin came and talked over his problems. They all went to Wiggin,
but who did Wiggin go to? He had no more *real* friends than Bean did.
Wiggin kept his own counsel, just like Bean.
Soon Bean found himself being advanced out of classes whose work he
had already mastered and being plunged into classwork with older and older
groups, who looked at him with annoyance at first, but later simply with
awe, as he raced past them and was promoted again before they were half
done. Had Wiggin been pushed through his classwork at an accelerated rate?
Yes, but not quite as fast. Was that because Bean was better? Or because the
deadline was getting closer?
For the sense of urgency in teacher evaluations was getting greater. The
ordinary students -- as if any child here were ordinary -- were getting
briefer and briefer notations. They weren't being ignored, exactly. But
the best were being identified and lifted out.
The *seeming* best. For Bean began to realize that the teachers'
evaluations were often colored by which students they liked the best. The
teachers pretended to be dispassionate, impartial, but in fact they got
sucked in by the more charismatic children, just as the other students did.
If a kid was likable, they gave him better comments on leadership, even
if he was really just glib and athletic and needed to surround himself
with a team. As often as not, they tagged the very students who would be the
least effective commanders, while ignoring the ones who, to Bean, showed
real promise. It was frustrating to watch them make such obvious mistakes.
Here they had Wiggin right before their eyes -- Wiggin, who was the real
thing -- and they still went on misreading everybody else. Getting all
excited about some of these energetic, self-confident, ambitious kids even
though they weren't actually producing excellent work.
Wasn't this whole school set up in order to find and train the best
possible commanders? The Earthside testing did pretty well -- there were
no real dolts among the students. But the system had overlooked one
crucial factor: How were the teachers chosen?
They were career military, all of them. Proven officers with real
ability. But in the military you don't get trusted positions just because of
your ability. You also have to attract the notice of superior officers. You
have to be liked. You have to fit in with the system. You have to look like
what the officers above you think that officers should look like. You
have to think in ways that they are comfortable with.
The result was that you ended up with a command structure that was
top-heavy with guys who looked good in uniform and talked right and did well
enough not to embarrass themselves, while the really good ones quietly
did all the serious work and bailed out their superiors and got blamed for
errors they had advised against until they eventually got out.
That was the military. These teachers were all the kind of people who
thrived in that environment. And they were selecting their favorite students
based on precisely that same screwed-up sense of priorities.
No wonder a kid like Dink Meeker saw through it and refused to play.
He was one of the few kids who was both likable *and* talented. His
likability made them try to make him commander of his own army; his talent
let him understand why they were doing it and turn them down because he
couldn't believe in such a stupid system. And other kids, like Petra
Arkanian, who had obnoxious personalities but could handle strategy and
tactics in their sleep, who had the confidence to lead others into war, to
trust their own decisions and act on them -- they didn't care about trying
to be one of the guys, and so they got overlooked, every flaw became
magnified, every strength belittled.
So Bean began constructing his own anti-army. Kids who weren't getting
picked out by the teachers, but were the real talents, the ones with heart
and mind, not just face and chat. He began to imagine who among them
should be officers, leading their own toons under the command of ...
Of Ender Wiggin, of course. Bean could not imagine anyone else in that
position. Wiggin would know how to use them.
And Bean knew just where he should be. Close to Wiggin. A toon leader,
but the most trusted of them. Wiggin's righthand man. So when Wiggin was
about to make a mistake, Bean could point out to him the error he was
making. And so that Bean could be close enough to maybe understand why
Wiggin was human and he himself was not.
***
Sister Carlotta used her new security clearance like a scalpel, most
of the time, slicing her way into the information establishment, picking
up answers here and new questions there, talking to people who never guessed
what her project was, why she knew so much about their top-secret work, and
quietly putting it all together in her own mind, in memos to Colonel Graff.
But sometimes she wielded her top security clearance like a meat-ax,
using it to get past prison wardens and security officers, who saw her
unbelievable level of need-to-know and then, when they checked to make
sure her documents weren't a stupid forgery, were screamed at by officers so
high-ranked that it made them want to treat Sister Carlotta like God.
That's how, at last, she came face to face with Bean's father. Or at
least the closest thing to a father that he had.
"I want to talk to you about your installation in Rotterdam."
He looked at her sourly. "I already reported on everything. That's why
I'm not dead, though I wonder if I made the right choice."
"They told me you were quite the whiner," said Sister Carlotta,
utterly devoid of compassion. "I didn't expect it to surface so quickly."
"Go to hell." He turned his back on her.
As if that meant anything. "Dr. Volescu, the records show that you had
twenty-three babies in your organ farm in Rotterdam."
He said nothing.
"But of course that's a lie."
Silence.
"And, oddly enough, I know that the lie is not your idea. Because I know
that your installation was not an organ farm indeed, and that the reason
you aren't dead is because you agreed to plead guilty to running an organ
farm in exchange for never discussing what you were *really* doing there."
He slowly turned around again. Enough that he could look up and see
her with a sidelong glance. "Let me see that clearance you tried to show
me before."
She showed it to him again. He studied it.
"What do you know?" he asked.
"I know your real crime was continuing a research project after it was
closed down. Because you had these fertilized eggs that had been
meticulously altered. You had turned Anton's key. You wanted them to be
born. You wanted to see who they would become."
"If you know all that, why have you come to me? Everything I knew is
in the documents you must have read."
"Not at all," said Sister Carlotta. "I don't care about confessions. I
don't care about logistics. I want to know about the babies."
"They're all dead," he said. "We killed them when we knew we were
about to be discovered." He looked at her with bitter defiance. "Yes,
infanticide. Twenty-three murders. But since the government couldn't admit
that such children had ever existed, I was never charged with the crimes.
God judges me, though. God will press the charges. Is that why you're
here? Is that who gave you your clearance?"
You make jokes about this? "All I want to know is what you learned about
them."
"I learned nothing, there was no time, they were still babies."
"You had them for almost a year. They developed. All the work done since
Anton found his key was theoretical. *You* watched the babies grow."
A slow smile crept across his face. "This is like those Nazi medical
crimes all over again. You deplore what I did, but you still want to know
the results of my research."
"You monitored their growth. Their health. Their intellectual
development."
"We were about to start the tracking of intellectual development. The
project wasn't funded, of course, so it's not as if we could provide much
more than a clean warm room and basic bodily needs."
"Their bodies, then. Their motor skills."
"Small," he said. "They are born small, they grow slowly. Undersized and
underweight, all of them."
"But very bright?"
"Crawling very young. Making pre-speech sounds far earlier than normal.
That's all we knew. I didn't see them often myself. I couldn't afford the
risk of detection."
"So what was your prognosis?"
"Prognosis?" "Prognosis?"
"How did you see their future?"
"Dead. That's everyone's future. What are you talking about?"
"If they hadn't been slaughtered, Dr. Volescu, what would have
happened?"
"They would have kept on growing, of course."
"And later?"
"There *is* no later. They keep on growing."
She thought for a moment, trying to process the information.
"That's right, Sister. You're getting it. They grow slowly, but they
never stop. That's what Anton's key does. Unlocks the mind because the brain
never stops growing. But neither does anything else. The cranium keeps
expanding -- it's never fully closed. The arms and legs, longer and longer."
"So when they reach adult height ..."
"There is no adult height. There's just height at time of death. You
can't keep growing like that forever. There's a reason why evolution
builds a stop-clock into the growth control of long-lived bodies. You
can't keep growing without some organ giving out, eventually. Usually the
heart."
The implications filled Sister Carlotta with dread. "And the rate of
this growth? In the children, I mean? How long until they are at normal
height for their age?"
"My guess was that they'd catch up twice," said Volescu. "Once just
before puberty, and then the normal kids would leap ahead for a while, but
slow and steady wins the race, n'est-ce pas? By twenty, they would be
giants. And then they'd die, almost certainly before age twenty-five. Do you
have any idea how huge they would be? So my killing them, you see -- it was
a mercy."
"I doubt any of them would have chosen to miss out on even the mere
twenty years you took from them."
"They never knew what happened to them. I'm not a monster. We drugged
them all. They died in their sleep and then the bodies were incinerated."
"What about puberty? Would they ever mature sexually?"
"That's the part we'll never know, isn't it?"
Sister Carlotta got up to go.
"He lived, didn't he?" asked Volescu.
"Who?"
"The one we lost. The one whose body wasn't with the others. I counted
only twenty-two going into the fire."
"When you worship Moloch, Dr. Volescu, you get no answers but the ones
your chosen god provides."
"Tell me what he's like." His eyes were so hungry.
"You know it was a boy?"
"They were all boys," said Volescu.
"What, did you discard the girls?"
"How do you think I got the genes I worked with? I implanted my own
altered DNA into denucleated eggs."
"God help us, they were all your own twins?"
"I'm not the monster you think I am," said Volescu. "I brought the
frozen embryos to life because I had to know what they would become. Killing
them was my greatest sorrow."
"And yet you did it -- to save yourself."
"I was afraid. And the thought came to me: They're only copies. It isn't
murder to discard the copies."
"Their souls and lives were their own."
"Do you think the government would have let them live? Do you really
think they would have survived? Any of them?"
"You don't deserve to have a son," said Sister Carlotta.
"But I have one, don't I?" He laughed. "While you, Miss Carlotta,
perpetual bride of the invisible God, how many do *you* have?"
"They may have been copies, Volescu, but even dead they're worth more
than the original."
He continued laughing as she walked down the corridor away from him, but
it sounded forced. She knew his laughter was a mask for grief. But it
wasn't the grief of compassion, or even of remorse. It was the grief of a
damned soul.
Bean. God be thanked, she thought, that you do not know your father, and
never will. You're nothing like him. You're far more human.
In the back of her mind, though, she had one nagging doubt. Was she sure
Bean had more compassion, more humanity? Or was Bean as cold of heart as
this man? As incapable of empathy? Was he all mind?
Then she thought of him growing and growing, from this too-tiny child to
a giant whose body could no longer sustain life. This was the legacy your
father gave you. This was Anton's key. She thought of David's cry, when he
learned of the death of his son. Absalom! Oh Absalom! Would God I could
die for thee, Absalom, my son!
But he was not dead yet, was he? Volescu might have been lying, might
simply be wrong. There might be some way to prevent it. And even if there
was not, there were still many years ahead of Bean. And how he lived those
years still mattered.
God raises up the children that he needs, and makes men and women of
them, and then takes them from this world at his good pleasure. To him all
of life is but a moment. All that matters is what that moment was used for.
And Bean *would* use it well. She was sure of that.
Or at least she hoped it with such fervor that it felt like certainty.
CHAPTER 12 -- ROSTER
"If Wiggin's the one, then let's get him to Eros."
"He's not ready for Command School yet. It's premature."
"Then we have to go with one of the alternates."
"That's your decision."
"*Our* decision! What do we have to go on but what you tell us?"
"I've told you about those older boys, too. You have the same data I
have."
"Do we have all of it?"
"Do you *want* all of it?"
"Do we have the data on all the children with scores and evaluations
at such a high level?"
"No."
"Why not?"
"Some of them are disqualified for various reasons."
"Disqualified by whom?"
"By me."
"On what grounds?"
"One of them is borderline insane, for instance. We're trying to find
some structure in which his abilities will be useful. But he could not
possibly bear the weight of complete command."
"That's one."
"Another is undergoing surgery to correct a physical defect."
"Is it a defect that limits his ability to command?"
"It limits his ability to be trained to command."
"But it's being fixed."
"He's about to have his third operation. If it works, he might amount to
something. But, as you say, there won't be time."
"How many more children have you concealed from us?"
"I have *concealed* none of them. If you mean how many have I simply not
referred to you as potential commanders, the answer is *all* of them.
Except the ones whose names you already have."
"Let me be blunt. We hear rumors about a very young one."
"They're all young."
"We hear rumors about a child who makes the Wiggin boy look slow."
"They all have their different strengths."
"There are those who want you relieved of your command."
"If I'm not to be allowed to select and train these kids properly, I'd
prefer to be relieved, sir. Consider this a request."
"So it was a stupid threat. Advance them all as quickly as you can. just
keep in mind that they need a certain amount of time in Command School,
too. It does us no good to give them all your training if they don't have
time to get ours."
***
Dimak met Graff in the battleroom control center. Graff conducted all
his secure meetings here, until they could be sure Bean had grown enough
that he couldn't get through the ducts. The battlerooms had their own
separate air systems.
Graff had an essay on his desk display. "Have you read this? 'Problems
in Campaigning Between Solar Systems Separated by Light-years.'"
"It's been circulating pretty widely among the faculty."
"But it isn't signed," said Graff. "You don't happen to know who wrote
it, do you?"
"No, sir. Did you write it?"
"I'm no scholar, Dimak, you know that. In fact, this was written by a
student."
"At Command School?"
"A student here."
At that moment Dimak understood why he had been called in. "Bean."
"Six years old. The paper reads like a work of scholarship!"
"I should have guessed. He picks up the voice of the strategists he's
been reading. Or their translators. Though I don't know what will happen now
that he's he's [sic -- should be a single "he's"] been reading Frederick
and Bulow in the original -- French and German. He inhales languages and
breathes them back out." out."
"What did you think of this paper?"
"You already know it's killing me to keep key information from this boy.
If he can write *this* with what he knows, what would happen if we told him
everything? Colonel Graff, why can't we promote him right out of Battle
School, set him loose as a theorist, and then watch what he spits out?"
"Our job isn't to find theorists here. It's too late for theory anyway."
"I just think ... look, a kid so small, who'd follow him? He's being
wasted here. But when he writes, nobody knows how little he is. Nobody knows
how young he is."
"I see your point, but we're not going to breach security, period."
"Isn't he already a grave security risk?"
"The mouse who scutters through the ducts?"
"No. I think he's grown too big for that. He doesn't do those side-arm
pushups anymore. I thought the security risk came from the fact that he
guessed that an offensive fleet had been launched generations ago, so why
were we still training children for command?"
"From analysis of his papers, from his activities when he signs on as
a teacher, we think he's got a theory and it's wonderfully wrong. But he
believes his false theory *only* because he doesn't know about the ansible.
Do you understand? Because that's the main thing we'd have to tell him
about, isn't it?"
"Of course."
"So you see, that's the one thing we can't tell him."
"What is his theory?"
"That we're assembling children here in preparation for a war between
nations, or between nations and the I.F. A landside war, back on Earth."
"Why would we take the kids into space to prepare for a war on Earth?"
"Think just a minute and you'll get it."
"Because ... because when we've licked the Formics, there probably
*will* be a little landside conflict. And all the talented commanders -- the
I.F. would already have them."
"You see? We can't have this kid publishing, not even within the I.F.
Not everybody has given up loyalty to groups on Earth."
"So why did you call me in?"
"Because I *do* want to use him. We aren't running the war here, but
we *are* running a school. Did you read his paper about the
ineffectiveness of using officers as teachers?"
"Yes. I felt slapped."
"This time he's mostly wrong, because he has no way of knowing how
nontraditional our recruitment of faculty has always been. But he may also
be a little bit right. Because our system of testing for officer potential
was designed to produce candidates with the traits identified in the most
highly regarded officers in the Second Invasion."
"Hi-ho." "Hi-ho."
"You see? Some of the highly regarded were officers who performed well
in battle, but the war was too short to weed out the deadwood. The
officers they tested included just the kind of people he criticized in his
paper. So ..."
"So he had the wrong reason, but the right result."
"Absolutely. It gives us little pricks like Bonzo Madrid. You've known
officers like him, haven't you? So why should we be surprised that our tests
give him command of an army even though he has no idea what to do with it.
All the vanity and all the stupidity of Custer or Hooker or -- hell, pick
your own vain incompetent, it's the most common kind of general officer."
"May I quote you?"
"I'll deny it. The thing is, Bean has been studying the dossiers of
all the other students. We think he's evaluating them for loyalty to their
native identity group, and also for their excellence as commanders."
"By *his* standards of excellence."
"We need to get Ender the command of an army. We're under a lot of
pressure to get our leading candidates into Command School. But if we bust
one of the current commanders in order to make a place for Ender, it'll
cause too much resentment."
"So you have to give him a new army."
"Dragon."
"There are still kids here who remember the last Dragon Army."
"Right. I like that. The jinx."
"I see. You want to give Ender a running start."
"It gets worse."
"I thought it would."
"We also aren't going to give him any soldiers that aren't already on
their commanders' transfer list."
"The dregs? What are you *doing* to this kid?"
"If we choose them, by our ordinary standards, then yes, the dregs.
But we aren't going to choose Ender's army."
"Bean?"
"Our tests are worthless on this, right? Some of those dregs are the
very best students, according to Bean, right? And he's been studying the
launchies. So give him an assignment. Tell him to solve a hypothetical
problem. Construct an army only out of launchies. Maybe the soldiers on
the transfer lists, too."
"I don't think there's any way to do that without telling him that we're
on to his fake teacher log-in."
"So tell him."
"Then he won't believe anything he found while searching."
"He didn't find anything," said Graff. "We didn't have to plant anything
fake for him to find, because he had his false theory. See? So whether he
thinks we planted stuff or not, he'll stay deceived and we're still secure."
"You seem to be counting on your understanding of his psychology."
"Sister Carlotta assures me that he differs from ordinary human DNA in
only one small area."
"So now he's human again?"
"I've got to make decisions based on *something*, Dimak!"
"So the jury's still out on the human thing?"
"Get me a roster of the hypothetical army Bean would pick, so we can
give it to Ender."
"He'll put himself in it, you know."
"He damn well better, or he's not as smart as we've been thinking."
"What about Ender? Is he ready?"
"Anderson thinks he is." Graff sighed. "To Bean, it's still just a game,
because none of the weight has fallen on him yet. But Ender ... I think
he knows, deep down, where this is going to lead. I think he feels it
already."
"Sir, just because you're feeling the weight doesn't mean he is."
Graff laughed. "You cut straight to the heart of things, don't you!"
"Bean's hungry for it, sir. If Ender isn't, then why not put the
burden where it's wanted?"
"If Bean's hungry for it, it proves he's still too young. Besides, the
hungry ones always have something to prove. Look at Napoleon. Look at
Hitler. Bold at first, yes, but then *still* bold later on, when they need
to cautious, to pull back. Patton. Caesar. Alexander. Always overreaching,
never quite putting the finish on it. No, it's Ender, not Bean. Ender
doesn't want to do it, so he won't have anything to prove."
"Are you sure you're not just picking the kind of commander you'd want
to serve under?"
"That's precisely what I'm doing," said Graff. "Can you think of a
better standard?"
"The thing is, you can't pass the buck on this one, can you? Can't say
how it was the tests, you just followed the tests. The scores. Whatever."
"Can't run this like a machine."
"That's why you don't want Bean, isn't it? Because he was *made*, like a
machine."
"I don't analyze myself. I analyze *them*."
"So if we win, who really won the war? The commander you picked? Or you,
for picking him?"
"The Triumvirate, for trusting me. After their fashion. But if we lose
..."
"Well *then* it's definitely you."
"We're *all* dead then. What will they do? Kill me first? Or leave me
till last so I can contemplate the consequences of my error?"
"Ender, though. I mean if he's the one. *He* won't say it's you. He'll
take it all on himself. Not the credit for victory -- just the blame for
failure."
"Win or lose, the kid I pick is going to have a brutal time of it."
***
Bean got his summons during lunch. He reported at once to Dimak's
quarters.
He found his teacher sitting at his desk, reading something. The light
was set so that Bean couldn't read it through the dazzle.
"Have a seat," said Dimak.
Bean jumped up and sat on Dimak's bed, his legs dangling.
"Let me read you something," said Dimak. "'There are no fortifications,
no magazines, no strong points ... In the enemy solar system, there can
be no living off the land, since access to habitable planets will be
possible only after complete victory ... Supply lines are not a problem,
since there are none to protect, but the cost of that is that all supplies
and ordnance must be carried with the invading fleet ... In effect, all
interstellar invasion fleets are suicide attacks, because time dilation
means that even if a fleet returns intact, almost no one they knew will
still be alive. They can never return, and so must be sure that their
force is sufficient to be decisive and therefore is worth the sacrifice....
Mixed-sex forces allow the possibility of the army becoming a permanent
colony and/or occupying force on the captured enemy planet."
Bean listened complacently. He had left it in his desk for them to
find it, and they had done so.
"You wrote this, Bean, but you never submitted it to anybody."
"There was never an assignment that it fit."
"You don't seem surprised that we found it."
"I assume that you routinely scan our desks."
"Just as you routinely scan ours?"
Bean felt his stomach twist with fear. They knew.
"Cute, naming your false log-in 'Graff' with a caret in front of it."
Bean said nothing.
"You've been scanning all the other students' records. Why?"
"I wanted to know them. I've only made friends with a few."
"Close friends with none."
"I'm little and I'm smarter than they are. Nobody's standing in line."
"So you use their records to tell you more about them. Why do you feel
the need to understand them?"
"Someday I'll be in command of one of these armies."
"Plenty of time to get to know your soldiers then."
"No sir," said Bean. "No time at all."
"Why do you say that?"
"Because of the way I've been promoted. And Wiggin. We're the two best
students in this school, and we're being raced through. I'm not going to
have much time when I get an army."
"Bean, be realistic. It's going to be a long time before anybody's going
to be willing to follow you into battle."
Bean said nothing. He knew that this was false, even if Dimak didn't.
"Let's see just how good your analysis is. Let me give you an assignment."
"For which class?"
"No class, Bean. I want you to create a hypothetical army. Working
only with launchies, construct an entire roster, the full complement of
forty-one soldiers."
"*No* veterans?"
Bean meant the question neutrally, just checking to make sure he
understood the rules. But Dimak seemed to take it as criticism of the
unfairness of it. "No, tell you what, you can include veterans who are
posted for transfer at their commanders' request. That'll give you some
experienced ones."
The ones the commander couldn't work with. Some really were losers,
but some were the opposite. "Fine," said Bean.
"How long do you think it will take you?"
Bean already had a dozen picked out. "I can tell the list to you right
now."
"I want you to think about it seriously."
"I already have. But you need to answer a couple of questions first. You
said forty-one soldiers, but that would include the commander."
"All right, forty, and leave the commander blank."
"I have another question. Am I to command the army?"
"You can write it up that way, if you want."
But Dimak's very unconcern told Bean that the army was not for him.
"This army's for Wiggin, isn't it?"
Dimak glowered. "It's hypothetical."
"Definitely Wiggin," said Bean. "You can't boot somebody else out of
command to make room for him, so you're giving Wiggin a whole new army. I
bet it's Dragon."
Dimak looked stricken, though he tried to cover it.
"Don't worry," said Bean. "I'll give him the best army you can form,
following those rules."
"I *said* this was hypothetical!"
"You think I wouldn't figure it out when I found myself in Wiggin's army
and everybody else in it was also on my roster?"
"Nobody's said we're actually going to follow your roster!"
"You will. Because I'll be right and you'll know it," said Bean. "And
I can promise you, it'll be a hell of an army. With Wiggin to train us,
we'll kick ass."
"Just do the hypothetical assignment, and talk to no one about it.
Ever."
That was dismissal, but Bean didn't want to be dismissed yet. They
came to *him*. They were having *him* do their work. He wanted to have his
say while they were still listening. "The reason this army can be so good is
that your system's been promoting a lot of the wrong kids. About half the
best kids in this school are launchies or on the transfer lists, because
they're the ones who haven't already been beaten into submission by the
kiss-ass idiots you put in command of armies or toons. These misfits and
little kids are the ones who can win. Wiggin will figure that out. He'll
know how to use us."
"Bean, you're not as smart about everything as you think you are!"
"Yes I am, sir," said Bean. "Or you wouldn't have given this
assignment to me. May I be dismissed? Or do you want me to tell you the
roster now?"
"Dismissed," said Dimak.
I probably shouldn't have provoked him, thought Bean. Now it's
possible that he'll fiddle with my roster just to prove he can. But that's
not the kind of man he is. If I'm not right about that, then I'm not right
about anybody else, either.
Besides, it felt good to speak the truth to someone in power.
***
After working with the list a little while, Bean was just as glad that
Dimak hadn't taken him up on his foolish offer to make up the roster on
the spot. Because it wasn't just a matter of naming the forty best
soldiers among the launchies and the transfer lists.
Wiggin was way early for command, and that would make it harder for
older kids to take it -- getting put into a kid's army. So he struck off the
list all who were older than Wiggin.
That left him with nearly sixty kids who were good enough to be in the
army. Bean was ranking them in order of value when he realized that he was
about to make another mistake. Quite a few of these kids were in the group
of launchies and soldiers that practiced with Wiggin during free time.
Wiggin would know these kids best, and naturally he'd look to them to be his
toon leaders. The core of his army.
The trouble was, while a couple of them would do fine as toon leaders,
relying on that group would mean passing over several who weren't part of
that group. Including Bean.
So he doesn't choose me to lead a toon. He isn't going to choose me
anyway, right? I'm too little. He won't look at me and see a leader.
Is this just about me, then? Am I corrupting this process just to get
myself a chance to show what I can do?
And if I am, what's wrong with that? I know what I can do, and no one
else really gets it. The teachers think I'm a scholar, they know I'm smart,
they trust my judgment, but they aren't making this army for me, they're
making it for him. I still have to prove to them what I can do. And if I
really am one of the best, it would be to the benefit of the program to have
it revealed as quickly as possible.
And then he thought: Is this how idiots rationalize their stupidity to
themselves?
"Ho, Bean," said Nikolai.
"Ho," said Bean. He passed a hand across his desk, blanking the display.
"Tell me." me."
"Nothing to tell. *You* looked grim."
"Just doing an assignment."
Nikolai laughed. "You never look that serious doing classwork. You
just read for a while and then you type for a while. Like it was nothing.
This is something."
"An extra assignment."
"A hard one, neh?"
"Not very."
"Sorry to break in. Just thought maybe something was wrong. Maybe a
letter from home."
They both laughed at that. Letters weren't that common here. Every few
months at the most. And the letters were pretty empty when they came. Some
never got mail at all. Bean was one of them, and Nikolai knew why. It wasn't
a secret, he was just the only one who noticed and the only one who asked
about it. "No family at *all*?" he had said. "Some kids' families, maybe I'm
the lucky one," Bean answered him, and Nikolai agreed. "But not mine. I
wish you had parents like mine." And then he went on about how he was an
only child, but his parents really worked hard to get him. "They did it with
surgery, fertilized five or six eggs, then twinned the healthiest ones a
few more times, and finally they picked me. I grew up like I was going to be
king or the Dalai Lama or something. And then one day the I.F. says, we
need him. Hardest thing my parents ever did, saying yes. But I said, What if
I'm the next Mazer Rackham? And they let me go."
That was months ago, but it was still between them, that conversation.
Kids didn't talk much about home. Nikolai didn't discuss his family with
anybody else, either. Just with Bean. And in return, Bean told him a
little about life on the street. Not a lot of details, because it would
sound like he was asking for pity or trying to look cool. But he mentioned
how they were organized into a family. Talked about how it was Poke's crew,
and then it became Achilles' family, and how they got into a charity
kitchen. Then Bean waited to see how much of this story started circulating.
None of it did. Nikolai never said a word about it to anyone else.
That was when Bean was sure that Nikolai was worth having as a friend. He
could keep things to himself without even having to be asked to do it.
And now here Bean was, making up the roster for this great army, and
here sat Nikolai, asking him what he was doing. Dimak had said to tell no
one, but Nikolai could keep a secret. What harm could it do?
Then Bean recovered his senses. Knowing about this wouldn't help Nikolai
in any way. Either he'd be in Dragon Army or he wouldn't. If he wasn't,
he'd know Bean hadn't put him there. If he was, it would be worse, because
he'd wonder if Bean had included him in the roster out of friendship instead
of excellence.
Besides, Nikolai shouldn't be in Dragon Army. Bean liked him and trusted
him, but Nikolai was not among the best of the launchies. He was smart,
he was quick, he was good -- but he was nothing special.
Except to me, thought Bean.
"It was a letter from *your* parents," said Bean. "They've stopped
writing to you, they like me better."
"Yeah, and the Vatican is moving to Mecca."
"And I'm going to be made Polemarch."
"No jeito," said Nikolai. "You too tall, bicho." Nikolai picked up his
desk. "I can't help you with your classwork tonight, Bean, so please don't
beg me." He lay back on his bed, started into the fantasy game.
Bean lay back, too. He woke up his display and began wrestling with
the names again. If he eliminated every one of the kids who'd been
practicing with Wiggin, how many of the good ones would it leave? Fifteen
veterans from the transfer lists. Twenty-two launchies, including Bean.
Why *hadn't* these launchies taken part in Wiggin's freetime
practices? The veterans, they were already in trouble with their commanders,
they weren't about to antagonize them any more, so it made sense for them
not to have taken part. But these launchies, weren't they ambitious? Or were
they bookish, trying to do it all through classwork instead of catching
on that the battleroom was everything? Bean couldn't fault them for that
-- it had taken him a while to catch on, too. Were they so confident of
their own abilities they didn't think they needed the extra prep? Or so
arrogant they didn't want anybody to think they owed their success to
Ender Wiggin? Or so shy they ...
No. He couldn't possibly guess their motives. They were all too
complex anyway. They were smart, with good evaluations -- good by Bean's
standards, not necessarily by the teachers'. That was all he needed to know.
If he gave Wiggin an army without a single kid he'd worked with in
practices, then all the army would start out equal in his eyes. Which
meant Bean would have the same chance as any other kid to earn Wiggin's
eye and maybe get command of a toon. If they couldn't compete with Bean
for that position, then too damn bad for them.
But that left him with thirty-seven names on the roster. Three more
slots to fill.
He went back and forth on a couple. Finally decided to include Crazy
Tom, a veteran who held the unenviable record of being the
most-transferred soldier in the history of the game who wasn't actually iced
and sent home. So far. The thing was, Crazy Tom really was good. Sharp
mind. But he couldn't stand it when somebody above him was stupid and
unfair. And when he got pissed, he really went off. Ranting, throwing
things, tearing bedding off every bed in his barracks once, another time
writing a message about what an idiot his commander was and mailing it to
every other student in the school. A few actually got it before the teachers
intercepted it, and they said it was the hottest thing they ever read.
Crazy Tom. Could be disruptive. But maybe he was just waiting for the
right commander. He was in.
And a girl, Wu, which of course had become Woo and even Woo-*hoo*.
Brilliant at her studies, absolutely a killer in the arcade games, but she
refused to be a toon leader and as soon as her commanders asked her, she put
in for a transfer and refused to fight until they gave it to her. Weird.
Bean had no idea why she did that -- the teachers were baffled, too. Nothing
in her tests to show why. What the hell, thought Bean. She's in.
Last slot.
He typed in Nikolai's name.
Am I doing him a favor? He's not bad, he's just a little slower than
these kids, just a little gentler. It'll be hard for him. And if he's left
out of it, he won't mind. He'll just do his best with whatever army he
gets sent to eventually.
And yet ... Dragon Army is going to be a legend. Not just here in Battle
School, either. These kids are going to go on to be leaders in the I.F.
Or somewhere, anyway. And they'll tell stories about when they were in
Dragon Army with the great Ender Wiggin. And if I include Nikolai, then even
if he isn't the best of the soldiers, even if he's in fact the slowest,
he'll still be *in*, he'll still be able to tell those stories someday.
And he's not bad. He won't embarrass himself. He won't bring down the army.
He'll do OK. So why not?
And I want him with me. He's the only one I've ever talked to. About
personal things. The only one who knows the name of Poke. I want him. And
there's a slot on the roster.
Bean went down the list one more time. Then he alphabetized it and
mailed it to Dimak.
***
The next morning, Bean, Nikolai, and three other kids in their launch
group had their assignment to Dragon Army. Months before they should have
been promoted to soldiers. The unchosen kids were envious, hurt, furious
by turn. Especially when they realized Bean was one of the chosen. "Do
they *make* uniform flash suits that size?"
It was a good question. And the answer was no, they didn't. The colors
of Dragon Army were grey, orange, grey. Because soldiers were usually a
lot older than Bean when they came in, they had to cut a flash suit down for
Bean, and they didn't do it all that well. Flash suits weren't manufactured
in space, and nobody had the tools to do a first-rate job of alteration.
When they finally got it to fit him, Bean wore his flash suit to the
Dragon Army barracks. Because it had taken him so long to be fitted, he
was the last to arrive. Wiggin arrived at the door just as Bean was
entering. "Go ahead," said Wiggin.
It was the first time Wiggin had ever spoken to him -- for all Bean
knew, the first time Wiggin had even noticed him. So thoroughly had Bean
concealed his fascination with Wiggin that he had made himself effectively
invisible.
Wiggin followed him into the room. Bean started down the corridor
between the bunks, heading for the back of the room where the younger
soldiers always had to sleep. He glanced at the other kids, who were all
looking at him as he passed with a mixture of horror and amusement. They
were in an army so lame that *this* little tiny kid was part of it?
Behind him, Wiggin was starting his first speech. Voice confident,
loud enough but not shouting, not nervous. "I'm Ender Wiggin. I'm your
commander. Bunking will be arranged by seniority."
Some of the launchies groaned.
"Veterans to the back of the room, newest soldiers to the front."
The groaning stopped. That was the opposite of the way things were
usually arranged. Wiggin was already shaking things up. Whenever he came
into the barracks, the kids closest to him would be the new ones. Instead of
getting lost in the shuffle, they'd always have his attention.
Bean turned around and headed back to the front of the room. He was
still the youngest kid in Battle School, but five of the soldiers were
from more recently arrived launch groups, so they got the positions
nearest the door. Bean got an upper bunk directly across from Nikolai, who
had the same seniority, being from the same launch group.
Bean clambered up onto his bed, hampered by his flash suit, and put
his palm beside the locker. Nothing happened.
"Those of you who are in an army for the first time," said Wiggin, "just
pull the locker open by hand. No locks. Nothing private here."
Laboriously Bean pulled off his flash suit to stow it in his locker.
Wiggin walked along between the bunks, making sure that seniority was
respected. Then he jogged to the front of the room. "All right, everybody.
Put on your flash suits and come to practice."
Bean looked at him in complete exasperation. Wiggin had been looking
right at him when he started taking off his flash suit. Why didn't he
suggest that Bean not take the damn thing off?
"We're on the morning schedule," Wiggin continued. "Straight to practice
after breakfast. Officially you have a free hour between breakfast and
practice. We'll see what happens after I find out how good you are."
Truth was, Bean felt like an idiot. Of course Wiggin would head for
practice immediately. He shouldn't have needed a warning not to take the
suit off. He should have *known*.
He tossed his suit pieces onto the floor and slid down the frame of
the bunk. A lot of the other kids were talking, flipping clothes at each
other, playing with their weapons. Bean tried to put on the cut-down suit,
but couldn't figure out some of the jury-rigged fastenings. He had to take
off several pieces and examine them to see how they fit, and finally gave
up, took it all off, and started assembling it on the floor.
Wiggin, unconcerned, glanced at his watch. Apparently three minutes
was his deadline. "All right, everybody out, now! On your way!"
"But I'm naked!" said one boy -- Anwar, from Ecuador, child of
Egyptian immigrants. His dossier ran through Bean's mind.
"Dress faster next time," said Wiggin.
Bean was naked, too. Furthermore, Wiggin was standing right there,
watching him struggle with his suit. He could have helped. He could have
waited. What am I getting myself in for?
"Three minutes from first call to running out the door -- that's the
rule this week," said Wiggin. "Next week the rule is two minutes. Move!"
Out in the corridor, kids who were in the midst of free time or were
heading for class stopped to watch the parade of the unfamiliar uniforms
of Dragon Army. And to mock the ones that were even more unusual.
One thing for sure. Bean was going to have to practice getting dressed
in his cut-down suit if he was going to avoid running naked through the
corridors. And if Wiggin didn't make any exceptions for him the first day,
when he'd only just got his nonregulation flash suit, Bean certainly was
*not* going to ask for special favors.
I chose to put myself in this army, Bean reminded himself as he jogged
along, trying to keep pieces of his flash suit from spilling out of his
arms.PART FOUR -- SOLDIER
CHAPTER 13 -- DRAGON ARMY
"I need access to Bean's genetic information," said Sister Carlotta.
"That's not for you," said Graff.
"And here I thought my clearance level would open any door."
"We invented a special new category of security, called 'Not for
Sister Carlotta.' We don't want you sharing Bean's genetic information
with anyone else. And you were already planning on putting it in other
hands, weren't you?"
"Only to perform a test. So ... you'll have to perform it for me. I want
a comparison between Bean's DNA and Volescu's."
"I thought you told me Volescu was the source of the cloned DNA."
"I've been thinking about it since I told you that, Colonel Graff, and
you know what? Bean doesn't look anything like Volescu. I couldn't see how
he could possibly grow up to be like him, either."
"Maybe the difference in growth patterns makes him look different, too."
"Maybe. But it's also possible Volescu is lying. He's a vain man."
"Lying about everything?"
"Lying about anything. About paternity, quite possibly. And if he's
lying about that --"
"Then maybe Bean's prognosis isn't so bleak? Don't you think we've
already checked with our genetics people? Volescu wasn't lying about that,
anyway. Anton's key will probably behave just the way he described."
"Please. Run the test and tell me the results."
"Because you don't want Bean to be Volescu's son."
"I don't want Bean to be Volescu's twin. And neither, I think, do you.
"
"Good point. Though I must tell you, the boy does have a vain streak."
"When you're as gifted as Bean, accurate self-assessment looks like
vanity to other people."
"Yeah, but he doesn't have to rub it in, does he?"
"Uh-oh. Has someone's ego been hurt?"
"Not mine. Yet. But one of his teachers is feeling a little bruised."
"I notice you aren't telling me I faked his scores anymore."
"Yes, Sister Carlotta, you were right all along. He deserves to be here.
And so does ... Well, let's just say you hit the jackpot after all those
years of searching."
"It's humanity's jackpot."
"I said he was worth bringing up here, not that he was the one who'll
lead us to victory. The wheel's still spinning on that one. And my money's
on another number."
***
Going up the ladderways while holding a flash suit wasn't practical,
so Wiggin made the ones who were dressed run up and down the corridor,
working up a sweat, while Bean and the other naked or partially-dressed kids
got their suits on. Nikolai helped Bean get his suit fastened; it
humiliated Bean to need help, but it would have been worse to be the last
one finished -- the pesky little teeny brat who slows everyone down. With
Nikolai's help, he was not the last one done.
"Thanks."
"No ojjikay [sic -- no idea what this means]."
Moments later, they were streaming up the ladders to the battleroom
level. Wiggin took them all the way to the upper door, the one that opened
out into the middle of the battleroom wall. The one used for entering when
it was an actual battle. There were handholds on the sides, the ceiling, and
the floor, so students could swing out and hurl themselves into the
null-G environment. The story was that gravity was lower in the battleroom
because it was closer to the center of the station, but Bean had already
realized that was bogus. There would still be some centrifugal force at
the doors and a pronounced Coriolis effect. Instead, the battlerooms were
completely null. To Bean, that meant that the I.F. had a device that would
either block gravitation or, more likely, produce false gravity that was
perfectly balanced to counter Coriolis and centrifugal forces in the
battleroom, starting exactly at the door. It was a stunning technology --
and it was never discussed inside the I.F., at least not in the literature
available to students in Battle School, and completely unknown outside.
Wiggin assembled them in four files along the corridor and ordered
them to jump up and use the ceiling handholds to fling their bodies into the
room. "Assemble on the far wall, as if you were going for the enemy's
gate." To the veterans that meant something. To the launchies, who had never
been in a battle and had never, for that matter, entered through the
upper door, it meant nothing at all. "Run up and go four at a time when I
open the gate, one group per second." Wiggin walked to the back of the group
and, using his hook, a controller strapped to the inside of his wrist and
curved to conform to his left hand, he made the door, which had seemed quite
solid, disappear.
"Go!" The first four kids started running for the gate. "Go!" The next
group began to run before the first had even reached it. There would be no
hesitation or somebody would crash into you from behind. "Go!" The first
group grabbed and swung with varying degrees of clumsiness and heading out
in various directions. "Go!" Later groups learned, or tried to, from the
awkwardness of the earlier ones. "Go!"
Bean was at the end of the line, in the last group. Wiggin laid a hand
on his shoulder. "You can use a side handhold if you want."
Right, thought Bean. *Now* you decide to baby me. Not because my
meshugga flash suit didn't fit together right, but just because I'm short.
"Go suck on it," said Bean.
"Go!"
Bean kept pace with the other three, though it meant pumping his legs
half again as fast, and when he got near the gate he took a flying leap,
tapped the ceiling handhold with his fingers as he passed, and sailed out
into the room with no control at all, spinning in three nauseating
directions at once.
But he didn't expect himself to do any better, and instead of fighting
the spin, he calmed himself and did his anti-nausea routine, relaxing
himself until he neared a wall and had to prepare for impact. He didn't land
near one of the recessed handholds and wasn't facing the right way to
grab anything even if he had. So he rebounded, but this time was a little
more stable as he flew, and he ended up on the ceiling very near the back
wall. It took him less time than some to make his way down to where the
others were assembling, lined up along the floor under the middle gate on
the back wall -- the enemy gate.
Wiggin sailed calmly through the air. Because he had a hook, during
practice he could maneuver in midair in ways that soldiers couldn't;
during battle, though, the hook would be useless, so commanders had to
make sure they didn't become dependent on the hook's added control. Bean
noted approvingly that Wiggin seemed not to use the hook at all. He sailed
in sideways, snagged a handhold on the floor about ten paces out from the
back wall, and hung in the air. Upside down.
Fixing his gaze on one of them, Wiggin demanded, "Why are you upside
down, soldier?"
Immediately some of the other soldiers started to turn themselves upside
down like Wiggin.
"Attention!" Wiggin barked. All movement stopped. "I said why are you
upside down!"
Bean was surprised that the soldier didn't answer. Had he forgotten what
the teacher did in the shuttle on the way here? The deliberate
disorientation? Or was that something that only Dimak did?
"I said why does every one of you have his feet in the air and his
head toward the ground!"
Wiggin didn't look at Bean in particular, and this was one question Bean
didn't want to answer. There was no assurance of which particular correct
answer Wiggin was looking for, so why open his mouth just to get shut
down?
It was a kid named Shame -- short for Seamus -- who finally spoke up.
"Sir, this is the direction we were in coming out of the door." Good job,
thought Bean. Better than some lame argument that there was no up or down in
null-G.
"Well what difference is that supposed to make! What difference does
it make what the gravity was back in the corridor! Are we going to fight
in the corridor? Is there any gravity here?"
No sir, they all murmured.
"From now on, you forget about gravity before you go through that door.
The old gravity is gone, erased. Understand me? Whatever your gravity is
when you get to the door, remember -- the enemy's gate is down. Your feet
are toward the enemy gate. Up is toward your own gate. North is that way" --
he pointed toward what had been the ceiling -- "south is that way, east
is that way, west is -- what way?"
They pointed.
"That's what I expected," said Wiggin. "The only process you've mastered
is the process of elimination, and the only reason you've mastered that
is because you can do it in the toilet."
Bean watched, amused. So Wiggin subscribed to the
you're-so-stupid-you-need-me-to-wipe-your-butts school of basic training.
Well, maybe that was necessary. One of the rituals of training. Boring
till it was over, but ... commander's choice.
Wiggin glanced at Bean, but his eyes kept moving.
"What was the circus I saw out here! Did you call that forming up? Did
you call that flying? Now everybody, launch and form up on the ceiling!
Right now! Move!"
Bean knew what the trap was and launched for the wall they had just
entered through before Wiggin had even finished talking. Most of the
others also got what the test was, but a fair number of them launched the
wrong way -- toward the direction Wiggin had called *north* instead of the
direction he had identified as *up*. This time Bean happened to arrive
near a handhold, and he caught it with surprising ease. He had done it
before in his launch group's battleroom practices, but he was small enough
that, unlike the others, it was quite possible for him to land in a place
that had no handhold within reach. Short arms were a definite drawback in
the battleroom. On short bounds he could aim at a handhold and get there
with some accuracy. On a cross-room jump there was little hope of that. So
it felt good that this time, at least, he didn't look like an oaf. In fact,
having launched first, he arrived first.
Bean turned around and watched as the ones who had blown it made the
long, embarrassing second leap to join the rest of the army. He was a little
surprised at who some of the bozos were. Inattention can make clowns of
us all, he thought.
Wiggin was watching him again, and this time it was no passing glance.
"You!" Wiggin pointed at him. "Which way is down?"
Didn't we just cover this? "Toward the enemy door."
"Name, kid?"
Come on, Wiggin really didn't know who the short kid with the highest
scores in the whole damn school was? Well, if we're playing mean sergeant
and hapless recruit, I better follow the script. "This soldier's name is
Bean, sir."
"Get that for size or for brains?"
Some of the other soldiers laughed. But not many of them. *They* knew
Bean's reputation. To them it was no longer funny that he was so small -- it
was just embarrassing that a kid that small could make perfect scores on
tests that had questions they didn't even understand.
"Well, Bean, you're right onto things." Wiggin now included the whole
group as he launched into a lecture on how coming through the door feet
first made you a much smaller target for the enemy to shoot at. Harder for
him to hit you and freeze you. "Now, what happens when you're frozen?"
"Can't move," somebody said.
"That's what frozen *means*," said Wiggin. "But what *happens* to
you?"
Wiggin wasn't phrasing his question very clearly, in Bean's opinion, and
there was no use in prolonging the agony while the others figured it out.
So Bean spoke up. "You keep going in the direction you started in. At the
speed you were going when you were flashed."
"That's true," said Wiggin. "You five, there on the end, move!" He
pointed at five soldiers, who spent long enough looking at each other to
make sure which five he meant that Wiggin had time to flash them all,
freezing them in place. During practice, it took a few minutes for a
freeze to wear off, unless the commander used his hook to unfreeze them
earlier.
"The next five, move!"
Seven kids moved at once -- no time to count. Wiggin flashed them as
quickly as he flashed the others, but because they had already launched,
they kept moving at a good clip toward the walls they had headed for.
The first five were hovering in the air near where they had been frozen.
"Look at these so-called soldiers. Their commander ordered them to move,
and now look at them. Not only are they frozen, they're frozen right here,
where they can get in the way. While the others, because they moved when
they were ordered, are frozen down there, plugging up the enemy's lanes,
blocking the enemy's vision. I imagine that about five of you have
understood the point of this."
We all understand it, Wiggin. It's not like they bring stupid people
up here to Battle School. It's not like I didn't pick you the best available
army.
"And no doubt Bean is one of them. Right, Bean?"
Bean could hardly believe that Wiggin was singling him out *again*.
Just because I'm little, he's using me to embarrass the others. The
little guy knows the answers, so why don't you big boys.
But then, Wiggin doesn't realize yet. He thinks he has an army of
incompetent launchies and rejects. He hasn't had a chance to see that he
actually has a select group. So he thinks of me as the most ludicrous of a
sad lot. He's found out I'm not an idiot, but he still assumes the others
are.
Wiggin was still looking at him. Oh, yeah, he had asked a question.
"Right, sir," said Bean.
"Then what is the point?"
Spit back to him exactly what he just said to us. "When you are
ordered to move, move fast, so if you get iced you'll bounce around
instead of getting in the way of your own army's operations."
"Excellent. At least I have one soldier who can figure things out."
Bean was disgusted. This was the commander who was supposed to turn
Dragon into a legendary army? Wiggin was supposed to be the alpha and
omega of the Battle School, and he's playing the game of singling me out
to be the goat. Wiggin didn't even find out our scores, didn't discuss his
soldiers with the teachers. If he did, he'd already know that I'm the
smartest kid in the school. The others all know it. That's why they're
looking at each other in embarrassment. Wiggin is revealing his own
ignorance.
Bean saw how Wiggin seemed to be registering the distaste of his own
soldiers. It was just an eyeblink, but maybe Wiggin finally got it that
his make-fun-of-the-shrimp ploy was backfiring. Because he finally got on
with the business of training. He taught them how to kneel in midair -- even
flashing their own legs to lock them in place -- and then fire between
their knees as they moved downward toward the enemy, so that their legs
became a shield, absorbing fire and allowing them to shoot for longer
periods of time out in the open. A good tactic, and Bean finally began to
get some idea of why Wiggin might not be a disastrous commander after all.
He could sense the others giving respect to their new commander at last.
When they'd got the point, Wiggin thawed himself and all the soldiers he
had frozen in the demonstration. "Now," he said, "which way is the
enemy's gate?"
"Down!" they all answered.
"And what is our attack position?"
Oh, right, thought Bean, like we can all give an explanation in unison.
The only way to answer was to demonstrate -- so Bean flipped himself away
from the wall, heading for the other side, firing between his knees as he
went. He didn't do it perfectly -- there was a little rotation as he went --
but all in all, he did OK for his first actual attempt at the maneuver.
Above him, he heard Wiggin shout at the others. "Is Bean the only one
who knows how?"
By the time Bean had caught himself on the far wall, the whole rest of
the army was coming after him, shouting as if they were on the attack.
Only Wiggin remained at the ceiling. Bean noticed, with amusement, that
Wiggin was standing there oriented the same way he had been in the
corridor -- his head "north," the old "up." He might have the theory down
pat, but in practice, it's hard to shake off the old gravity-based thinking.
Bean had made it a point to orient himself sideways, his head to the west.
And the soldiers near him did the same, taking their orientation from him.
If Wiggin noticed, he gave no sign.
"Now come back at me, all of you, attack *me*!"
Immediately his flash suit lit up with forty weapons firing at him as
his entire army converged on him, firing all the way. "Ouch," said Wiggin
when they arrived. "You got me."
Most of them laughed.
"Now, what are your legs good for, in combat?"
Nothing, said some boys.
"Bean doesn't think so," said Wiggin.
So he isn't going to let up on me even now. Well, what does he want to
hear? Somebody else muttered "shields," but Wiggin didn't key in on that, so
he must have something else in mind. "They're the best way to push off
walls," Bean guessed.
"Right," said Wiggin.
"Come on, pushing off is movement, not combat," said Crazy Tom. A few
others murmured their agreement.
Oh good, now it starts, thought Bean. Crazy Tom picks a meaningless
quarrel with his commander, who gets pissed off at him and ...
But Wiggin didn't take umbrage at Crazy Tom's correction. He just
corrected him back, mildly. "There *is* no combat without movement. Now,
with your legs frozen like this, can you push off walls?"
Bean had no idea. Neither did anyone else.
"Bean?" asked Wiggin. Of course.
"I've never tried it," said Bean, "but maybe if you faced the wall and
doubled over at the waist --"
"Right but wrong. Watch me. My back's to the wall, legs are frozen.
Since I'm kneeling, my feet are against the wall, Usually, when you push off
you have to push downward, so you string out your body behind you like a
string *bean*, right?"
The group laughed. For the first time, Bean realized that maybe Wiggin
wasn't being stupid to get the whole group laughing at the little guy. Maybe
Wiggin knew perfectly well that Bean was the smartest kid, and had
singled him out like this because he could tap into all the resentment the
others felt for him. This whole session was guaranteeing that the other kids
would all think it was OK to laugh at Bean, to despise him even though he
was smart.
Great system, Wiggin. Destroy the effectiveness of your best soldier,
make sure he gets no respect.
However, it was more important to learn what Wiggin was teaching than to
feel sullen about the way he was teaching it. So Bean watched intently as
Wiggin demonstrated a frozen-leg takeoff from the wall. He noticed that
Wiggin gave himself a deliberate spin. It would make it harder for him to
shoot as he flew, but it would also make it very hard for a distant enemy to
focus enough light on any part of him for long enough to get a kill.
I may be pissed off, but that doesn't mean I can't learn.
It was a long and grueling practice, drilling over and over again on new
skills. Bean saw that Wiggin wasn't willing to let them learn each
technique separately. They had to do them all at once, integrating them into
smooth, continuous movements. Like dancing, Bean thought. You don't learn
to shoot and then learn to launch and then learn to do a controlled spin
-- you learn to launch-shoot-spin.
At the end, all of them dripping with sweat, exhausted, and flushed with
the excitement of having learned stuff that they'd never heard of other
soldiers doing, Wiggin assembled them at the lower door and announced that
they'd have another practice during free time. "And don't tell me that
free time is supposed to be free. I know that, and you're perfectly free
to do what you want. I'm *inviting* you to come to an extra, *voluntary*
practice."
They laughed. This group consisted entirely of kids who had *not* chosen
to do extra battleroom practice with Wiggin before, and he was making
sure they understood that he expected them to change their priorities now.
But they didn't mind. After this morning they knew that when Wiggin ran a
practice, every second was effective. They couldn't afford to miss a
practice or they'd fall significantly behind. Wiggin would get their free
time. Even Crazy Tom wasn't arguing about it.
But Bean knew that he had to change his relationship with Wiggin right
now, or there was no chance that he would get a chance for leadership.
What Wiggin had done to him in today's practice, feeding on the resentment
of the other kids for this little pipsqueak, would make it even less
plausible for Bean to be made a leader within the army -- if the other
kids despised him, who would follow him?
So Bean waited for Wiggin in the corridor after the others had gone on
ahead.
"Ho, Bean," said Wiggin.
"Ho, Ender," said Bean. Did Wiggin catch the sarcasm in the way Bean
said his name? Was that why he paused a moment before answering?
"*Sir*," said Wiggin softly.
Oh, cut out the merda, I've seen those vids, we all *laugh* at those
vids. "I know what you're doing, *Ender*, sir, and I'm warning you."
"Warning me?"
"I can be the best man you've got, but don't play games with me."
"Or what?"
"Or I'll be the worst man you've got. One or the other." Not that Bean
expected Wiggin to understand what he meant by that. How Bean could only
be effective if he had Wiggin's trust and respect, how otherwise he'd just
be the little kid, useful for nothing. Wiggin would probably take it to mean
that Bean meant to cause trouble if Wiggin didn't use him. And maybe he did
mean that, a little.
"And what do you want?" asked Wiggin. "Love and kisses?"
Say it flat out, put it in his mind so plainly he can't pretend not to
understand. "I want a toon."
Wiggin walked close to Bean, looked down at him. To Bean, though, it was
a good sign that Wiggin hadn't just laughed. "Why should you get a toon?"
"Because I'd know what to do with it."
"Knowing what to do with a toon is easy. It's getting them to do it
that's hard. Why should any soldier want to follow a little pinprick like
you?"
Wiggin had got straight to the crux of the problem. But Bean didn't like
the malicious way he said it. "They used to call *you* that, I hear. I hear
Bonzo Madrid still does."
Wiggin wasn't taking the bait. "I asked you a question, soldier."
"I'll earn their respect, sir, if you don't stop me."
To his surprise, Wiggin grinned. "I'm helping you."
"Like hell."
"Nobody would notice you, except to feel sorry for the little kid. But I
made sure they *all* noticed you today."
You should have done your research, Wiggin. You're the only one who
didn't know already who I was.
"They'll be watching every move you make," said Wiggin. "All you have to
do to earn their respect now is be perfect."
"So I don't even get a chance to learn before I'm being judged."
That's not how you bring along talent.
"Poor kid. Nobody's treatin' him fair."
Wiggin's deliberate obtuseness infuriated Bean. You're smarter than
this, Wiggin!
Seeing Bean's rage, Wiggin brought a hand forward and pushed him until
his back rested firmly against the wall. "I'll tell you how to get a toon.
Prove to me you know what you're doing as a soldier. Prove to me you know
how to use other soldiers. And then prove to me that somebody's willing to
follow you into battle. Then you'll get your toon. But not bloody well
until."
Bean ignored the hand pressing against him. It would take a lot more
than that to intimidate him physically. "That's fair," he said. "*If* you
actually work that way, I'll be a toon leader in a month."
Now it was Wiggin's turn to be angry. He reached down, grabbed Bean by
the front of his flash suit, and slid him up the wall so they stood there
eye to eye. "When I say I work a certain way, Bean, then that's the way I
work."
Bean just grinned at him. In this low gravity, so high in the station,
picking up little kids wasn't any big test of strength. And Wiggin was no
bully. There was no serious threat here.
Wiggin let go of him. Bean slid down the wall and landed gently on his
feet, rebounded slightly, settled again. Wiggin walked to the pole and
slid down. Bean had won this encounter by getting under Wiggin's skin.
Besides, Wiggin knew he hadn't handled this situation very well. He wouldn't
forget. In fact, it was Wiggin who had lost a little respect, and he knew
it, and he'd be trying to earn it back.
Unlike you, Wiggin, I *do* give the other guy a chance to learn what
he's doing before I insist on perfection. You screwed up with me today,
but I'll give you a chance to do better tomorrow and the next day.
But when Bean got to the pole and reached out to take hold, he
realized his hands were trembling and his grip was too weak. He had to pause
a moment, leaning on the pole, till he had calmed enough.
That face-to-face encounter with Wiggin, he hadn't won that. It might
even have been a stupid thing to do. Wiggin *had* hurt him with those
snide comments, that ridicule. Bean had been studying Wiggin as the
subject of his private theology, and today he had found out that all this
time Wiggin didn't even know Bean existed. Everybody compared Bean to Wiggin
-- but apparently Wiggin hadn't heard or didn't care. He had treated Bean
like nothing. And after having worked so hard this past year to earn
respect, Bean didn't find it easy to be nothing again. It brought back
feelings he thought he left behind in Rotterdam. The sick fear of imminent
death. Even though he knew that no one here would raise a hand against him,
he still remembered being on the edge of dying when he first went up to
Poke and put his life in her hands.
Is that what I've done, once again? By putting myself on this roster,
I gave my future into this boy's hands. I counted on him seeing in me what I
see. But of course he couldn't. I have to give him time.
If there *was* time. For the teachers were moving quickly now, and
Bean might not *have* a year in this army to prove himself to Wiggin.CHAPTER
14 -- BROTHERS
"You have results for me?"
"Interesting ones. Volescu *was* lying. Somewhat."
"I hope you're going to be more precise than that."
"Bean's genetic alteration was not based on a clone of Volescu. But they
*are* related. Volescu is definitely not Bean's father. But he is almost
certainly Volescu's [sic -- should be "Bean's"] half-uncle or a double
cousin. I hope Volescu has a half-brother or double first cousin, because
such a man is the only possible father of the fertilized egg that Volescu
altered."
"You have a list of Volescu's relatives, I assume?"
"We didn't need any family at the trial. And Volescu's mother was not
married. He uses her name."
"So Volescu's father had another child somewhere only you don't even
know his name. I thought you knew everything."
"We know everything that we knew was worth knowing. That's a crucial
distinction. We simply haven't looked for Volescu's father. He's not
guilty of anything important. We can't investigate everybody."
"Another matter. Since you know everything that you know is worth
knowing, perhaps you can tell me why a certain crippled boy has been removed
from the school where I placed him?"
"Oh. Him. When you suddenly stopped touting him, we got suspicious. So
we checked him out. Tested him. He's no Bean, but he definitely belongs
here."
"And it never crossed your mind that I had good reason for keeping him
out of Battle School?"
"We assumed that you thought that we might choose Achilles over Bean,
who was, after all, far too young, so you offered only your favorite."
"You assumed. I've been dealing with you as if you were intelligent, and
you've been dealing with me as if I were an idiot. Now I see it should have
been the exact reverse."
"I didn't know Christians got so angry."
"Is Achilles already in Battle School?"
"He's still recovering from his fourth surgery. We had to fix the leg on
Earth."
"Let me give you a word of advice. Do *not* put him in Battle School
while Bean is still there."
"Bean is only six. He's still too young to *enter* Battle School, let
alone graduate."
"If you put Achilles in, take Bean out. Period."
"Why?"
"If you're too stupid to believe me after all my other judgments
turned out to be correct, why should I give you the ammunition to let you
second-guess me? Let me just say that putting them in school together is a
probable death sentence for one of them."
"Which one?"
"That rather depends on which one sees the other first."
"Achilles says he owes everything to Bean. He loves Bean."
"Then by all means, believe him and not me. But don't send the body of
the loser back to me to deal with. You bury your own mistakes."
"That sounds pretty heartless."
"I'm not going to weep over the grave of either boy. I tried to save
both their lives. You apparently seem determined to let them find out
which is fittest in the best Darwinian fashion."
"Calm down, Sister Carlotta. We'll consider what you've told us. We
won't be foolish."
"You've already been foolish. I have no high expectations for you now.
"
***
As days became weeks, the shape of Wiggin's army began to unfold, and
Bean was filled with both hope and despair. Hope, because Wiggin was setting
up an army that was almost infinitely adaptable. Despair, because he was
doing it without any reliance on Bean.
After only a few practices, Wiggin had chosen his toon leaders --
every one of them a veteran from the transfer lists. In fact, every
veteran was either a toon leader or a second. Not only that, instead of
the normal organization -- four toons of ten soldiers each -- he had created
five toons of eight, and then made them practice a lot in half-toons of
four men each, one commanded by the toon leader, the other by the second.
No one had ever fragmented an army like that before. And it wasn't
just an illusion. Wiggin worked hard to make sure the toon leaders and
seconds had plenty of leeway. He'd tell them their objective and let the
leader decide how to achieve it. Or he'd group three toons together under
the operational command of one of the toon leaders to handle one operation,
while Wiggin himself commanded the smaller remaining force. It was an
extraordinary amount of delegation. delegation.
Some of the soldiers were critical at first. As they were milling around
near the entrance to the barracks, the veterans talked about how they'd
practiced that day -- in ten groups of four. "Everybody knows it's loser
strategy to divide your army," said Fly Molo, who commanded A toon.
Bean was a little disgusted that the soldier with the highest rank after
Wiggin would say something disparaging about his commander's strategy.
Sure, Fly was learning, too. But there's such a thing as insubordination.
"He hasn't divided the army," said Bean. "He's just organized it. And
there's no such thing as a rule of strategy that you can't break. The idea
is to have your army concentrated at the decisive point. Not to keep it
huddled together all the time."
Fly glared at Bean. "Just cause you little guys can hear us doesn't mean
you understand what we're talking about."
"If you don't want to believe me, think what you want. My talking
isn't going to make you stupider than you already are."
Fly came at him, grabbing him by the arm and dragging him to the edge of
his bunk.
At once, Nikolai launched himself from the bunk opposite and landed on
Fly's back, bumping his head into the front of Bean's bunk. In moments,
the other toon leaders had pulled Fly and Nikolai apart -- a ludicrous fight
anyway, since Nikolai wasn't that much bigger than Bean.
"Forget it, Fly," said Hot Soup -- Han Tzu, leader of D toon. "Nikolai
thinks he's Bean's big brother."
"What's the kid doing mouthing off to a toon leader?" demanded Fly.
"You were being insubordinate toward our commander," said Bean. "And you
were also completely wrong. By your view, Lee and Jackson were idiots at
Chancellorsville."
"He keeps doing it!"
"Are you so stupid you can't recognize the truth just because the person
telling it to you is short?" All of Bean's frustration at not being one
of the officers was spilling out. He knew it, but he didn't feel like
controlling it. They needed to hear the truth. And Wiggin needed to have the
support when he was being taken down behind his back.
Nikolai was standing on the lower bunk, so he was as close to Bean as
possible, affirming the bond between them. "Come on, Fly," said Nikolai.
"This is *Bean*, remember?"
And, to Bean's surprise, that silenced Fly. Until this moment, Bean
had not realized the power that his reputation had. He might be just a
regular soldier in Dragon Army, but he was still the finest student of
strategy and military history in the school, and apparently everybody --
or at least everybody but Wiggin -- knew it.
"I should have spoken with more respect," said Bean.
"Damn right," said Fly.
"But so should you."
Fly lunged against the grip of the boys holding him.
"Talking about Wiggin," said Bean. "You spoke without respect.
'Everybody knows it's loser strategy to divide your army.'" He got Fly's
intonation almost exactly right. Several kids laughed. And, grudgingly, so
did Fly.
"OK, right," said Fly. "I was out of line." He turned to Nikolai. "But
I'm still an officer."
"Not when you're dragging a little kid off his bunk you're not," said
Nikolai. "You're a bully when you do that."
Fly blinked. Wisely, no one else said a thing until Fly had decided
how he was going to respond. "You're right, Nikolai. To defend your friend
against a bully." He looked from Nikolai to Bean and back again. "Pusha, you
guys even look like brothers." He walked past them, heading for his bunk.
The other toon leaders followed him. Crisis over.
Nikolai looked at Bean then. "I was never as squished up and ugly as
you," he said.
"And if I'm going to grow up to look like you, I'm going to kill
myself now," said Bean.
"Do you have to talk to really *big* guys like that?"
"I didn't expect you to attack him like a one-man swarm of bee."
"I guess I wanted to jump on somebody," said Nikolai.
"You? Mr. Nice Guy?"
"I don't feel so nice lately." He climbed up on the bunk beside Bean, so
they could talk more softly. "I'm out of my depth here, Bean. I don't
belong in this army."
"What do you mean?"
"I wasn't ready to get promoted. I'm just average. Maybe not that good.
And even though this army wasn't a bunch of heroes in the standings,
these guys are good. Everybody learns faster than me. Everybody *gets* it
and I'm still standing there thinking about it."
"So you work harder."
"I *am* working harder. You -- you just get it, right away, everything,
you see it all. And it's not that I'm stupid. I always get it, too. Just .
.. a step behind." behind."
"Sorry," said Bean.
"What are *you* sorry about? It's not *your* fault."
Yes it is, Nikolai. "Come on, you telling me you wish you weren't part
of Ender Wiggin's army?"
Nikolai laughed a little. "He's really something, isn't he?"
"You'll do your part. You're a good soldier. You'll see. When we get
into the battles, you'll do as well as anybody."
"Eh, probably. They can always freeze me and throw me around. A big
lumpy projectile weapon."
"You're not so lumpy."
"Everybody's lumpy compared to you. I've watched you -- you give away
half your food."
"They feed me too much."
"I've got to study." Nikolai jumped across to his bunk.
Bean felt bad sometimes about having put Nikolai in this situation.
But when they started winning, a lot of kids outside of Dragon Army would be
wishing they could trade places with him. In fact, it was kind of
surprising Nikolai realized he wasn't as qualified as the others. After all,
the differences weren't that pronounced. Probably there were a lot of
kids who felt just like Nikolai. But Bean hadn't really reassured him. In
fact, he had probably reaffirmed Nikolai's feelings of inferiority.
What a sensitive friend I am.
***
There was no point in interviewing Volescu again, not after getting such
lies from him the first time. All that talk of copies, and him the original
-- there was no mitigation now. He was a murderer, a servant of the
Father of Lies. He would do nothing to help Sister Carlotta. And the need to
find out what might be expected of the one child who evaded Volescu's
little holocaust was too great to rely again on the word of such a man.
Besides, Volescu had made contact with his half-brother or double cousin
-- how else could he have obtained a fertilized egg containing his DNA?
So Sister Carlotta should be able either to follow Volescu's trail or
duplicate his research.
She learned quickly that Volescu was the illegitimate child of a
Romanian woman in Budapest, Hungary. A little checking -- and the
judicious use of her security clearance -- got her the name of the father, a
Greek-born official in the League who had recently been promoted to service
on the Hegemon's staff. That might have been a roadblock, but Sister
Carlotta did not need to speak to the grandfather. She only needed to know
who he was in order to find out the names of his three legitimate children.
The daughter was eliminated because the shared parent was a male. And in
checking the two sons, she decided to go first to visit the married one.
They lived on the island of Crete, where Julian ran a software company
whose only client was the International Defense League. Obviously this was
not a coincidence, but nepotism was almost honorable compared to some of the
outright graft and favor-trading that was endemic in the League. In the
long run such corruption was basically harmless, since the International
Fleet had seized control of its own budget early on and never let the League
touch it again. Thus the Polemarch and the Strategos had far more money
at their disposal than the Hegemon, which made him, though first in title,
weakest in actual power and independence of movement.
And just because Julian Delphiki owed his career to his father's
political connections did not necessarily mean that his company's product
was not adequate and that he himself was not an honest man. By the standards
of honesty that prevailed in the world of business, anyway.
Sister Carlotta found that she did not need her security clearance to
get a meeting with Julian and his wife, Elena. She called and said she would
like to see them on a matter concerning the I.F., and they immediately
opened their calendar to her. She arrived in Knossos and was immediately
driven to their home on a bluff overlooking the Aegean. They looked
nervous -- indeed, Elena was almost frantic, wringing a handkerchief.
"Please," she said, after accepting their offer of fruit and cheese.
"Please tell me why you are so upset. There's nothing about my business that
should alarm you."
The two of them glanced at each other, and Elena became flustered. "Then
there's nothing wrong with our boy?"
For a moment, Sister Carlotta wondered if they already knew about Bean
-- but how could they?
"Your son?"
"Then he's all right!" Elena burst into tears of relief and when her
husband knelt beside her, she clung to him and sobbed.
"You see, it was very hard for us to let him go into service," said
Julian. "So when a religious person calls to tell us she needs to see us
on business pertaining to the I.F., we thought -- we leapt to the conclusion
--"
"Oh, I'm so sorry. I didn't know you had a son in the military, or I
would have been careful to assure you from the start that ... but now I fear
I am here under false pretenses. The matter I need to speak to you about is
personal, so personal you may be reluctant to answer. Yet it *is* about a
matter that is of some importance to the I.F. Truthful answers cannot
possibly expose you to any personal risk, I promise."
Elena got control of herself. Julian seated himself again, and now
they looked at Sister Carlotta almost with cheerfulness. "Oh, ask whatever
you want," said Julian. "We're just happy that -- whatever you want to ask."
"We'll answer if we can," said Elena.
"You say you have a son. This raises the possibility that -- there is
reason to wonder if you might not at some point have ... was your son
conceived under circumstances that would have allowed a clone of his
fertilized egg to be made?"
"Oh yes," said Elena. "That is no secret. A defect in one fallopian tube
and an ectopic pregnancy in the other made it impossible for me to conceive
in utero. We wanted a child, so they drew out several of my eggs,
fertilized them with my husband's sperm, and then cloned the ones we chose.
There were four that we cloned, six copies of each. Two girls and two boys.
So far, we have implanted only the one. He was such a -- such a special
boy, we did not want to dilute our attention. Now that his education is
out of our hands, however, we have been thinking of bearing one of the
girls. It's time." She reached over and took Julian's hand and smiled. He
smiled back.
Such a contrast to Volescu. Hard to believe there was any genetic
material in common.
"You said six copies of each of the four fertilized eggs," said Sister
Carlotta. Carlotta.
"Six including the original," said Julian. "That way we have the best
chance of implanting each of the four and carrying them through a full
pregnancy."
"A total of twenty-four fertilized eggs. And only one of them was
implanted?"
"Yes, we were very fortunate, the first one worked perfectly."
"Leaving twenty-three."
"Yes. Exactly."
"Mr. Delphiki, all twenty-three of those fertilized eggs remain in
storage, waiting for implantation?"
"Of course."
Sister Carlotta thought for a moment. "How recently have you checked?"
"Just last week," said Julian. "As we began talking about having another
child. The doctor assured us that nothing has happened to the eggs and they
can be implanted with only a few hours' notice."
"But did the doctor actually check?"
"I don't know," said Julian.
Elena was starting to tense up a little. "What have you heard?" she
asked.
"Nothing," said Sister Carlotta. "What I am looking for is the source of
a particular child's genetic material. I simply need to make sure that your
fertilized eggs were not the source."
"But of course they were not. Except for our son."
"Please don't be alarmed. But I would like to know the name of your
doctor and the facility where the eggs are stored. And then I would be
glad if you would call your doctor and have him go, in person, to the
facility and insist upon seeing the eggs himself."
"They can't be seen without a microscope," said Julian.
"See that they have not been disturbed," said Sister Carlotta.
They had both become hyperalert again, especially since they had no idea
what this was all about -- nor could they be told. As soon as Julian gave
her the name of doctor and hospital, Sister Carlotta stepped onto the
porch and, as she gazed at the sail-specked Aegean, she used her global
and got herself put through to the I.F. headquarters in Athens.
It would take several hours, perhaps, for either her call or Julian's to
bring in the answer, so she and Julian and Elena made a heroic effort to
appear unconcerned. They took her on a walking tour of their neighborhood,
which offered views both ancient and modem, and of nature verdant, desert,
and marine. The dry air was refreshing as long as the breeze from the sea
did not lag, and Sister Carlotta enjoyed hearing Julian talk about his
company and Elena talk about her work as a teacher. All thought of their
having risen in the world through government corruption faded as she
realized that however he got his contract, Julian was a serious, dedicated
creator of software, while Elena was a fervent teacher who treated her
profession as a crusade. "I knew as soon as I started teaching our son how
remarkable he was," Elena told her. "But it wasn't until his pre-tests for
school placement that we first learned that his gifts were particularly
suited for the I.F."
Alarm bells went off. Sister Carlotta had assumed that their son was
an adult. After all, they were not a young couple. "How old is your son?"
"Eight years old now," said Julian. "They sent us a picture. Quite a
little man in his uniform. They don't let many letters come through."
Their son was in Battle School. They appeared to be in their forties,
but they might not have started to have a family until late, and then
tried in vain for a while, going through a tubal pregnancy before finding
out that Elena could no longer conceive. Their son was only a couple of
years older than Bean.
Which meant that Graff could compare Bean's genetic code with that of
the Delphiki boy and find out if they were from the same cloned egg. There
would be a control, to compare what Bean was like with Anton's key turned,
as opposed to the other, whose genes were unaltered.
Now that she thought about it, of *course* any true sibling of Bean's
would have exactly the abilities that would bring the attention of the I.F.
Anton's key made a child into a savant in general; the particular mix of
skills that the I.F. looked for were not affected. Bean would have had those
skills no matter what; the alteration merely allowed him to bring a far
sharper intelligence to bear on abilities he already had.
*If* Bean was in fact their child. Yet the coincidence of twenty-three
fertilized eggs and the twenty-three children that Volescu had produced in
the "clean room" -- what other conclusion could she reach?
And soon the answer came, first to Sister Carlotta, but immediately
thereafter to the Delphikis. The I.F. investigators had gone to the clinic
with the doctor and together they had discovered that the eggs were missing.
It was hard news for the Delphikis to bear, and Sister Carlotta
discreetly waited outside while Elena and Julian took some time alone
together. But soon they invited her in. "How much can you tell us?" Julian
asked. "You came here because you suspected our babies might have been
taken. Tell me, were they born?"
Sister Carlotta wanted to hide behind the veil of military secrecy,
but in truth there was no military secret involved -- Volescu's crime was
a matter of public record. And yet ... weren't they better off not
knowing?
"Julian, Elena, accidents happen in the laboratory. They might have died
anyway. Nothing is certain. Isn't it better just to think of this as a
terrible accident? Why add to the burden of the loss you already have?"
Elena looked at her fiercely. "You *will* tell me, Sister Carlotta, if
you love the God of truth!"
"The eggs were stolen by a criminal who ... illegally caused them to
be brought through gestation. When his crime was about to be discovered,
he gave them a painless death by sedative. They did not suffer."
"And this man will be put on trial?"
"He has already been tried and sentenced to life in prison," said Sister
Carlotta.
"Already?" asked Julian. "How long ago were our babies stolen?"
"More than seven years ago."
"Oh!" cried Elena. "Then our babies ... when they died ..."
"They were infants. Not a year old yet."
"But why *our* babies? Why would he steal them? Was he going to sell
them for adoption? Was he..."
"Does it matter? None of his plans came to fruition," said Sister
Carlotta. The nature of Volescu's experiments *was* a secret.
"What was the murderer's name?" asked Julian. Seeing her hesitation,
he insisted. "His name is a matter of public record, is it not?"
"In the criminal courts of Rotterdam," said Sister Carlotta. "Volescu.
"
Julian reacted as if slapped -- but immediately controlled himself.
Elena did not see it.
He knows about his father's mistress, thought Sister Carlotta. He
understands now what part of the motive had to be. The legitimate son's
children were kidnapped by the bastard, experimented on, and eventually
killed -- and the legitimate son didn't find out about it for seven years.
Whatever privations Volescu fancied that his fatherlessness had caused him,
he had taken his vengeance. And for Julian, it also meant that his father's
lusts had come back to cause this loss, this pain to Julian and his wife.
The sins of the fathers are visited upon the children unto the third and
fourth generation ...
But didn't the scripture say the third and fourth generation of them
that hate me? Julian and Elena did not hate God. Nor did their innocent
babies.
It makes no more sense than Herod's slaughter of the babes of Bethlehem.
The only comfort was the trust that a merciful God caught up the spirits of
the slain infants into his bosom, and that he brought comfort, eventually,
to the parents' hearts.
"Please," said Sister Carlotta. "I cannot say you should not grieve
for the children that you will never hold. But you can still rejoice in
the child that you have."
"A million miles away!" cried Elena.
"I don't suppose ... you don't happen to know if the Battle School
ever lets a child come home for a visit," said Julian. "His name is
Nikolai Delphiki. Surely under the circumstances ..."
"I'm so sorry," said Sister Carlotta. Reminding them of the child they
had was not such a good idea after all, when they did not, in fact, have
him. "I'm sorry that my coming led to such terrible news for you."
"But you learned what you came to learn," said Julian.
"Yes," said Sister Carlotta.
Then Julian realized something, though he said not a word in front of
his wife. "Will you want to return to the airport now?"
"Yes, the car is still waiting. Soldiers are much more patient than
cab drivers."
"I'll walk you to the car," said Julian.
"No, Julian," said Elena, "don't leave me."
"Just for a few moments, my love. Even now, we don't forget courtesy."
He held his wife for a long moment, then led Sister Carlotta to the door and
opened it for her.
As they walked to the car, Julian spoke of what he had come to
understand. "Since my father's bastard is already in prison, you did not
come here because of his crime."
"No," she said.
"One of our children is still alive," he said.
"What I tell you now I should not tell, because it is not within my
authority," said Sister Carlotta. "But my first allegiance is to God, not
the I.F. If the twenty-two children who died at Volescu's hand were yours,
then a twenty-third may be alive. It remains for genetic testing to be
done."
"But we will not be told," said Julian.
"Not yet," said Sister Carlotta. "And not soon. Perhaps not ever. But if
it is within my power, then a day will come when you will meet your
second son."
"Is he ... do you know him?"
"If it is your son," she said, "then yes, I know him. His life has
been hard, but his heart is good, and he is such a boy as to make any father
or mother proud. Please don't ask me more. I've already said too much."
"Do I tell this to my wife?" asked Julian. "What will be harder for her,
to know or not know?"
"Women are not so different from men. *You* preferred to know."
Julian nodded. "I know that you were only the bearer of news, not the
cause of our loss. But your visit here will not be remembered with
happiness. Yet I want you to know that I understand how kindly you have done
this miserable job."
She nodded. "And you have been unfailingly gracious in a difficult
hour."
Julian opened the door of her car. She stooped to the seat, swung her
legs inside. But before he could close the door for her, she thought of
one last question, a very important one.
"Julian, I know you were planning to have a daughter next. But if you
had gone on to bring another son into the world, what would you have named
him?"
"Our firstborn was named for my father, Nikolai," he said. "But Elena
wanted to name a second son for me."
"Julian Delphiki," said Sister Carlotta. "If this truly is your son, I
think he would be proud someday to bear his father's name."
"What name does he use now?" asked Julian.
"Of course I cannot say."
"But ... not Volescu, surely."
"No. As far as I'm concerned, he'll never hear that name. God bless you,
Julian Delphiki. I will pray for you and your wife."
"Pray for our children's souls, too, Sister."
"I already have, and do, and will."
***
Major Anderson looked at the boy sitting across the table from him.
"Really, it's not that important a matter, Nikolai."
"I thought maybe I was in trouble."
"No, no. We just noticed that you seemed to be a particular friend of
Bean. He doesn't have a lot of friends."
"It didn't help that Dimak painted a target on him in the shuttle. And
now Ender's gone and done the same thing. I suppose Bean can take it, but
smart as he is, he kind of pisses off a lot of the other kids."
"But not you?"
"Oh, he pisses me off, too."
"And yet you became his friend."
"Well, I didn't mean to. I just had the bunk across from him in
launchy barracks."
"You traded for that bunk."
"Did I? Oh. Eh."
"And you did that before you knew how smart Bean was."
"Dimak told us in the shuttle that Bean had the highest scores of any of
us."
"Was that why you wanted to be near him?"
Nikolai shrugged.
"It was an act of kindness," said Major Anderson. "Perhaps I'm just an
old cynic, but when I see such an inexplicable act I become curious."
"He really does kind of look like my baby pictures. Isn't that dumb? I
saw him and I thought, he looks just like cute little baby Nikolai. Which is
what my mother always called me in my baby pictures. I never thought of
them as *me*. I was big Nikolai. That was cute little baby Nikolai. I used
to pretend that he was my little brother and we just happened to have the
same name. Big Nikolai and Cute Little Baby Nikolai."
"I see that you're ashamed, but you shouldn't be. It's a natural thing
for an only child to do."
"I wanted a brother."
"Many who have a brother wish they didn't."
"But the brother I made up for myself, he and I got along fine." Nikolai
laughed at the absurdity of it.
"He gives me advice. Helps me with classwork. We do some practice
together. He's better at almost everything than I am. Only I'm bigger, and I
think I like him more than he likes me."
"That may be true, Nikolai. But as far as we can tell, he likes you more
than he likes anybody else. He just ... so far, he may not have the same
capacity for friendship that you have. I hope that my asking you these
questions won't change your feelings and actions toward Bean. We don't
assign people to be friends, but I hope you'll remain Bean's."
"I'm not his friend," said Nikolai.
"Oh?"
"I told you. I'm his brother." Nikolai grinned. "Once you get a brother,
you don't give him up easy."CHAPTER 15 -- COURAGE
"Genetically, they're identical twins. The only difference is Anton's
key."
"So the Delphikis have two sons."
"The Delphikis have one son, Nikolai, and he's with us for the duration.
Bean was an orphan found on the streets of Rotterdam."
"Because he was kidnapped."
"The law is clear. Fertilized eggs are property. I know that this is a
matter of religious sensitivity for you, but the I.F. is bound by law, not
--"
"The I.F. uses law where possible to achieve its own ends. I know you're
fighting a war. I know that some things are outside your power. But the war
will not go on forever. All I ask is this: Make this information part of
a record -- part of many records. So that when the war ends, the proof of
these things can and will survive. So the truth won't stay hidden."
"Of course."
"No, not of course. You know that the moment the Formics are defeated,
the I.F. will have no reason to exist. It will try to continue to exist in
order to maintain international peace. But the League is not politically
strong enough to survive in the nationalist winds that will blow. The I.F.
will break into fragments, each following its own leader, and God help us if
any part of the fleet ever should use its weapons against the surface of
the Earth."
"You've been spending too much time reading the Apocalypse."
"I may not be one of the genius children in your school, but I see how
the tides of opinion are flowing here on Earth. On the nets a demagogue
named Demosthenes is inflaming the West about illegal and secret maneuvers
by the Polemarch to give an advantage to the New Warsaw Pact, and the
propaganda is even more virulent from Moscow, Baghdad, Buenos Aires,
Beijing. There are a few rational voices, like Locke, but they're given
lip service and then ignored. You and I can't do anything about the fact
that world war will certainly come. But we *can* do our best to make sure
these children don't become pawns in that game."
"The only way they won't be pawns is if they're players."
"You've been raising them. Surely you don't *fear* them. Give them their
chance to play."
"Sister Carlotta all my work is aimed at preparing for the showdown with
the Formics. At turning these children into brilliant, reliable commanders.
I can't look beyond that mark."
"Don't *look*. Just leave the door open for their families, their
nations to claim them."
"I can't think about that right now."
"Right now is the only time you'll have the power to do it."
"You overestimate me."
"You underestimate yourself."
***
Dragon Army had only been practicing for a month when Wiggin came into
the barracks only a few seconds after lights-on, brandishing a slip of
paper. Battle orders. They would face Rabbit Army at 0700. And they'd do
it without breakfast.
"I don't want anybody throwing up in the battleroom."
"Can we at least take a leak first?" asked Nikolai.
"No more than a decaliter," said Wiggin.
Everybody laughed, but they were also nervous. As a new army, with
only a handful of veterans, they didn't actually expect to win, but they
didn't want to be humiliated, either. They all had different ways of dealing
with nerves -- some became silent, others talkative. Some joked and
bantered, others turned surly. Some just lay back down on their bunks and
closed their eyes.
Bean watched them. He tried to remember if the kids in Poke's crew
ever did these things. And then realized: They were *hungry*, not afraid
of being shamed. You don't get this kind of fear until you have enough to
eat. So it was the bullies who felt like these kids, afraid of humiliation
but not of going hungry. And sure enough, the bullies standing around in
line showed all these attitudes. They were always performing, always aware
of others watching them. Fearful they would have to fight; eager for it,
too.
What do I feel?
What's wrong with me that I have to think about it to know?
Oh ... I'm just sitting here, watching. I'm one of *those*.
Bean pulled out his flash suit, but then realized he had to use the
toilet before putting it on. He dropped down onto the deck and pulled his
towel from its hook, wrapped it around himself. For a moment he flashed back
to that night he had tossed his towel under a bunk and climbed into the
ventilation system. He'd never fit now. Too thickly muscled, too tall. He
was still the shortest kid in Battle School, and he doubted if anyone else
would notice how he'd grown, but he was aware of how his arms and legs
were longer. He could reach things more easily. Didn't have to jump so often
just to do normal things like palming his way into the gym.
I've changed, thought Bean. My body, of course. But also the way I
think.
Nikolai was still lying in bed with his pillow over his head.
Everybody had his own way of coping.
The other kids were all using the toilets and getting drinks of water,
but Bean was the only one who thought it was a good idea to shower. They
used to tease him by asking if the water was still warm when it got all
the way down there, but the joke was old now. What Bean wanted was the
steam. The blindness of the fog around him, of the fogged mirrors,
everything hidden, so he could be anyone, anywhere, any size.
Someday they'll all see me as I see myself. Larger than any of them.
Head and shoulders above the rest, seeing farther, reaching farther,
carrying burdens they could only dream of. In Rotterdam all I cared about
was staying alive. But here, well fed, I've found out who I am. What I might
be. *They* might think I'm an alien or a robot or something, just because
I'm not genetically ordinary. But when I've done the great deeds of my life,
they'll be proud to claim me as a human, furious at anyone who questions
whether I'm truly one of them.
Greater than Wiggin.
He put the thought out of his mind, or tried to. This wasn't a
competition. There was room for two great men in the world at the same time.
Lee and Grant were contemporaries, fought against each other. Bismarck
and Disraeli. Napoleon and Wellington.
No, that's not the comparison. It's *Lincoln* and Grant. Two great men
working together.
It was disconcerting, though, to realize how rare that was. Napoleon
could never bear to let any of his lieutenants have real authority. All
victories had to be his alone. Who was the great man beside Augustus?
Alexander? They had friends, they had rivals, but they never had partners.
That's why Wiggin has kept me down, even though he knows by now from the
reports they give to army commanders that I've got a mind better than
anybody else in Dragon. Because I'm too obviously a rival. Because I made it
clear that first day that I intended to rise, and he's letting me know that
it won't happen while I'm with his army.
Someone came into the bathroom. Bean couldn't see who it was because
of the fog. Nobody greeted him. Everybody else must have finished here and
gone back to get ready.
The newcomer walked through the fog past the opening in Bean's shower
stall. It was Wiggin.
Bean just stood there, covered with soap. He felt like an idiot. He
was in such a daze he had forgotten to rinse, was just standing in the fog,
lost in his thoughts. Hurriedly he moved under the water again.
"Bean?"
"Sir?" Bean turned to face him. Wiggin was standing in the shower
entrance.
"I thought I ordered everybody to get down to the gym."
Bean thought back. The scene unfolded in his mind. Yes, Wiggin *had*
ordered everybody to bring their flash suits to the gym.
"I'm sorry. I ... was thinking of something else ..."
"Everybody's nervous before their first battle."
Bean hated that. To have Wiggin see him doing something stupid. Not
remembering an order -- Bean remembered *everything*. It just hadn't
registered. And now he was patronizing him. Everybody's nervous!
"*You* weren't," said Bean.
Wiggin had already stepped away. He came back. "Wasn't I?"
"Bonzo Madrid gave you orders not to take your weapon out. You were
supposed to just stay there like a dummy. You weren't nervous about doing
*that*."
"No," said Wiggin. "I was pissed."
"Better than nervous."
Wiggin started to leave. Then returned again. "Are *you* pissed?"
"I did that before I showered," said Bean.
Wiggin laughed. Then his smile disappeared. "You're late, Bean, and
you're still busy rinsing. I've already got your flash suit down in the gym.
All we need now is your ass in it." Wiggin took Bean's towel off its hook.
"I'll have this waiting for you down there, too. Now move."
Wiggin left. Wiggin left.
Bean turned the water off, furious. That was completely unnecessary, and
Wiggin knew it. Making him go through the corridor wet and naked during the
time when other armies would be coming back from breakfast. That was low,
and it was stupid.
Anything to put me down. Every chance he gets.
Bean, you idiot, you're still standing here. You could have run down
to the gym and beaten him there. Instead, you're shooting your stupid self
in the stupid foot. And why? None of this makes sense. None of this is going
to help you. You want him to make you a toon leader, not think of you
with contempt. So why are you doing things to make yourself look stupid
and young and scared and unreliable?
And still you're standing here, frozen.
I'm a coward.
The thought ran through Bean's mind and filled him with terror. But it
wouldn't go away.
I'm one of those guys who freezes up or does completely irrational
things when he's afraid. Who loses control and goes slack-minded and stupid.
But I didn't do that in Rotterdam. If I had, I'd be dead.
Or maybe I *did* do it. Maybe that's why I didn't call out to Poke and
Achilles when I saw them there alone on the dock. He wouldn't have killed
her if I'd been there to witness what happened. Instead I ran off until I
realized the danger she was in. But why didn't I realize it before?
Because I *did* realize it, just as I heard Wiggin tell us to meet in the
gym. Realized it, understood it completely, but was too cowardly to act. Too
afraid that something would go wrong.
And maybe that's what happened Achilles lay on the ground and I told
Poke to kill him. I was wrong and she was right. Because *any* bully she
caught that way would probably have held a grudge -- and might easily have
acted on it immediately, killing her as soon as they let him up. Achilles
was the likeliest one, maybe the only one that would agree to the
arrangement Bean had thought up. There was no choice. But I got scared. Kill
him, I said, because I wanted it to go away.
And still I'm standing here. The water is off. I'm dripping wet and
cold. But I can't move.
Nikolai was standing in the bathroom doorway. "Too bad about your
diarrhea," he said.
"What?"
"I told Ender about how you were up with diarrhea in the night. That's
why you had to go to the bathroom. You were sick, but you didn't want to
tell him because you didn't want to miss the first battle."
"I'm so scared I couldn't take a dump if I wanted to," said Bean.
"He gave me your towel. He said it was stupid of him to take it."
Nikolai walked in and gave it to him. "He said he needs you in the battle,
so he's glad you're toughing it out."
"He doesn't need me. He doesn't even want me."
"Come on, Bean," said Nikolai. "You can do this."
Bean toweled off. It felt good to be moving. Doing something.
"I think you're dry enough," said Nikolai.
Again, Bean realized he was simply drying and drying himself, over and
over.
"Nikolai, what's wrong with me?"
"You're afraid that you'll turn out to be just a little kid. Well,
here's a clue: You *are* a little kid."
"So are you."
"So it's OK to be really bad. Isn't that what you keep telling me?"
Nikolai laughed. "Come on, if I can do it, bad as I am, so can you."
"Nikolai," said Bean.
"What now?"
"I really *do* have to crap."
"I sure hope you don't expect me to wipe your butt."
"If I don't come out in three minutes, come in after me."
Cold and sweating -- a combination he wouldn't have thought possible.
Bean went into the toilet stall and closed the door. The pain in his abdomen
was fierce. But he couldn't get his bowel to loosen up and let go.
What am I so *afraid* of?
Finally, his alimentary system triumphed over his nervous system. It
felt like everything he'd ever eaten flooded out of him at once.
"Time's up," said Nikolai. "I'm coming in."
"At peril of your life," said Bean. "I'm done, I'm coming out."
Empty now, clean, and humiliated in front of his only real friend,
Bean came out of the stall and wrapped his towel around him.
"Thanks for keeping me from being a liar," said Nikolai.
"What?" "What?"
"About your having diarrhea."
"For you I'd get dysentery."
"Now that's friendship."
By the time they got to the gym, everybody was already in their flash
suits, ready to go. While Nikolai helped Bean get into his suit, Wiggin
had the rest of them lie down on the mats and do relaxation exercises.
Bean even had time to lie down for a couple of minutes before Wiggin had
them get up. 0656. Four minutes to get to the battleroom. He was cutting
it pretty fine.
As they ran along the corridor, Wiggin occasionally jumped up to touch
the ceiling. Behind him, the rest of the army would jump up and touch the
same spot when they reached it. Except the smaller ones. Bean, his heart
still burning with humiliation and resentment and fear, did not try. You
do that kind of thing when you belong with the group. And he didn't belong.
After all his brilliance in class, the truth was out now. He was a coward.
He didn't belong in the military at all. If he couldn't even risk playing a
game, what would he be worth in combat? The real generals exposed
themselves to enemy fire. Fearless, they had to be, an example of courage to
their men.
Me, I freeze up, take long showers, and dump a week's rations into the
head. Let's see them follow *that* example.
At the gate, Wiggin had time to line them up in toons, then remind them.
"Which way is the enemy's gate?"
"Down!" they all answered.
Bean only mouthed the word. Down. Down down down.
What's the best way to get down off a goose?
What are you doing up on a goose in the first place, you fool!
The grey wall in front of them disappeared, and they could see into
the battleroom. It was dim -- not dark, but so faintly lighted that the only
way they could see the enemy gate was the light of Rabbit Army's flash
suits pouring out of it.
Wiggin was in no hurry to get out of the gate. He stood there
surveying the room, which was arranged in an open grid, with eight "stars"
-- large cubes that legs were dark, blocking the lights of the rest of their
flash suits until they were fairly close. Wiggin was doing something up
near the gate to distract Rabbit Army's attention, so the surprise was
pretty good.
As they got closer, Crazy Tom said, "Split and rebound to the star -- me
north, you south."
It was a maneuver that Crazy Tom had practiced with his toon. It was the
right time for it, too. It would confuse the enemy more to have two
groups to shoot at, heading different directions.
They pulled up on handholds. Their bodies, of course, swung against
the wall, and suddenly the lights of their flash suits were quite visible.
Somebody in Rabbit saw them and gave the alarm.
But C was already moving, half the toon diagonally south, the other half
north, and all angling downward toward the floor. Bean began firing; the
enemy was also firing at him. He heard the low whine that said somebody's
beam was on his suit, but he was twisting slowly, and far enough from the
enemy that none of the beams was in one place long enough to do damage. In
the meantime, he found that his arm tracked perfectly, not trembling at all.
He had practiced this a lot, and he was good at it. A clean kill, not
just an arm or leg.
He had time for a second before he hit the wall and had to rebound up to
the rendezvous star. One more enemy hit before he got there, and then he
snagged a handhold on the star and said, "Bean here."
"Lost three," said Crazy Tom. "But their formation's all gone to hell.
"
"What now?" said Dag.
They could tell from the shouting that the main battle was in progress.
Bean was thinking back over what he had seen as he approached the star.
"They sent a dozen guys to this star to wipe us out," said Bean.
"They'll come around the east and west sides."
They all looked at him like he was insane. How could he know this?
"We've got about one more second," said Bean.
"All south," said Crazy Tom.
They swung up to the south side of the star. There were no Rabbits on
that face, but Crazy Tom immediately led them in an attack around to the
west face. Sure enough, there were Rabbits there, caught in the act of
attacking what they clearly thought of as the "back" of the star -- or, as
Dragon Army was trained to think of it, the bottom. So to the Rabbits, the
attack seemed to come from below, the direction they were least aware of. In
moments, the six Rabbits on that face were frozen and drifting along
below the star.
The other half of the attack force would see that and know what had
happened.
"Top," said Crazy Tom.
To the enemy, that would be the front of the star -- the position most
exposed to fire from the main formation. The last place they'd expect
Tom's toon to go.
And once they were there, instead of continuing to attempt to engage the
strike force coming against them, Crazy Tom had them shoot at the main
Rabbit formation, or what was left of it -- mostly disorganized groups
hiding behind stars and firing at Dragons coming down at them from several
directions. The five of them in C toon had time to hit a couple of Rabbits
each before the strike force found them again.
Without waiting for orders, Bean immediately launched away from the
surface of the star so he could shoot downward at the strike force. This
close, he was able game, bringing the lights on bright.
Major Anderson himself came in to congratulate the winning commander and
supervise cleanup. Wiggin quickly unfroze the casualties. Bean was relieved
when his suit could move again. Using his hook, Wiggin drew them all
together and formed his soldiers into their five toons before he began
unfreezing Rabbit Army. They stood at attention in the air, their feet
pointed down, their heads up -- and as Rabbit unfroze, they gradually
oriented themselves in the same direction. They had no way of knowing it,
but to Dragon, that was when victory became complete -- for the enemy was
now oriented as if their *own* gate was down.
***
Bean and Nikolai were already eating breakfast when Crazy Tom came to
their table. "Ender says instead of fifteen minutes for breakfast, we have
till 0745. And he'll let us out of practice in time to shower."
That was good news. They could slow down their eating.
Not that it mattered to Bean. His tray had little food on it, and he
finished it immediately. Once he was in Dragon Army, Crazy Tom had caught
him giving away food. Bean told him that he was always given too much, and
Tom took the matter to Ender, and Ender got the nutritionists to stop
overfeeding Bean. Today was the first time Bean ever wished for more. And
that was only because he was so up from the battle.
"Smart," said Nikolai.
"What?"
"Ender tells us we've got fifteen minutes to eat, which feels rushed and
we don't like it. Then right away he sends around the toon leaders, telling
us we have till 0745. That's only ten minutes longer, but now it feels like
forever. And a shower -- we're supposed to be able to shower right after
the game, but now we're grateful."
"*And* he gave the toon leaders the chance to bring good news," said
Bean.
"Is that important?" asked Nikolai. "We know it was Ender's choice."
"Most commanders make sure all good news comes from them," said Bean,
"and bad news from the toon leaders. But Wiggin's whole technique is
building up his toon leaders. Crazy Tom went in there with nothing more than
his training and his brains and a single objective -- strike first from the
wall and get behind them. All the rest was up to him."
"Yeah, but if his toon leaders screw up, it looks bad on Ender's
record," said Nikolai.
Bean shook his head. "The point is that in his very first battle, Wiggin
divided his force for tactical effect, and C toon was able to continue
attacking even after we ran out of plans, because Crazy Tom was really,
truly in charge of us. We didn't sit around wondering what Wiggin wanted
us to do."
Nikolai got it, and nodded. "Bacana. That's right."
"Completely right," said Bean. By now everybody at the table was
listening. "And that's because Wiggin isn't just thinking about Battle
School and standings and merda like that. He keeps watching vids of the
Second Invasion, did you know that? He's thinking about how to beat the
*Buggers*. And he knows that the way you do that is to have as many
commanders ready to fight them as you can get. Wiggin doesn't want to come
out of this with Wiggin as the only commander ready to fight the Buggers. He
wants to come out of this with him *and* the toon leaders *and* the seconds
*and* if he can do it every single one of his soldiers ready to command a
fleet against the Buggers if we have to."
Bean knew his enthusiasm was probably giving Wiggin credit for more than
he had actually planned, but he was still full of the glow of victory.
And besides, what he was saying was true -- Wiggin was no Napoleon,
holding on to the reins of control so tightly that none of his commanders
was capable of brilliant independent command. Crazy Tom had performed well
under pressure. He had made the right decisions -- including the decision to
listen to his smallest, most useless-looking soldier. And Crazy Tom had
done that because Wiggin had set the example by listening to his toon
leaders. You learn, you analyze, you choose, you act.
After breakfast, as they headed for practice, Nikolai asked him, "Why do
you call him Wiggin?"
"Cause we're not friends," said Bean.
"Oh, so it's Mr. Wiggin and Mr. Bean, is that it?"
"No. *Bean* is my first name."
"Oh. So it's Mr. Wiggin and Who The Hell Are You."
"Got it." "Got it."
***
Everybody expected to have at least a week to strut around and brag
about their perfect won-lost record. Instead, the next morning at 0630,
Wiggin appeared in the barracks, again brandishing battle orders.
"Gentlemen, I hope you learned something yesterday, because today we're
going to do it again."
All were surprised, and some were angry -- it wasn't fair, they
weren't ready. Wiggin just handed the orders to Fly Molo, who had just
been heading out for breakfast. "Flash suits!" cried Fly, who clearly
thought it was a cool thing to be the first army ever to fight two in a
row like this.
But Hot Soup, the leader of D toon, had another attitude. "Why didn't
you tell us earlier?"
"I thought you needed the shower," said Wiggin. "Yesterday Rabbit Army
claimed we only won because the stink knocked them out."
Everybody within earshot laughed. But Bean was not amused. He knew
that the paper hadn't been there first thing, when Wiggin woke up. The
teachers planted it late. "Didn't find the paper till you got back from
the showers, right?"
Wiggin gave him a blank look. "Of course. I'm not as close to the
floor as you."
The contempt in his voice struck Bean like a blow. Only then did he
realize that Wiggin had taken his question as a criticism -- that Wiggin had
been inattentive and hadn't *noticed* the orders. So now there was one more
mark against Bean in Wiggin's mental dossier. But Bean couldn't let that
upset him. It's not as if Wiggin didn't have him tagged as a coward. Maybe
Crazy Tom told Wiggin about how Bean contributed to the victory yesterday,
and maybe not. It wouldn't change what Wiggin had seen with his own eyes
-- Bean malingering in the shower. And now Bean apparently taunting him
for making them all have to rush for their second battle. Maybe I'll be made
toon leader on my thirtieth birthday. And then only if everybody else is
drowned in a boat accident.
Wiggin was still talking, of course, explaining how they should expect
battles any time, the old rules were coming apart. "I can't pretend I like
the way they're screwing around with us, but I do like one thing -- that
I've got an army that can handle it."
As he put on his flash suit, Bean thought through the implications of
what the teachers were doing. They were pushing Wiggin faster and also
making it harder for him. And this was only the beginning. Just the first
few sprinkles of a snotstorm.
Why? Not because Wiggin was so good he needed the testing. On the
contrary -- Wiggin was training his army well, and the Battle School would
only benefit from giving him plenty of time to do it. So it had to be
something outside Battle School.
Only one possibility, really. The Bugger invaders were getting close.
Only a few years away. They had to get Wiggin through training.
Wiggin. Not all of us, just Wiggin. Because if it were everybody, then
everybody's schedule would be stepped up like this. Not just ours.
So it's already too late for me. Wiggin's the one they've chosen to rest
their hopes on. Whether I'm toon leader or not will never matter. All
that matters is: Will Wiggin be ready?
If Wiggin succeeds, there'll still be room for me to achieve greatness
in the aftermath. The League will come apart. There'll be war among humans.
Either I'll be used by the I.F. to help keep the peace, or maybe I can
get into some army on Earth. I've got plenty of life ahead of me. Unless
Wiggin commands our fleet against the invading Buggers and loses. Then
none of us has any life at all.
All I can do right now is my best to help Wiggin learn everything he can
learn here. The trouble is, I'm not close enough to him for me to have
any effect on him at all.
The battle was with Petra Arkanian, commander of Phoenix Army. Petra was
sharper than Carn Carby had been; she also had the advantage of hearing how
Wiggin worked entirely without formations and used little raiding parties
to disrupt formations ahead of the main combat. Still, Dragon finished
with only three soldiers flashed and nine partially disabled. A crushing
defeat. Bean could see that Petra didn't like it, either. She probably
felt like Wiggin had poured it on, deliberately setting her up for
humiliation. But she'd get it, soon enough -- Wiggin simply turned his
toon leaders loose, and each of them pursued total victory, as he had
trained them. Their system worked better, that's all, and the old way of
doing battle was doomed.
Soon enough, all the other commanders would start adapting, learning
from what Wiggin did. Soon enough, Dragon Army would be facing armies that
were divided into five toons, not four, and that moved in a free-ranging
style with a lot more discretion given to the toon leaders. The kids
didn't get to Battle School because they were idiots. The only reason the
techniques worked a second time was because there'd only been a day since
the first battle, and nobody expected to have to face Wiggin again so soon.
Now they'd know that changes would have to be made fast. Bean guessed
that they'd probably never see another formation.
What then? Had Wiggin emptied his magazine, or would he have new
tricks up his sleeve? The trouble was, innovation never resulted in
victory over the long term. It was too easy for the enemy to imitate and
improve on your innovations. The real test for Wiggin would be what he did
when he was faced with slugfests between armies using similar tactics.
And the real test for me will be seeing if I can stand it when Wiggin
makes some stupid mistake and I have to sit here as an ordinary soldier
and watch him do it.
The third day, another battle. The fourth day, another. Victory.
Victory. But each time, the score was closer. Each time, Bean gained more
confidence as a soldier -- and became more frustrated that the most he could
contribute, beyond his own good aim, was occasionally making a suggestion
to Crazy Tom, or reminding him of something Bean had noticed and remembered.
Bean wrote to Dimak about it, explaining how he was being underused
and suggesting that he would be getting better trained by working with a
worse commander, where he'd have a better chance of getting his own toon.
The answer was short. "Who else would want you? Learn from Ender."
Brutal but true. No doubt even Wiggin didn't really want him. Either
he was forbidden to transfer any of his soldiers, or he had tried to trade
Bean away and no one would take him.
***
It was free time of the evening after their fourth battle. Most of the
others were trying to keep up with their classwork -- the battles were
really taking it out of them, especially because they could all see that
they needed to practice hard to stay ahead. Bean, though, coasted through
classwork like always, and when Nikolai told him he didn't need any more
damned help with his assignments, Bean decided that he should take a walk.
Passing Wiggin's quarters -- a space even smaller than the cramped
quarters the teachers had, just space for a bunk, one chair, and a tiny
table -- Bean was tempted to knock on the door and sit down and have it
out with Wiggin once and for all. Then common sense prevailed over
frustration and vanity, and Bean wandered until he came to the arcade.
It wasn't as full as it used to be. Bean figured that was because
everyone was holding extra practices now, trying to implement whatever
they thought it was Wiggin was doing before they actually had to face him in
battle. Still, a few were still willing to fiddle with the controllers
and make things move on screens or in holodisplays.
Bean found a flat-screen game that had, as its hero, a mouse. No one was
using it, so Bean started maneuvering it through a maze. Quickly the maze
gave way to the wallspaces and crawlspaces of an old house, with traps set
here and there, easy stuff. Cats chased him -- ho hum. He jumped up onto a
table and found himself face to face with a giant.
A giant who offered him a drink.
This was the fantasy game. This was the psychological game that
everybody else played on their desks all the time. No wonder no one was
playing it here. They all recognized it and that wasn't the game they came
here to play.
Bean was well aware that he was the only kid in the school who had never
played the fantasy game. They had tricked him into playing this once, but
he doubted that anything important could be learned from what he had done so
far. So screw 'em. They could trick him into playing up to a point, but
he didn't have to go further.
Except that the giant's face had changed. It was Achilles.
Bean stood there in shock for a moment. Frozen, frightened. How did they
know? Why did they do it? To put him face-to-face with Achilles, by
surprise like that. Those bastards.
He walked away from the game.
Moments later, he turned around and came back. The giant was no longer
on the screen. The mouse was running around again, trying to get out of
the maze.
No, I won't play. Achilles is far away and he does not have the power to
hurt me. Or Poke either, not anymore. I don't have to think about him and I
sure as hell don't have to drink anything he offers me.
Bean walked away again, and this time did not come back.
He found himself down by the mess. It had just closed, but Bean had
nothing better to do, so he sat down in the corridor beside the mess hall
door and rested his forehead on his knees and thought about Rotterdam and
sitting on top of a garbage can watching Poke working with her crew and
how she was the most decent crew boss he'd seen, the way she listened to the
little kids and gave them a fair share and kept them alive even if it meant
not eating so much herself and that's why he chose her, because she had
mercy-mercy enough that she just might listen to a child.
Her mercy killed her.
*I* killed her when I chose her.
There better be a God. So he can damn Achilles to hell forever.
Someone kicked at his foot.
"Go away," said Bean, "I'm not bothering you."
Whoever it was kicked again, knocking Bean's feet out from under him.
With his hands he caught himself from falling over. He looked up. Bonzo
Madrid loomed over him.
"I understand you're the littlest dingleberry clinging to the butt hairs
of Dragon Army," said Bonzo.
He had three other guys with him. Big guys. They all had bully faces.
"Hi, Bonzo."
"We need to talk, pinprick."
"What is this, espionage?" asked Bean. "You're not supposed to talk to
soldiers in other armies."
"I don't need espionage to find out how to beat Dragon Army," said
Bonzo.
"So you're just looking for the littlest Dragon soldiers wherever you
can find them, and then you'll push them around a little till they cry?"
Bonzo's face showed his anger. Not that it didn't always show anger.
"Are you begging to eat out of your own asshole, pinprick?"
Bean didn't like bullies right now. And since, at the moment, he felt
guilty of murdering Poke, he didn't really care if Bonzo Madrid ended up
being the one to administer the death penalty. It was time to speak his
mind.
"You're at least three times my weight," said Bean, "except inside
your skull. You're a second-rater who somehow got an army and never could
figure out what to do with it. Wiggin is going to grind you into the
ground and he isn't even going to have to try. So does it really matter what
you do to me? I'm the smallest and weakest soldier in the whole school.
Naturally *I'm* the one you choose to kick around."
"Yeah, the smallest and weakest," said one of the other kids.
Bonzo didn't say anything, though. Bean's words had stung. Bonzo had his
pride, and he knew now that if he harmed Bean it would be a humiliation,
not a pleasure.
"Ender Wiggin isn't going to beat me with that collection of launchies
and rejects that he calls an army. He may have psyched out a bunch of
dorks like Carn and ... *Petra*." He spat her name. "But whenever *we*
find crap my army can pound it flat."
Bean affixed him with his most withering glare. "Don't you get it,
Bonzo? The teachers have picked Wiggin. He's the best. The best ever. They
didn't give him the worst army. They gave him the *best* army. Those
veterans you call rejects -- they were soldiers so good that the *stupid*
commanders couldn't get along with them and tried to transfer them away.
Wiggin knows how to use good soldiers, even if you don't. That's why
Wiggin is winning. He's smarter than you. And his soldiers are all smarter
than your soldiers. The deck is stacked against you, Bonzo. You might as
well give up now. When your pathetic little Salamander Army faces us, you'll
be so whipped you'll have to pee sitting down."
Bean might have said more -- it's not like he had a plan, and there
was certainly a lot more he could have said -- but he was interrupted. Two
of Bonzo's friends scooped him up and held him high against the wall, higher
than their own heads. Bonzo put one hand around his throat, just under
his jaw, and pressed back. The others let go. Bean was hanging by his neck,
and he couldn't breathe. Reflexively he kicked, struggling to get some
purchase with his feet. But long-armed Bonzo was too far away for any of
Bean's kicking to land on him.
"The game is one thing," Bonzo said quietly. "The teachers can rig
that and give it to their little Wiggin catamite. But there'll come a time
when it isn't a game. And when that time comes, it won't be a frozen flash
suit that makes it so Wiggin can't move. Comprendes?"
What answer was he hoping for? It was a sure thing Bean couldn't nod
or speak.
Bonzo just stood there, smiling maliciously, as Bean struggled.
Everything started turning black around the edges of Bean's vision
before Bonzo finally let him drop to the floor. He lay there, coughing and
gasping.
What have I done? I goaded Bonzo Madrid. A bully with none of Achilles's
subtlety. When Wiggin beats him, Bonzo isn't going to take it. He won't
stop with a demonstration, either. His hatred for Wiggin runs deep.
As soon as he could breathe again, Bean headed back to the barracks.
Nikolai noticed the marks on his neck at once. "Who was choking you?"
"I don't know," said Bean.
"Don't give me that," said Nikolai. "He was facing you, look at the
fingermarks."
"I don't remember."
"You remember the pattern of arteries on your own placenta."
"I'm not going to tell you," said Bean. To that, Nikolai had no answer,
though he didn't like it.
Bean signed on as ^Graff and wrote a note to Dimak, even though he
knew it would do no good.
"Bonzo is insane. He could kill somebody, and Wiggin's the one he
hates the most."
The answer came back quickly, almost as if Dimak had been waiting for
the message. "Clean up your own messes. Don't go crying to mama."
The words stung. It wasn't Bean's mess, it was Wiggin's. And,
ultimately, the teachers', for having put Wiggin in Bonzo's army to begin
with. And then to taunt him because he didn't have a mother -- when did
the teachers become the enemy here? They were supposed to protect us from
crazy kids like Bonzo Madrid. How do they think I'm going to clean this mess
up?
The only thing that will stop Bonzo Madrid is to kill him.
And then Bean remembered standing there looking down at Achilles,
saying, "You got to kill him."
Why couldn't I have kept my mouth shut? Why did I have to goad Bonzo
Madrid? Wiggin is going to end up like Poke. And it will be my fault again.
CHAPTER 16 -- COMPANION
"So you see, Anton, the key you found has been turned, and it may be the
salvation of the human race."
"But the poor boy. To live his life so small, and then die as a giant.
"
"Perhaps he'll be ... amused at the irony."
"How strange to think that my little key might turn out to be the
salvation of the human race. From the invading beasts, anyway. Who will save
us when we become our own enemy again?"
"We are not enemies, you and I."
"Not many people are enemies to anyone. But the ones full of greed or
hate, pride or fear -- their passion is strong enough to lever all the world
into war."
"If God can raise up a great soul to save us from one menace, might he
not answer our prayers by raising up another when we need him?"
"But Sister Carlotta, you know the boy you speak of was not raised up by
God. He was created by a kidnapper, a baby-killer, an outlaw scientist."
"Do you know why Satan is so angry all the time? Because whenever he
works a particularly clever bit of mischief, God uses it to serve his own
righteous purposes."
"So God uses wicked people as his tools."
"God gives us the freedom to do great evil, if we choose. Then he uses
his own freedom to create goodness out of that evil, for that is what he
chooses."
"So in the long run, God always wins."
"Yes."
"In the short run, though, it *can* be uncomfortable."
"And when, in the past, would you have preferred to die, instead of
being alive here today?"
"There it is. We get used to everything. We find hope in anything."
"That's why I've never understood suicide. Even those suffering from
great depression or guilt -- don't they feel Christ the Comforter in their
hearts, giving them hope?"
"You're asking me?"
"God not being convenient, I ask a fellow mortal."
"In my view, suicide is not really the wish for life to end."
"What is it, then?"
"It is the only way a powerless person can find to make everybody else
look away from his shame. The wish is not to die, but to hide."
"As Adam and Eve hid from the Lord."
"Because they were naked."
"If only Such sad people could remember: Everyone is naked. Everyone
wants to hide. But life is still sweet. Let it go on."
"You don't believe that the Formics are the beast of the Apocalypse,
then, Sister?"
"No, Anton. I believe they are also children of God."
"And yet you found this boy specifically so he could grow up to
destroy them."
"*Defeat* them. Besides, if God does not want them to die, they will not
die."
"And if God wants *us* to die, we will. Why do you work so hard,
then?"
"Because these hands of mine, I gave them to God, and I serve him as
best I can. If he had not wanted me to find Bean, I would not have found
him."
"And if God wants the Formics to prevail?"
"He'll find some other hands to do it. For that job, he can't have
mine."
***
Lately, while the toon leaders drilled the soldiers, Wiggin had taken to
disappearing. Bean used his ^Graff log-on to find what he was doing. He'd
gone back to studying the vids of Mazer Rackham's victory, much more
intensely and single-mindedly than ever before. And this time, because
Wiggin's army was playing games daily and winning them all, the other
commanders and many toon leaders and common soldiers as well began to go
to the library and watch the same vids, trying to make sense of them, trying
to see what Wiggin saw.
Stupid, thought Bean. Wiggin isn't looking for anything to use here in
Battle School -- he's created a powerful, versatile army and he'll figure
out what to do with them on the spot. He's studying those vids in order to
figure out how to beat the Buggers. Because he knows now: He will face
them someday. The teachers would not be wrecking the whole system here in
Battle School if they were not nearing the crisis, if they did not need
Ender Wiggin to save us from the invading Buggers. So Wiggin studies the
Buggers, desperate for some idea of what they want, how they fight, how they
die.
Why don't the teachers see that Wiggin is done? He's not even thinking
about Battle School anymore. They should take him out of here and move him
into Tactical School, or whatever the next stage of his training will be.
Instead, they're pushing him, making him tired.
Us too. We're tired.
Bean saw it especially in Nikolai, who was working harder than the
others just to keep up. If we were an ordinary army, thought Bean, most of
us would be like Nikolai. As it is, many of us are -- Nikolai was not the
first to show his weariness. Soldiers drop silverware or food trays at
mealtimes. At least one has wet his bed. We argue more at practice. Our
classwork is suffering. Everyone has limits. Even me, even
genetically-altered Bean the thinking machine, I need time to relubricate
and refuel, and I'm not getting it.
Bean even wrote to Colonel Graff about it, a snippy little note saying
only, "It is one thing to train soldiers and quite another to wear them
out." He got no reply.
Late afternoon, with a half hour before mess call. They had already
won a game that morning and then practiced after class, though the toon
leaders, at Wiggin's suggestion, had let their soldiers go early. Most of
Dragon Army was now dressing after showers, though some had already gone
on to kill time in the game room or the video room ... or the library.
Nobody was paying attention to classwork now, but a few still went through
the motions.
Wiggin appeared in the doorway, brandishing the new orders.
A second battle on the *same day*.
"This one's hot and there's no time," said Wiggin. "They gave Bonzo
notice about twenty minutes ago, and by the time we get to the door
they'll have been inside for a good five minutes at least."
He sent the four soldiers nearest the door -- all young, but not
launchies anymore, they were veterans now -- to bring back the ones who
had left. Bean dressed quickly -- he had learned how to do it by himself
now, but not without hearing plenty of jokes about how he was the only
soldier who had to practice getting dressed, and it was still slow.
As they dressed, there was plenty of complaining about how this was
getting stupid, Dragon Army should have a break now and then. Fly Molo was
the loudest, but even Crazy Tom, who usually laughed at everything, was
pissed about it. When Tom said, "Same day nobody ever do two battles!"
Wiggin answered, "Nobody ever beat Dragon Army, either. This be your big
chance to lose?"
Of course not. Nobody intended to lose. They just wanted to complain
about it.
It took a while, but finally they were gathered in the corridor to the
battleroom. The gate was already open. A few of the last arrivals were still
putting on their flash suits. Bean was right behind Crazy Tom, so he
could see down into the room. Bright light. No stars, no grid, no hiding
place of any kind. The enemy gate was open, and yet there was not a
Salamander soldier to be seen.
"My heart," said Crazy Tom. "They haven't come out yet, either."
Bean rolled his eyes. Of course they were out. But in a room without
cover, they had simply formed themselves up on the ceiling, gathered
around Dragon Army's gate, ready to destroy everybody as they came out.
Wiggin caught Bean's facial expression and smiled as he covered his
own mouth to signal them all to be silent. He pointed all around the gate,
to let them know where Salamander was gathered, then motioned for them to
move back.
The strategy was simple and obvious. Since Bonzo Madrid had kindly
pinned his army against a wall, ready to be slaughtered, it only remained to
find the right way to enter the battleroom and carry out the massacre.
Wiggin's solution -- which Bean liked -- was to transform the larger
soldiers into armored vehicles by having them kneel upright and freeze their
legs. Then a smaller soldier knelt on each big kid's calves, wrapped one
arm around the bigger soldier's waist, and prepared to fire. The largest
soldiers were used as launchers, throwing each pair into the battleroom.
For once being small had its advantages. Bean and Crazy Tom were the
pair Wiggin used to demonstrate what he wanted them all to do. As a result,
when the first two pairs were thrown into the room, Bean got to begin the
slaughter. He had three kills almost at once -- at such close range, the
beam was tight and the kills came fast. And as they began to go out of
range, Bean climbed around Crazy Tom and launched off of him, heading east
and somewhat up while Tom went even faster toward the far side of the room.
When other Dragons saw how Bean had managed to stay within firing range,
while moving sideways and therefore remaining hard to hit, many of them
did the same. Eventually Bean was disabled, but it hardly mattered --
Salamander was wiped out to the last man, and without a single one of them
getting off the wall. Even when it was obvious they were easy, stationary
targets, Bonzo didn't catch on that he was doomed until he himself was
already frozen, and nobody else had the initiative to countermand his
original order and start moving so they wouldn't be so easy to hit. Just one
more example of why a commander who ruled by fear and made all the
decisions himself would always be beaten, sooner or later.
The whole battle had taken less than a full minute from the time Bean
rode Crazy Tom through the door until the last Salamander was frozen.
What surprised Bean was that Wiggin, usually so calm, was pissed off and
showing it. Major Anderson didn't even have a chance to give the official
congratulations to the victor before Wiggin shouted at him, "I thought you
were going to put us against an army that could match us in a fair fight."
Why would he think that? Wiggin must have had some kind of
conversation with Anderson, must have been promised something that hadn't
been delivered.
But Anderson explained nothing. "Congratulations on the victory,
commander."
Wiggin wasn't going to have it. It wasn't going to be business as usual.
He turned to his army and called out to Bean by name. "If you had commanded
Salamander Army, what would you have done?"
Since another Dragon had used him to shove off in midair, Bean was now
drifting down near the enemy gate, but he heard the question -- Wiggin
wasn't being subtle about this. Bean didn't want to answer, because he
knew what a serious mistake this was, to speak slightingly of Salamander and
call on the smallest Dragon soldier to correct Bonzo's stupid tactics.
Wiggin hadn't had Bonzo's hand around his throat the way Bean had. Still,
Wiggin was commander, and Bonzo's tactics had been stupid, and it was fun to
say so.
"Keep a shifting pattern of movement going in front of the door," Bean
answered, loudly, so every soldier could hear him -- even the Salamanders,
still clinging to the ceiling. "You never hold still when the enemy knows
exactly where you are."
Wiggin turned to Anderson again. "As long as you're cheating, why
don't you train the other army to cheat intelligently!"
Anderson was still calm, ignoring Wiggin's outburst. "I suggest that you
remobilize your army."
Wiggin wasn't wasting time with rituals today. He pressed the buttons to
thaw both armies at once. And instead of forming up to receive formal
surrender, he shouted at once, "Dragon Army dismissed!"
Bean was one of those nearest the gate, but he waited till nearly last,
so that he and Wiggin left together. "Sir," said Bean. "You just humiliated
Bonzo and he's --"
"I know," said Wiggin. He jogged away from Bean, not wanting to hear
about it.
"He's dangerous!" Bean called after him. Wasted effort. Either Wiggin
already knew he'd provoked the wrong bully, or he didn't care.
Did he do it deliberately? Wiggin was always in control of himself,
always carrying out a plan. But Bean couldn't think of any plan that
required yelling at Major Anderson and shaming Bonzo Madrid in front of
his whole army.
Why would Wiggin do such a stupid thing?
***
It was almost impossible to think of geometry, even though there was a
test tomorrow. Classwork was utterly unimportant now, and yet they went on
taking the tests and turning in or failing to turn in their assignments. The
last few days, Bean had begun to get less-than-perfect scores. Not that
he didn't know the answers, or at least how to figure them out. It's that
his mind kept wandering to things that mattered more -- new tactics that
might surprise an enemy; new tricks that the teachers might pull in the
way they set things up; what might be, must be going on in the larger war,
to cause the system to start breaking apart like this; what would happen
on Earth and in the I.F. once the Buggers were defeated. If they were
defeated. Hard to care about volumes, areas, faces, and dimensions of
solids. On a test yesterday, working out problems of gravity near
planetary and stellar masses, Bean finally gave up and wrote:
2 + 2 = pi*SQRT(2+n) : When you know the value of n, I'll finish this
test.
He knew that the teachers all knew what was going on, and if they wanted
to pretend that classwork still mattered, fine, let them, but he didn't
have to play.
At the same time, he knew that the problems of gravity mattered to
someone whose only likely future was in the International Fleet. He also
needed a thorough grounding in geometry, since he had a pretty good idea
of what math was yet to come. He wasn't going to be an engineer or
artillerist or rocket scientist or even, in all likelihood, a pilot. But
he had to know what they knew better than they knew it, or they'd never
respect him enough to follow him.
Not tonight, that's all, thought Bean. Tonight I can rest. Tomorrow I'll
learn what I need to learn. When I'm not so tired.
He closed his eyes.
He opened them again. He opened his locker and took out his desk.
Back on the streets of Rotterdam he had been tired, worn out by hunger
and malnutrition and despair. But he kept watching. Kept thinking. And
therefore he was able to stay alive. In this army everyone was getting
tired, which meant that there would be more and more stupid mistakes. Bean,
of all of them, could least afford to become stupid. Not being stupid was
the only asset he had.
He signed on. A message appeared in his display.
See me at once -- Ender
It was only ten minutes before lights out. Maybe Wiggin sent the message
three hours ago. But better late than never. He slid off his bunk, not
bothering with shoes, and padded out into the corridor in his stocking feet.
He knocked at the door marked
COMMANDER
DRAGON ARMY
"Come in," said Wiggin.
Bean opened the door and came inside. Wiggin looked tired in the way
that Colonel Graff usually looked tired. Heavy skin around the eyes, face
slack, hunched in the shoulders, but eyes still bright and fierce, watching,
thinking. "Just saw your message," said Bean.
"Fine."
"It's near lights-out."
"I'll help you find your way in the dark."
The sarcasm surprised Bean. As usual, Wiggin had completely
misunderstood the purpose of Bean's comment. "I just didn't know if you knew
what time it was --"
"I always know what time it is."
Bean sighed inwardly. It never failed. Whenever he had any
conversation with Wiggin, it turned into some kind of pissing contest, which
Bean always lost even creative responses to flowing situations had been
imitated by the other soldiers. But that would be brag and borderline
insubordination. It wasn't what a soldier who wanted to be an officer
would say. Either Crazy Tom had reported Bean's contribution or he hadn't.
It wasn't Bean's place to report on anything about himself that wasn't
public record. "Today was the first time they disabled me so early, but
the computer listed me as getting eleven hits before I had to stop. "I've
never had less than five hits in a battle. I've also completed every
assignment I've been given."
"Why did they make you a soldier so young, Bean?"
"No younger than you were." Technically not true, but close enough.
"But why?"
What was he getting at? It was the teachers' decision. Had he found
out that Bean was the one who composed the roster? Did he know that Bean had
chosen himself? "I don't know."
"Yes you do, and so do I."
No, Wiggin wasn't asking specifically about why *Bean* was made a
soldier. He was asking why launchies were suddenly getting promoted so
young. "I've tried to guess, but they're just guesses." Not that Bean's
guesses were ever just guesses -- but then, neither were Wiggin's. "You're
-- very good. They knew that, they pushed you ahead --"
"Tell me *why*, Bean."
And now Bean understood the question he was really asking. "Because they
need us, that's why." He sat on the floor and looked, not into Wiggin's
face, but at his feet. Bean knew things that he wasn't supposed to know.
That the teachers didn't know he knew. And in all likelihood, there were
teachers monitoring this conversation. Bean couldn't let his face give
away how much he really understood. "Because they need somebody to beat
the Buggers. That's the only thing they care about."
"It's important that you know that, Bean."
Bean wanted to demand, Why is it important that *I* know it? Or are
you just saying that people in general should know it? Have you finally seen
and understood who I am? That I'm *you*, only smarter and less likable, the
better strategist but the weaker commander? That if you fail, if you break,
if you get sick and die, then I'm the one? Is that why I need to know this?
"Because," Wiggin went on, "most of the boys in this school think the
game is important *for itself*, but it isn't. It's only important because it
helps them find kids who might grow up to be real commanders, in the real
war. But as for the game, screw that. That's what they're doing. Screwing up
the game."
"Funny," said Bean. "I thought they were just doing it to us." No, if
Wiggin thought Bean needed to have this explained to him, he did *not*
understand who Bean really was. Still, it was Bean in Wiggin's quarters,
having this conversation with him. That was something.
"A game nine weeks earlier than it should have come. A game every day.
And now two games in the same day. Bean, I don't know what the teachers
are doing, but my army is getting tired, and I'm getting tired, and they
don't care at all about the rules of the game. I've pulled the old charts up
from the computer. No one has ever destroyed so many enemies and kept so
many of his own soldiers whole in the history of the game."
What was this, brag? Bean answered as brag was meant to be answered.
"You're the best, Ender."
Wiggin shook his head. If he heard the irony in Bean's voice, he
didn't respond to it. "Maybe. But it was no accident that I got the soldiers
I got. Launchies, rejects from other armies, but put them together and my
worst soldier could be a toon leader in another army. They've loaded
things my way, but now they're loading it all against me. Bean, they want to
break us down."
So Wiggin did understand how his army had been selected, even if he
didn't know who had done the selecting. Or maybe he knew everything, and
this was all that he cared to show Bean at this time. It was hard to guess
how much of what Wiggin did was calculated and how much merely intuitive.
"They can't break you."
"You'd be surprised." Wiggin breathed sharply, suddenly, as if there
were a stab of pain, or he had to catch a sudden breath in a wind; Bean
looked at him and realized that the impossible was happening. Far from
baiting him, Ender Wiggin was actually confiding in him. Not much. But a
little. Ender was letting Bean see that he was human. Bringing him into
the inner circle. Making him ... what? A counselor? A confidant?
"Maybe you'll be surprised," said Bean.
"There's a limit to how many clever new ideas I can come up with every
day. Somebody's going to come up with something to throw at me that I
haven't thought of before, and I won't be ready."
"What's the worst that could happen?" asked Bean. "You lose one game."
"Yes. That's the worst that could happen. I can't lose *any* games.
Because if I lose *any* ..."
He didn't complete the thought. Bean wondered what Ender imagined the
consequences would be. Merely that the legend of Ender Wiggin, perfect
soldier, would be lost? Or that his army would lose confidence in him, or in
their own invincibility? Or was this about the larger war, and losing a
game here in Battle School might shake the confidence of the teachers that
Ender was the commander of the future, the one to lead the fleet, if he
could be made ready before the Bugger invasion arrived?
Again, Bean did not know how much the teachers knew about what Bean
had guessed about the progress of the wider war. Better to keep silence.
"I need you to be clever, Bean," said Ender. "I need you to think of
solutions to problems we haven't seen yet. I want you to try things that
no one has ever tried because they're absolutely stupid."
So what is this about, Ender? What have you decided about me, that
brings me into your quarters tonight? "Why me?"
"Because even though there are some better soldiers than you in Dragon
Army -- not many, but some -- there's nobody who can think better and faster
than you."
He *had* seen. And after a month of frustration, Bean realized that it
was better this way. Ender had seen his work in battle, had judged him by
what he did, not by his reputation in classes or the rumors about his having
the highest scores in the history of the school. Bean had earned this
evaluation, and it had been given him by the only person in this school
whose high opinion Bean longed for.
Ender held out his desk for Bean to see. On it were twelve names. Two or
three soldiers from each toon. Bean immediately knew how Ender had chosen
them. They were all good soldiers, confident and reliable. But not the
flashy ones, the stunters, the show-offs. They were, in fact, the ones
that Bean valued most highly among those who were not toon leaders.
"Choose five of these," said Ender. "One from each toon. They're a special
squad, and you'll train them. Only during the extra practice sessions.
Talk to me about what you're training them to do. Don't spend too long on
any one thing. Most of the time you and your squad will be part of the whole
army, part of your regular toons. But when I need you. When there's
something to be done that only you can do."
There was something else about these twelve. "These are all new. No
veterans."
"After last week, Bean, all our soldiers are veterans. Don't you realize
that on the individual soldier standings, all forty of our soldiers are
in the top fifty? That you have to go down seventeen places to find a
soldier who *isn't* a Dragon?"
"What if I can't think of anything?" asked Bean.
"Then I was wrong about you."
Bean grinned. "You weren't wrong."
The lights went out.
"Can you find your way back, Bean?"
"Probably not."
"Then stay here. If you listen very carefully, you can hear the good
fairy come in the night and leave our assignment for tomorrow."
"They won't give us another battle tomorrow, will they?" Bean meant it
as a joke, but Ender didn't answer.
Bean heard him climb into bed.
Ender was still small for a commander. His feet didn't come near the end
of the bunk. There was plenty of room for Bean to curl up at the foot of
the bed. So he climbed up and then lay still, so as not to disturb Ender's
sleep. If he was sleeping. If he was not lying awake in the silence,
trying to make sense of ... what?
For Bean, the assignment was merely to think of the unthinkable --
stupid ploys that might be used against them, and ways to counter them;
equally stupid innovations they might introduce in order to sow confusion
among the other armies and, Bean suspected, get them sidetracked into
imitating completely nonessential strategies. Since few of the other
commanders understood why Dragon Army was winning, they kept imitating the
nonce tactics used in a particular battle instead of seeing the underlying
method Ender used in training and organizing his army. As Napoleon said, the
only thing a commander ever truly controls is his own army -- training,
morale, trust, initiative, command and, to a lesser degree, supply,
placement, movement, loyalty, and courage in battle. What the enemy will
do and what chance will bring, those defy all planning. The commander must
be able to change his plans abruptly when obstacles or opportunities appear.
If his army isn't ready and willing to respond to his will, his
cleverness comes to nothing.
The less effective commanders didn't understand this. Failing to
recognize that Ender won because he and his army responded fluidly and
instantly to change, they could only think to imitate the specific tactics
they saw him use. Even if Bean's creative gambits were irrelevant to the
outcome of the battle, they would lead other commanders to waste time
imitating irrelevancies. Now and then something he came up with might
actually be useful. But by and large, he was a sideshow.
That was fine with Bean. If Ender wanted a sideshow, what mattered was
that he had chosen Bean to create that show, and Bean would do it as well as
it could be done.
But if Ender was lying awake tonight, it was not because he was
concerned about Dragon Army's battles tomorrow and the next day and the
next. Ender was thinking about the Buggers and how he would fight them
when he got through his training and was thrown into war, with the real
lives of real men depending on his decisions, with the survival of
humanity depending on the outcome.
In that scheme, what is my place? thought Bean. I'm glad enough that the
burden is on Ender, not because I could not bear it -- maybe I could -- but
because I have more confidence that Ender can bring it off than that I
could. Whatever it is that makes men love the commander who decides when
they will die, Ender has that, and if I have it no one has yet seen evidence
of it. Besides, even without genetic alteration, Ender has abilities that
the tests didn't measure for, that run deeper than mere intellect.
But he shouldn't have to bear all this alone. I can help him. I can
forget geometry and astronomy and all the other nonsense and concentrate
on the problems he faces most directly. I'll do research into the way
other animals wage war, especially swarming hive insects, since the
Formics resemble ants the way we resemble primates.
And I can watch his back.
Bean thought again of Bonzo Madrid. Of the deadly rage of bullies in
Rotterdam.
Why have the teachers put Ender in this position? He's an obvious target
for the hatred of the other boys. Kids in Battle School had war in their
hearts. They hungered for triumph. They loathed defeat. If they lacked these
attributes, they would never have been brought here. Yet from the start,
Ender had been set apart from the others -- younger but smarter, the leading
soldier and now the commander who makes all other commanders look like
babies. Some commanders responded to defeat by becoming submissive -- Carn
Carby, for instance, now praised Ender behind his back and studied his
battles to try to learn how to win, never realizing that you had to study
Ender's training, not his battles, to understand his victories. But most
of the other commanders were resentful, frightened, ashamed, angry, jealous,
and it was in their character to translate such feelings into violent
action ... if they were sure of victory.
Just like the streets of Rotterdam. Just like the bullies, struggling
for supremacy, for rank, for respect. Ender has stripped Bonzo naked. It
cannot be borne. He'll have his revenge, as surely as Achilles avenged his
humiliation.
And the teachers understand this. They intend it. Ender has clearly
mastered every test they set for him -- whatever Battle School usually
taught, he was done with. So why didn't they move him on to the next
level? Because there was a lesson they were trying to teach, or a test
they were trying to get him to pass, which was not within the usual
curriculum. Only this particular test could end in death. Bean had felt
Bonzo's fingers around his throat. This was a boy who, once he let himself
go, would relish the absolute power that the murderer achieves at his
victim's moment of death.
They're putting Ender into a street situation. They're testing him to
see if he can survive.
They don't know what they're doing, the fools. The street is not a test.
The street is a lottery.
I came out a winner -- I was alive. But Ender's survival won't depend on
his ability. Luck plays too large a role. Plus the skill and resolve and
power of the opponent.
Bonzo may be unable to control the emotions that weaken him, but his
presence in Battle School means that he is not without skill. He was made
a commander because a certain type of soldier will follow him into death and
horror. Ender is in mortal danger. And the teachers, who think of us as
children, have no idea how quickly death can come. Look away for only a
few minutes, step away far enough that you can't get back in time, and
your precious Ender Wiggin, on whom all your hopes are pinned, will be
quite, quite dead. I saw it on the streets of Rotterdam. It can happen
just as easily in your nice clean rooms here in space.
So Bean set aside classwork for good that night, lying at Ender's feet.
Instead, he had two new courses of study. He would help Ender prepare for
the war he cared about, with the Buggers. But he would also help him in
the street fight that was being set up for him.
It wasn't that Ender was oblivious, either. After some kind of fracas in
the battleroom during one of Ender's early freetime practices, Ender had
taken a course in self-defense, and knew something about fighting man to
man. But Bonzo would not come at him man to man. He was too keenly aware
of having been beaten. Bonzo's purpose would not be a rematch, it would
not be vindication. It would be punishment. It would be elimination. He
would bring a gang.
And the teachers would not realize the danger until it was too late.
They still didn't think of anything the children did as "real."
So after Bean thought of clever, stupid things to do with his new squad,
he also tried to think of ways to set Bonzo up so that, in the crunch, he
would have to take on Ender Wiggin alone or not at all. Strip away Bonzo's
support. Destroy the morale, the reputation of any bully who might go
along with him.
This is one job Ender *can't* do. But it can be done.PART FIVE -- LEADER
CHAPTER 17 -- DEADLINE
"I don't even know how to interpret this. The mind game had only one
shot at Bean, and it puts up this one kid's face, and he goes off the charts
with -- what, fear? Rage? Isn't there anybody who knows how this
so-called game works? It ran Ender through a wringer, brought in those
pictures of his brother that it couldn't possibly have had, only it got
them. And this one -- was it some deeply insightful gambit that leads to
powerful new conclusions about Bean's psyche? Or was it simply the only
person Bean knew whose picture was already in the Battle School files?"
"Was that a rant, or is there any particular one of those questions
you want answered?"
"What I want you to answer is this question: How the hell can you tell
me that something was 'very significant' if you have no idea what it
signifies!"
"If someone runs after your car, screaming and waving his arms, you know
that something significant is intended, even if you can't hear a word
he's saying."
"So that's what this was? Screaming?"
"That was an analogy. The image of Achilles was extraordinarily
important to Bean."
"Important positive, or important negative?"
"That's too cut-and-dried. If it was negative, are his negative feelings
because Achilles caused some terrible trauma in Bean? Or negative because
having been torn away from Achilles was traumatic, and Bean longs to be
restored to him?"
"So if we have an independent source of information that tells us to
keep them apart ..."
"Then either that independent source is really really right ..."
"Or really really wrong."
"I'd be more specific if I could. We only had a minute with him."
"That's disingenuous. You've had the mind game linked to all his work
with his teacher-identity."
"And we've reported to you about that. It's partly his hunger to have
control -- that's how it began -- but it has since become a way of taking
responsibility. He has, in a way, *become* a teacher. He has also used his
inside information to give himself the illusion of belonging to the
community."
"He does belong."
"He has only one close friend, and that's more of a big brother,
little brother thing."
"I have to decide whether I can put Achilles into Battle School while
Bean is there, or give up one of them in order to keep the other. Now,
from Bean's response to Achilles's face, what counsel can you give me."
"You won't like it."
"Try me."
"From that incident, we can tell you that putting them together will
be either a really really bad thing, or --"
"I'm going to have to take a long, hard look at your budget."
"Sir, the whole purpose of the program, the way it works, is that the
computer makes connections we would never think of, and gets responses we
weren't looking for. It's not actually under our control."
"Just because a program isn't out of control doesn't mean intelligence
is present, either in the program or the programmer."
"We don't use the word 'intelligence' with software. We regard that as a
naive idea. We say that it's 'complex.' Which means that we don't always
understand what it's doing. We don't always get conclusive information."
"Have you *ever* gotten conclusive information about anything?"
"*I* chose the wrong word this time. 'Conclusive' isn't ever the goal
when we are studying the human mind."
"Try 'useful.' Anything useful?"
"Sir, I've told you what we know. The decision was yours before we
reported to you, and it's still your decision now. Use our information or
not, but is it sensible to shoot the messenger?"
"When the messenger won't tell you what the hell the message *is*, my
trigger finger gets twitchy. Dismissed."
***
Nikolai's name was on the list that Ender gave him, but Bean ran into
problems immediately.
"I don't want to," said Nikolai.
It had not occurred to Bean that anyone would refuse.
"I'm having a hard enough time keeping up as it is."
"You're a good soldier."
"By the skin of my teeth. With a big helping of luck."
"That's how *all* good soldiers do it."
"Bean, if I lose one practice a day from my regular toon, then I'll fall
behind. How can I make it up? And one practice a day with you won't be
enough. I'm a smart kid, Bean, but I'm not Ender. I'm not you. That's the
thing that I don't think you really get. How it feels *not* to be you.
Things just aren't as easy and clear."
"It's not easy for me, either."
"Look, I know that, Bean. And there are some things I can do for you.
This isn't one of them. Please."
It was Bean's first experience with command, and it wasn't working. He
found himself getting angry, wanting to say Screw you and go on to someone
else. Only he couldn't be angry at the only true friend he had. And he
also couldn't easily take no for an answer. "Nikolai, what we're doing won't
be hard. Stunts and tricks."
Nikolai closed his eyes. "Bean, you're making me feel bad."
"I don't want you to feel bad, Sinterklaas, but this is the assignment I
was given, because Ender thinks Dragon Army needs this. You were on the
list, his choice not mine."
"But you don't have to choose me."
"So I ask the next kid, and he says, 'Nikolai's on this squad, right?'
and I say, No, he didn't want to. That makes them all feel like they can say
no. And they'll *want* to say no, because nobody wants to be taking
orders from me."
"A month ago, sure, that would have been true. But they know you're a
solid soldier. I've heard people talk about you. They respect you."
Again, it would have been so easy to do what Nikolai wanted and let
him off the hook on this. And, as a friend, that would be the *right*
thing to do. But Bean couldn't think as a friend. He had to deal with the
fact that he had been given a command and he had to make it work.
Did he really need Nikolai?
"I'm just thinking out loud, Nikolai, because you're the only one I
can say this to, but see, I'm scared. I wanted to lead a toon, but that's
because I didn't know anything about what leaders do. I've had a week of
battles to see how Crazy Tom holds the group of us together, the voice he
uses for command. To see how Ender trains us and trusts us, and it's a
dance, tiptoe, leap, spin, and I'm afraid that I'll fail, and there isn't
*time* to fail, I have to make this work, and when you're with me, I know
there's at least one person who isn't halfway hoping for this smart little
kid to fail."
"Don't kid yourself," said Nikolai. "As long as we're being honest."
That stung. But a leader had to take that, didn't he? "No matter what
you feel, Nikolai, you'll give me a chance," said Bean. "And because
you're giving me a chance, the others will, too. I need ... loyalty."
"So do I, Bean."
"You need my loyalty as a friend, in order to let you, personally, be
happy," said Bean. "I need loyalty as a leader, in order to fulfil the
assignment given to us by our commander."
"That's mean," said Nikolai.
"Eh," said Bean. "Also true."
"You're mean, Bean."
"Help me, Nikolai."
"Looks like our friendship goes only one way."
Bean had never felt like this before -- this knife in his heart, just
because of the words he was hearing, just because somebody else was angry
with him. It wasn't just because he wanted Nikolai to think well of him.
It was because he knew that Nikolai was at least partly right. Bean was
using his friendship against him.
It wasn't because of that pain, however, that Bean decided to back off.
It was because a soldier who was with him against his will would not
serve him well. Even if he was a friend. "Look, if you won't, you won't. I'm
sorry I made you mad. I'll do it without you. And you're right, I'll do
fine. Still friends, Nikolai?" Nikolai?"
Nikolai took his offered hand, held it. "Thank you," he whispered.
Bean went immediately to Shovel, the only one on Ender's list who was
also from C toon. Shovel wasn't Bean's first choice -- he had just the
slightest tendency to delay, to do things halfheartedly. But because he
was in C toon, Shovel had been there when Bean advised Crazy Tom. He had
observed Bean in action.
Shovel set aside his desk when Bean asked if they could talk for a
minute. As with Nikolai, Bean clambered up onto the bunk to sit beside the
larger boy. Shovel was from Cagnes-sur-Mer, a little town on the French
Riviera, and he still had that open-faced friendliness of Provence. Bean
liked him. Everybody liked him.
Quickly Bean explained what Ender had asked him to do -- though he
didn't mention that it was just a sideshow. Nobody would give up a daily
practice for a something that wouldn't be crucial to victory. "You were on
the list Ender gave me, and I'd like you to --"
"Bean, what are you doing?"
Crazy Tom stood in front of Shovel's bunk.
At once Bean realized his mistake. "Sir," said Bean, "I should have
talked to you first. I'm new at this and I just didn't think."
"New at what?"
Again Bean laid out what he had been asked to do by Ender.
"And Shovel's on the list?"
"Right."
"So I'm going to lose you *and* Shovel from my practices?"
"Just one practice per day."
"I'm the only toon leader who loses two."
"Ender said one from each toon. Five, plus me. Not my choice."
"Merda," said Crazy Tom. "You and Ender just didn't think of the fact
that this is going to hit me harder than any of the other toon leaders.
Whatever you're doing, why can't you do it with five instead of six? You and
four others -- one from each of the other toons?"
Bean wanted to argue, but realized that going head to head wasn't
going to get him anywhere. "You're right, I didn't think of that, and you're
right that Ender might very well change his mind when he realizes what he's
doing to your practices. So when he comes in this morning, why don't you
talk to him and let me know what the two of you decide? In the meantime,
though, Shovel might tell me no, and then the question doesn't matter
anymore, right?"
Crazy Tom thought about it. Bean could see the anger ticking away in
him. But leadership had changed Crazy Tom. He no longer blew up the way he
used to. He caught himself. He held it in. He waited it out.
"OK, I'll talk to Ender. If Shovel wants to do it."
They both looked at Shovel.
"I think it'd be OK," said Shovel. "To do something weird like this."
"I won't let up on either of you," said Crazy Tom. "And you don't talk
about your wacko toon during my practices. You keep it outside."
They both agreed to that. Bean could see that Crazy Tom was wise to
insist on that. This special assignment would set the two of them apart from
the others in C toon. If they rubbed their noses in it, the others could
feel shut out of an elite. That problem wouldn't show up as much in any of
the other toons, because there'd only be one kid from each toon in Bean's
squad. No chat. Therefore no nose-rubbing.
"Look, I don't have to talk to Ender about this," said Crazy Tom.
"Unless it becomes a problem. OK?"
"Thanks," said Bean.
Crazy Tom went back to his own bunk.
I did that OK, thought Bean. I didn't screw up.
"Bean?" said Shovel.
"Eh?"
"One thing."
"Eh."
"Don't call me Shovel."
Bean thought back. Shovel's real name was Ducheval. "You prefer 'Two
Horses'? Sounds kind of like a Sioux warrior."
Shovel grinned. "That's better than sounding like the tool you use to
clean the stable."
"Ducheval," said Bean. "From now on."
"Thanks. When do we start?"
"Freetime practice today."
"Bacana."
Bean almost danced away from Ducheval's bunk. He had done it. He had
handled it. Once, anyway.
And by the time breakfast was over, he had all five on his toon. With
the other four, he checked with their toon leaders first. No one turned
him down. And he got his squad to promise to call Ducheval by his right name
from then on.
***
Graff had Dimak and Dap in his makeshift office in the battleroom bridge
when Bean came. It was the usual argument between Dimak and Dap -- that is,
it was about nothing, some trivial question of one violating some minor
protocol or other, which escalated quickly into a flurry of formal
complaints. Just another skirmish in their rivalry, as Dap and Dimak tried
to gain some advantage for their proteges, Ender and Bean, while at the same
time trying to keep Graff from putting them in the physical danger that
both saw looming. When the knock came at the door, voices had been raised
for some time, and because the knock was not loud, it occurred to Graff to
wonder what might have been overheard.
Had names been mentioned? Yes. Both Bean and Ender. And also Bonzo.
Had Achilles's name come up? No. He had just been referred to as "another
irresponsible decision endangering the future of the human race, all because
of some insane theory about games being one thing and genuine
life-and-death struggles being another, completely unproven and unprovable
except in the blood of some child!" That was Dap, who had a tendency to
wax eloquent.
Graff, of course, was already sick at heart, because he agreed with both
teachers, not only in their arguments against each other, but also in their
arguments against his own policy. Bean was demonstrably the better
candidate on all tests; Ender was just as demonstrably the better
candidate based on his performance in actual leadership situations. And
Graff *was* being irresponsible to expose both boys to physical danger.
But in both cases, the child had serious doubts about his own courage.
Ender had his long history of submission to his older brother, Peter, and
the mind game had shown that in Ender's unconscious, Peter was linked to the
Buggers. Graff knew that Ender had the courage to strike, without
restraint, when the time came for it. That he could stand alone against an
enemy, without anyone to help him, and destroy the one who would destroy
him. But Ender didn't know it, and he had to know.
Bean, for his part, had shown physical symptoms of panic before his
first battle, and while he ended up performing well, Graff didn't need any
psychological tests to tell him that the doubt was there. The only
difference was, in Bean's case Graff shared his doubt. There *was* no
proof that Bean would strike. strike.
Self-doubt was the one thing that neither candidate could afford to
have. Against an enemy that did not hesitate -- that *could* not hesitate --
there could be no pause for reflection. The boys had to face their worst
fears, knowing that no one would intervene to help. They had to know that
when failure would be fatal, they would not fail. They had to pass the
test and know that they had passed it. And both boys were so perceptive that
the danger could not be faked. It had to *be* real.
Exposing them to that risk was utterly irresponsible of Graff. Yet he
knew that it would be just as irresponsible not to. If Graff played it safe,
no one would blame him if, in the actual war, Ender or Bean failed. That
would be small consolation, though, given the consequences of failure.
Whichever way he guessed, if he was wrong, everybody on Earth might pay
the ultimate price. The only thing that made it possible was that if
either of them was killed, or damaged physically or mentally, the other
was still there to carry on as the sole remaining candidate.
If both failed, what then? There were many bright children, but none who
were that much better than commanders already in place, who had graduated
from Battle School many years ago.
Somebody has to roll the dice. Mine are the hands that hold those dice.
I'm not a bureaucrat, placing my career above the larger purpose I was
put here to serve. I will not put the dice in someone else's hands, or
pretend that I don't have the choice I have.
For now, all Graff could do was listen to both Dap and Dimak, ignore
their bureaucratic attacks and maneuvers against him, and try to keep them
from each other's throats in their vicarious rivalry.
That small knock at the door -- Graff knew before the door opened who it
would be.
If he had heard the argument, Bean gave no sign. But then, that was
Bean's specialty, giving no sign. Only Ender managed to be more secretive --
and he, at least, had played the mind game long enough to give the teachers
a map of his psyche.
"Sir," said Bean.
"Come in, Bean." Come in, Julian Delphiki, longed-for child of good
and loving parents. Come in, kidnapped child, hostage of fate. Come and talk
to the Fates, who are playing such clever little games with your life.
"I can wait," said Bean.
"Captain Dap and Captain Dimak can hear what you have to say, can't
they?" asked Graff.
"If you say so, sir. It's not a secret. I would like to have access to
station supplies."
"Denied."
"That's not acceptable, sir."
Graff saw how both Dap and Dimak glanced at him. Amused at the
audacity of the boy? "Why do you think so?"
"Short notice, games every day, soldiers exhausted and yet still being
pressured to perform in class -- fine, Ender's dealing with it and so are
we. But the only possible reason you could be doing this is to test our
resourcefulness. So I want some resources."
"I don't remember your being commander of Dragon Army," said Graff.
"I'll listen to a requisition for specific equipment from your commander."
"Not possible," said Bean. "He doesn't have time to waste on foolish
bureaucratic procedures."
Foolish bureaucratic procedures. Graff had used that exact phrase in the
argument just a few minutes ago. But Graff's voice had *not* been raised.
How long *had* Bean been listening outside the door? Graff cursed himself
silently. He had moved his office up here specifically because he knew
Bean was a sneak and a spy, gathering intelligence however he could. And
then he didn't even post a guard to stop the boy from simply walking up
and listening at the door.
"And you do?" asked Graff.
"I'm the one he assigned to think of stupid things you might do to rig
the game against us, and think of ways to deal with them."
"What do you think you're going to find?"
"I don't know," said Bean. "I just know that the only things we ever see
are our uniforms and flash suits, our weapons and our desks. There are
other supplies here. For instance, there's paper. We never get any except
during written tests, when our desks are closed to us."
"What would you do with paper in the battleroom?"
"I don't know," said Bean. "Wad it up and throw it around. Shred it
and make a cloud of dust out of it."
"And who would clean this up?"
"Not my problem," said Bean.
"Permission denied."
"That's not acceptable, sir," said Bean.
"I don't mean to hurt your feelings, Bean, but it matters less than a
cockroach's fart whether you accept my decision or not."
"I don't mean to hurt *your* feelings, sir, but you clearly have no idea
what you're doing. You're improvising. Screwing with the system. The damage
you're doing is going to take years to undo, and you don't care. That means
that it doesn't matter what condition this school is in a year from now.
That means that everybody who matters is going to be graduated soon.
Training is being accelerated because the Buggers are getting too close
for delays. So you're pushing. And you're especially pushing Ender Wiggin.
"
Graff felt sick. He knew that Bean's powers of analysis were
extraordinary. So, also, were his powers of deception. Some of Bean's
guesses weren't right -- but was that because he didn't know the truth, or
because he simply didn't want them to know how much he knew, or how much
he guessed? I never wanted you here, Bean, because you're too dangerous.
Bean was still making his case. "When the day comes that Ender Wiggin is
looking for ways to stop the Buggers from getting to Earth and scouring the
whole planet the way they started to back in the First Invasion, are you
going to give him some bullshit answer about what resources he can or cannot
use?"
"As far as you're concerned, the ship's supplies don't exist."
"As far as I'm concerned," said Bean, "Ender is *this* close to
telling you to fry up your game and eat it. He's sick of it -- if you
can't see that, you're not much of a teacher. He doesn't care about the
standings. He doesn't care about beating other kids. All he cares about is
preparing to fight the Buggers. So how hard do you think it will be for me
to persuade him that your program here is crocked, and it's time to quit
playing?"
"All right," said Graff. "Dimak, prepare the brig. Bean is to be
confined until the shuttle is ready to take him back to Earth. This boy is
out of Battle School."
Bean smiled slightly. "Go for it, Colonel Graff. I'm done here anyway.
I've got everything *I* wanted here -- a first-rate education. I'll never
have to live on the street again. I'm home free. Let me out of your game,
right now, I'm ready."
"You won't be free on Earth, either. Can't risk having you tell these
wild stories about Battle School," said Graff.
"Right. Take the best student you ever had here and put him in jail
because he asked for access to the supply closet and you didn't like it.
Come on, Colonel Graff. Swallow hard and back down. You need my
cooperation more than I need yours."
Dimak could barely conceal his smile.
If only confronting Graff like this were sufficient proof of Bean's
courage. And for all that Graff had doubts about Bean, he didn't deny that
he was good at maneuver. Graff would have given almost anything not to
have Dimak and Dap in the room at this moment.
"It was your decision to have this conversation in front of witnesses,
" said Bean.
What, was the kid a mind reader?
No, Graff had glanced at the two teachers. Bean simply knew how to
read his body language. The kid missed nothing. That's why he was so
valuable to the program.
Isn't this why we pin our hopes on these kids? Because they're good at
maneuver?
And if I know anything about command, don't I know this -- that there
are times when you cut your losses and leave the field?
"All right, Bean. One scan through supply inventory."
"With somebody to explain to me what it all is."
"I thought you already knew everything."
Bean was polite in victory; he did not respond to taunting. The
sarcasm gave Graff a little compensation for having to back down. He knew
that's all it was, but this job didn't have many perks.
"Captain Dimak and Captain Dap will accompany you," said Graff. "One
scan, and either one of them can veto anything you request. They will be
responsible for the consequences of any injuries resulting from your use
of any item they let you have."
"Thank you, sir," said Bean. "In all likelihood I won't find anything
useful. But I appreciate your fair-mindedness in letting us search the
station's resources to further the educational objectives of the Battle
School."
The kid had the jargon down cold. All those months of access to the
student data, with all the notations in the files, Bean had clearly
learned more than just the factual contents of the dossiers. And now Bean
was giving him the spin that he should use in writing up a report about
his decision. As if Graff were not perfectly capable of creating his own
spin.
The kid is patronizing me. Little bastard thinks that he's in control.
Well, I have some surprises for him, too.
"Dismissed," said Graff. "All of you."
They got up, saluted, left.
Now, thought Graff, I have to second-guess all my future decisions,
wondering how much my choices are influenced by the fact that this kid
really pisses me off.
***
As Bean scanned the inventory list, he was really searching primarily
for something, anything, that might be made into a weapon that Ender or some
of his army could carry to protect him from physical attack by Bonzo. But
there was nothing that would be both concealable from the teachers and
powerful enough to give smaller kids sufficient leverage over larger ones.
It was a disappointment, but he'd find other ways to neutralize the
threat. And now, as long as he was scanning the inventory, *was* there
anything that he ceiling. There were no friendly lightstripes for a child to
touch and get directions to his barracks. All the palm pads were too high
for a child to comfortably use. And the staff they passed saw Bean and
then looked at Dap and Dimak as if they were crazy.
The coil was amazingly small. Bean hefted it. Light, too. He unspooled a
few decameters of it. It was almost invisible. "This will hold?"
"The weight of two adults," said Dimak.
"It's so fine. Will it cut?"
"Rounded so smoothly it can't cut anything. Wouldn't do us any good if
it went slicing through things. Like spacesuits."
"Can I cut it into short lengths?"
"With a blowtorch," said Dimak.
"This is what I want."
"Just one?" asked Dap, rather sarcastically.
"And a blowtorch," said Bean.
"Denied," said Dimak.
"I was joking," said Bean. He walked out of the supply room and
started jogging down the corridor, retracing the route they had just taken.
They jogged after him. "Slow down!" Dimak called out.
"Keep up!" Bean answered. "I've got a toon waiting for me to train
them with this."
"Train them to do what!"
"I don't know!" He got to the pole and slid down. It passed him right
through to the student levels. Going this direction, there was no security
clearance at all.
His toon was waiting for him in the battleroom. They'd been working hard
for him the past few days, trying all kinds of lame things. Formations that
could explode in midair. Screens. Attacks without guns, disarming enemies
with their feet. Getting into and out of spins, which made them almost
impossible to hit but also kept them from shooting at anybody else.
The most encouraging thing was the fact that Ender spent almost the
entire practice time watching Bean's squad whenever he wasn't actually
responding to questions from leaders and soldiers in the other toons.
Whatever they came up with, Ender would know about it and have his own ideas
about when to use it. And, knowing that Ender's eyes were on them, Bean's
soldiers worked all the harder. It gave Bean more stature in their eyes,
that Ender really did care about what they did.
Ender's good at this, Bean realized again for the hundredth time. He
knows how to form a group into the shape he wants it to have. He knows how
to get people to work together. And he does it by the most minimal means
possible.
If Graff were as good at this as Ender, I wouldn't have had to act
like such a bully in there today.
The first thing Bean tried with the deadline was to stretch it across
the battleroom. It reached, with barely enough slack to allow knots to be
tied at both ends. But a few minutes of experimentation showed that it would
be completely ineffective as a tripwire. Most enemies would simply miss it;
those that did run into it might be disoriented or flipped around, but once
it was known that it was there, it could be used like part of a grid, which
meant it would work to the advantage of a creative enemy.
The deadline was designed to keep a man from drifting off into space.
What happens when you get to the end of the line?
Bean left one end fastened to a handhold in the wall, but coiled the
other end around his waist several times. The line was now shorter than
the width of the battleroom's cube. Bean tied a knot in the line, then
launched himself toward the opposite wall.
As he sailed through the air, the deadline tautening behind him, he
couldn't help thinking: I hope they were right about this wire not being
capable of cutting. What a way to end -- sliced in half in the battleroom.
*That* would be an interesting mess for them to clean up.
When he was a meter from the wall, the line went taut. Bean's forward
progress was immediately halted at his waist. His body jacknifed and he felt
like he'd been kicked in the gut. But the most surprising thing was the way
his inertia was translated from forward movement into a sideways arc that
whipped him across the battleroom toward where D toon was practicing. He hit
the wall so hard he had what was left of his breath knocked out of him.
"Did you see that!" Bean screamed, as soon as he could breathe. His
stomach hurt -- he might not have been sliced in half, but he would have a
vicious bruise, he knew that at once, and if he hadn't had his flash suit
on, he could well believe there would have been internal injuries. But
he'd be OK, and the deadline had let him change directions abruptly in
midair. "Did you see it! Did you see it!"
"Are you all right!" Ender shouted.
He realized that Ender thought he was injured. Slowing down his speech,
Bean called out again, "Did you see how fast I went! Did you see how I
changed direction!"
The whole army stopped practice to watch as Bean played more with the
deadline. Tying two soldiers together got interesting results when one of
them stopped, but it was hard to hold on. More effective was when Bean had
Ender use his hook to pull a star out of the wall and put it into the middle
of the battleroom. Bean tied himself and launched from the star; when the
line went taut, the edge of the star acted as a fulcrum, shortening the
length of the line as he changed direction. And as the line wrapped around
the star, it shortened even more upon reaching each edge. At the end, Bean
was moving so fast that he blacked out for a moment upon hitting the star.
But the whole of Dragon Army was stunned at what they had seen. The deadline
was completely invisible, so it looked as though this little kid had
launched himself and then suddenly started changing direction and speeding
up in midflight. It was seriously disturbing to see it.
"Let's do it again, and see if I can shoot while I'm doing it," said
Bean.
***
Evening practice didn't end till 2140, leaving little time before bed.
But having seen the stunts Bean's squad was preparing, the army was
excited instead of weary, fairly scampering through the corridors. Most of
them probably understood that what Bean had come up with were stunts,
nothing that would be decisive in battle. It was fun anyway. It was new. And
it was Dragon.
Bean started out leading the way, having been given that honor by Ender.
A time of triumph, and even though he knew he was being manipulated by
the system -- behavior modification through public honors -- it still felt
good.
Not so good, though, that he let up his alertness. He hadn't gone far
along the corridor until he realized that there were too many Salamander
uniforms among the other boys wandering around in this section. By 2140,
most armies were in their barracks, with only a few stragglers coming back
from the library or the vids or the game room. Too many Salamanders, and the
other soldiers were often big kids from armies whose commanders bore no
special love toward Ender. It didn't take a genius to recognize a trap.
Bean jogged back and tagged Crazy Tom, Vlad, and Hot Soup, who were
walking together. "Too many Salamanders," Bean said. "Stay back with Ender."
They got it at once -- it was public knowledge that Bonzo was breathing out
threats about what "somebody" ought to do to Ender Wiggin, just to put
him in his place. Bean continued his shambling, easygoing run toward the
back of the army, ignoring the smaller kids but tagging the other two toon
leaders and all the seconds -- the older kids, the ones who might have
some chance of standing up to Bonzo's crew in a fight. Not *much* of a
chance, but all that was needed was to keep them from getting at Ender until
the teachers intervened. No way could the teachers stand aloof if an
out-and-out riot erupted. Or could they?
Bean passed right by Ender, got behind him. He saw, coming up quickly,
Petra Arkanian in her Phoenix Army uniform. She called out. "Ho, Ender!"
To Bean's disgust, Ender stopped and turned around. The boy was too
trusting.
Behind Petra, a few Salamanders fell into step. Bean looked the other
way, and saw a few more Salamanders and a couple of set-faced boys from
other armies, drifting down the corridor past the last of the Dragons. Hot
Soup and Crazy Tom were coming quickly, with more toon leaders and the
rest of the larger Dragons coming behind them, but they weren't moving
fast enough. Bean beckoned, and he saw Crazy Tom pick up his pace. The
others followed suit.
"Ender, can I talk to you," said Petra.
Bean was bitterly disappointed. Petra was the Judas. Setting Ender up
for Bonzo -- who would have guessed? She *hated* Bonzo when she was in his
army.
"Walk with me," said Ender.
"It's just for a moment," said Petra.
Either she was a perfect actress or she was oblivious, Bean realized.
She only seemed aware of the other Dragon uniforms, never as much as
glancing at anybody else. She isn't in on it after all, thought Bean.
She's just an idiot.
At last, Ender seemed to be aware of his exposed position. Except for
Bean, all the other Dragons were past him now, and that was apparently
enough -- at last -- to make him uncomfortable. He turned his back on
Petra and walked away, briskly, quickly closing the gap between him and
the older Dragons.
Petra was angry for a moment, then jogged quickly to catch up with him.
Bean stood his ground, looking at the oncoming Salamanders. They didn't
even glance at him. They just picked up their pace, continuing to gain on
Ender almost as fast as Petra was.
Bean took three steps and slapped the door of Rabbit Army barracks.
Somebody opened it. Bean had only to say, "Salamander's making a move
against Ender," and at once Rabbits started to pour out the door into the
corridor. They emerged just as the Salamanders reached them, and started
following along.
Witnesses, thought Bean. And helpers, too, if the fight seemed unfair.
Ahead of him, Ender and Petra were talking, and the larger Dragons
fell in step around them. The Salamanders continued to follow closely, and
the other thugs joined them as they passed. But the danger was dissipating.
Rabbit Army and the older Dragons had done the job. Bean breathed a
little easier. For the moment, at least, the danger was over.
Bean caught up with Ender in time to hear Petra angrily say, "How can
you think I did? Don't you know who your friends are?" She ran off, ducked
into a ladderway, scrambled upward.
Carn Carby of Rabbit caught up with Bean. "Everything OK?"
"I hope you don't mind my calling out your army."
"They came and got me. We seeing Ender safely to bed?"
"Eh."
Carn dropped back and walked along with the bulk of his soldiers. The
Salamander thugs were now outnumbered about three to one. They backed off
even more, and some of them peeled away and disappeared up ladderways or
down poles.
When Bean caught up with Ender again, he was surrounded by his toon
leaders. There was nothing subtle about it now -- they were clearly his
bodyguards, and some of the younger Dragons had realized what was
happening and were filling out the formation. They got Ender to the door
of his quarters and Crazy Tom pointedly entered before him, then allowed him
to go in when he certified that no one was lying in wait. As if one of them
could palm open a commander's door. But then, the teachers had been
changing a lot of the rules lately. Anything could happen.
Bean lay awake for a while, trying to think what he could do. There
was no way they could be with Ender every moment. There was classwork --
armies were deliberately broken up then. Ender was the only one who could
eat in the commanders' mess, so if Bonzo jumped him there ... but he
wouldn't, not with so many other commanders around him. Showers. Toilet
stalls. And if Bonzo assembled the right group of thugs, they'd slap Ender's
toon leaders aside like balloons.
What Bean had to do was try to peel away Bonzo's support. Before he
slept, he had a half-assed little plan that might help a little, or might
make things work [sic -- should be worse], but at least it was something,
and it would be public, so the teachers couldn't claim after the fact, in
their typical bureaucrat cover-my-butt way that they hadn't known anything
was going on.
He thought he could do something at breakfast, but of course there was a
battle first thing in the morning. Pol Slattery, Badger Army. The
teachers had found a new way to mess with the rules, too. When Badgers
were flashed, instead of staying frozen till the end of the game they thawed
after five minutes, the way it worked in practice. But Dragons, once hit,
stayed rigid. Since the battleroom was packed with stars -- plenty of hiding
places -- it took a while to realize that they were having to shoot the
same soldiers more than once as they maneuvered through the stars, and
Dragon Army came closer to losing than it ever had. It was all hand to hand,
with a dozen of the remaining Dragons having to watch batches of frozen
Badgers, reshooting them periodically and meanwhile frantically looking
around for some other Badger sneaking up from behind.
The battle took so long that by the time they got out of the battleroom,
breakfast was over. Dragon Army was pissed off -- the ones who had been
frozen early on, before they knew the trick, had spent more than an hour,
some of them, floating in their rigid suits, growing more and more
frustrated as the time wore on. The others, who had been forced to fight
outnumbered and with little visibility against enemies who kept reviving,
they were exhausted. Including Ender.
Ender gathered his army in the corridor and said, "Today you know
everything. No practice. Get some rest. Have some fun. Pass a test."
They were all grateful for the reprieve, but still, they weren't getting
any breakfast today and nobody felt like cheering. As they walked back to
the barracks, some of them grumbled, "Bet they're serving breakfast to
Badger Army right now."
"No, they got them up and served them breakfast before."
"No, they ate breakfast and then five minutes later they get to eat
another."
Bean, however, was frustrated because he hadn't had a chance to carry
out his plan at breakfast. It would have to wait till lunch.
The good thing was that because Dragon wasn't practicing, Bonzo's guys
wouldn't know where to lie in wait for him. The bad thing was that if
Ender went off by himself, there'd be nobody to protect him.
So Bean was relieved when he saw Ender go into his quarters. In
consultation with the other toon leaders, Bean set up a watch on Ender's
door. One Dragon sat outside the barracks for a half-hour shift, then
knocked on the door and his replacement came out. No way was Ender going
to go wandering off without Dragon Army knowing it.
But Ender never came out and finally it was lunchtime. All the toon
leaders sent the soldiers on ahead and then detoured past Ender's door.
Fly Molo knocked loudly -- actually, he slapped the door hard five times.
"Lunch, Ender."
"I'm not hungry." His voice was muffled by the door. "Go on and eat."
"We can wait," said Fly. "Don't want you walking to the commanders' mess
alone."
"I'm not going to eat any lunch at all," said Ender. "Go on and I'll see
you after."
"You heard him," said Fly to the others. "He'll be safe in here while we
eat."
Bean had noticed that Ender did not promise to stay in his room
throughout lunch. But at least Bonzo's people wouldn't know where he was.
Unpredictability was helpful. And Bean wanted to get the chance to make
his speech at lunch.
So he ran to the messroom and did not get in line, but instead bounded
up onto a table and clapped his hands loudly to get attention. "Hey,
everybody!"
He waited until the group went about as close to silent as it was
going to get.
"There's some of you here who need a reminder of a couple of points of
I.F. law. If a soldier is ordered to do something illegal or improper by his
commanding officer, he has a responsibility to refuse the order and
report it. A soldier who obeys an illegal or improper order is fully
responsible for the consequences of his actions. Just in case any of you
here are too dim to know what that means, the law says that if some
commander orders you to commit a crime, that's no excuse. You are
forbidden to obey."
Nobody from Salamander would meet Bean's gaze, but a thug in Rat uniform
answered in a surly tone. "You got something in mind, here, pinprick?"
"I've got *you* in mind, Lighter. Your scores are pretty much in the
bottom ten percent in the school, so I thought you might need a little extra
help."
"You can shut your facehole right now, that's the help I need!"
"Whatever Bonzo had you set to do last night, Lighter, you and about
twenty others, what I'm telling you is *if* you'd actually tried something,
every single one of you would have been out of Battle School on his ass.
Iced. A complete failure, because you listened to Bonehead Madrid. Can I
be any more clear than that?"
Lighter laughed -- it sounded forced, but then, he wasn't the only one
laughing. "You don't even know what's going on, pinprick," one of them said.
"I know Bonehead's trying to turn you into a street crew, you pathetic
losers. He can't beat Ender in the battleroom, so he's going to get a
dozen tough guys to beat up one little kid. You all hear that? You know what
Ender is -- the best damn commander ever to come through here. He might
be the only one able to do what Mazer Rackham did and beat the Buggers
when they come back, did you think of that? And these guys are so *smart*
they want to beat his brains out. So when the Buggers come, and we've only
got pus-brains like Bonzo Madrid to lead our fleets to defeat, then as the
Buggers scour the Earth and kill every last man, woman, and child, the
survivors will all know that *these* fools are the ones who got rid of the
one guy who could have led us to victory!"
The whole place was dead silent now, and Bean could see, looking at
the ones he recognized as having been with Bonzo's group last night, that he
was getting through to them.
"Oh, you *forgot* the Buggers, is that it? You forgot that this Battle
School wasn't put here so you could write home to Mommy about your high
standings on the scoreboard. So you go ahead and help Bonzo out, and while
you're at it, why not just slit your own throats, too, cause that's what
you're doing if you hurt Ender Wiggin. But for the rest of us -- well, how
many here think that Ender Wiggin is the one commander we would all want
to follow into battle? Come on, how many of you!"
Bean began to clap his hands slowly, rhythmically. Immediately, all
the Dragons joined in. And very quickly, most of the rest of the soldiers
were also clapping. The ones who weren't were conspicuous and could see
how the others looked at them with scorn or hate.
Pretty soon, the whole room was clapping. Even the food servers.
Bean thrust both his hands straight up in the air. "The butt-faced
Buggers are the only enemy! Humans are all on the same side! Anybody who
raises a hand against Ender Wiggin is a Bugger-lover!"
They responded with cheers and applause, leaping to their feet.
It was Bean's first attempt at rabble-rousing. He was pleased to see
that, as long as the cause was right, he was pretty damn good at it.
Only later, when he had his food and was sitting with C toon, eating it,
did Lighter himself come up to Bean. He came up from behind, and the rest
of C toon was on their feet, ready to take him on, before Bean even knew
he was there. But Lighter motioned them to sit down, then leaned over and
spoke right into Bean's ear. "Listen to this, Queen Stupid. The soldiers who
are planning to take Wiggin apart aren't even *here*. So much for your
stupid speech."
Then he was gone.
And, a moment later, so was Bean, with C toon gathering the rest of
Dragon Army to follow behind him.
Ender wasn't in his quarters, or at least he didn't answer. Fly Molo, as
A toon commander, took charge and divided them into groups to search the
barracks, the game room, the vid room, the library, the gym.
But Bean called out for his squad to follow him. To the bathroom. That's
the one place that Bonzo and his boys could plan on Ender having to go,
eventually.
By the time Bean got there, it was all over. Teachers and medical
staff were clattering down the halls. Dink Meeker was walking with Ender,
his arm across Ender's shoulder, away from the bathroom. Ender was wearing
only his towel. He was wet, and there was blood all over the back of his
head and dripping down his back. It took Bean only a moment to realize
that it was not his blood. The others from Bean's squad watched as Dink
led Ender back to his quarters and helped him inside. But Bean was already
on his way to the bathroom.
The teachers ordered him out of the way, out of the corridor. But Bean
saw enough. Bonzo lying on the floor, medical staff doing CPR. Bean knew
that you don't do that to somebody whose heart is beating. And from the
inattentive way the others were standing around, Bean knew it was only a
formality. Nobody expected Bonzo's heart to start again. No surprise. His
nose had been jammed up inside his head. His face was a mass of blood. Which
explained the bloody back of Ender's head.
All our efforts didn't amount to squat. But Ender won anyway. He knew
this was coming. He learned self-defense. He used it, and he didn't do a
half-assed job of it, either.
If Ender had been Poke's friend, Poke wouldn't have died.
And if Ender had depended on Bean to save him, he'd be just as dead as
Poke.
Rough hands dragged Bean off his feet, pushed him against a wall.
"What did you see!" demanded Major Anderson.
"Nothing," said Bean. "Is that Bonzo in there? Is he hurt?"
"This is none of your business. Didn't you hear us order you away?"
Colonel Graff arrived then, and Bean could see that the teachers
around him were furious at him -- yet couldn't say anything, either
because of military protocol or because one of the children was present.
"I think Bean has stuck his nose into things once too often," said
Anderson.
"Are you going to send Bonzo home?" asked Bean. "Cause he's just going
to try it again."
Graff gave him a withering glance. "I heard about your speech in the
mess hall," said Graff. "I didn't know we brought you up here to be a
politician."
"If you don't ice Bonzo and get him *out* of here, Ender's never going
to be safe, and we won't stand for it!"
"Mind your own business, little boy," said Graff. "This is men's work
here."
Bean let himself be dragged away by Dimak. Just in case they still
wondered whether Bean saw that Bonzo was dead, he kept the act going just
a little longer. "He's going to come after me, too," he said. "I don't
want Bonzo coming after me."
"He's not coming after you," said Dimak. "He's going home. Count on it.
But don't talk about this to anyone else. Let them find out when the
official word is given out. Got it?"
"Yes, sir," said Bean.
"And where did you get all that nonsense about not obeying a commander
who gives illegal orders?"
"From the Uniform Code of Military Conduct," said Bean.
"Well, here's a little fact for you -- nobody has ever been prosecuted
for obeying orders."
"That," said Bean, "is because nobody's done anything so outrageous that
the general public got involved."
"The Uniform Code doesn't apply to students, at least not that part of
it."
"But it applies to teachers," said Bean. "It applies to *you*. Just in
case you obeyed any illegal or improper orders today. By ... what, I don't
know ... standing by while a fight broke out in a bathroom? Just because
your commanding officer told you to let a big kid beat up on a little kid.
"
If that information bothered Dimak, he gave no sign. He stood in the
corridor and watched as Bean went into the Dragon Army barracks.
It was crazy inside. Dragon Army felt completely helpless and stupid,
furious and ashamed. Bonzo Madrid had outsmarted them! Bonzo had gotten
Ender alone! Where were Ender's soldiers when he needed them?
It took a long time for things to calm down. Through it all, Bean just
sat on his bunk, thinking his own thoughts. Ender didn't just win his fight.
Didn't just protect himself and walk away. Ender killed him. Struck a
blow so devastating that his enemy will never, never come after him again.
Ender Wiggin, you're the one who was born to be commander of the fleet
that defends Earth from the Third Invasion. Because that's what we need --
someone who'll strike the most brutal blow possible, with perfect aim and
with no regard for consequences. Total war.
Me, I'm no Ender Wiggin. I'm just a street kid whose only skill was
staying alive. Somehow. The only time I was in real danger, I ran like a
squirrel and took refuge with Sister Carlotta. Ender went alone into battle.
I go alone into my hidey-hole. I'm the guy who makes big brave speeches
standing on tables in the mess hall. Ender's the guy who meets the enemy
naked and overpowers him against all odds.
Whatever genes they altered to make me, they weren't the ones that
mattered.
Ender almost died because of me. Because I goaded Bonzo. Because I
failed to keep watch at the crucial time. Because I didn't stop and think
like Bonzo and figure out that he'd wait for Ender to be alone in the
shower.
If Ender had died today, it would have been my fault all over again.
He wanted to kill somebody.
Couldn't be Bonzo. Bonzo was already dead.
Achilles. That's the one he needed to kill. And if Achilles had been
there at that moment, Bean would have tried. Might have succeeded, too, if
violent rage and desperate shame were enough to beat down any advantage of
size and experience Achilles might have had. And if Achilles killed Bean
anyway, it was no worse than Bean deserved, for having failed Ender Wiggin
so completely.
He felt his bed bounce. Nikolai had jumped the gap between the upper
bunks.
"It's OK," murmured Nikolai, touching Bean's shoulder.
Bean rolled onto his back, to face Nikolai.
"Oh," said Nikolai. "I thought you were crying."
"Ender won," said Bean. "What's to cry about?"CHAPTER 18 -- FRIEND
"This boy's death was not necessary."
"This boy's death was not foreseen."
"But it was foreseeable."
"You can always foresee things that already happened. These are
children, after all. We did *not* anticipate this level of violence."
"I don't believe you. I believe that this is precisely the level of
violence you anticipated. This is what you set up. You think that the
experiment succeeded."
"I can't control your opinions. I can merely disagree with them.
"Ender Wiggin is ready to move on to Command School. That is my report."
"I have a separate report from Dap, the teacher assigned to watch him
most closely. And that report -- for which there are to be *no* sanctions
against Captain Dap -- tells me that Andrew Wiggin is 'psychologically unfit
for duty.'"
"*If* he is, which I doubt, it is only temporary."
"How much time do you think we have? No, Colonel Graff, for the time
being we have to regard your course of action regarding Wiggin as a failure,
and the boy as ruined not only for our purposes but quite possibly for
any other as well. So, if it can be done without further killings, I want
the other one pushed forward. I want him here in Command School as close
to immediately as possible."
"Very well, sir. Though I must tell you that I regard Bean as
unreliable."
"Why, because you haven't turned him into a killer yet?"
"Because he is not human, sir."
"The genetic difference is well within the range of ordinary variation."
"He was manufactured, and the manufacturer was a criminal, not to
mention a certified loon."
"I could see some danger if his *father* were a criminal. Or his mother.
But his *doctor*? The boy is exactly what we need, as quickly as we can get
him."
"He is unpredictable."
"And the Wiggin boy is not?"
"Less unpredictable, sir."
"Very carefully answered, considering that you just insisted that the
murder today was 'not foreseeable.'"
"*Not* murder, sir!"
"Killing, then."
"The mettle of the Wiggin boy is proved, sir, while Bean's is not."
"I have Dimak's report -- for which, again, he is not to be --"
"Punished, I know, sir."
"Bean's behavior throughout this set of events has been exemplary."
"Then Captain Dimak's report was incomplete. Didn't he inform you that
it was Bean who may have pushed Bonzo over the edge to violence by
breaking security and informing him that Ender's army was composed of
exceptional students?"
"That *was* an act with unforeseeable consequences."
"Bean was acting to save his own life, and in so doing he shunted the
danger onto Ender Wiggin's shoulders. That he later tried to ameliorate
the danger does not change the fact that when Bean is under pressure, he
turns traitor."
"Harsh language!"
"This from the man who just called an obvious act of self-defense
'murder'?"
"Enough of this! You are on leave of absence from your position as
commander of Battle School for the duration of Ender Wiggin's so-called rest
and recuperation. If Wiggin recovers enough to come to Command School,
you may come with him and continue to have influence over the education of
the children we bring here. If he does not, you may await your court-martial
on Earth."
"I am relieved effective when?"
"When you get on the shuttle with Wiggin. Major Anderson will stand in
as acting commander."
"Very well, sir. Wiggin *will* return to training, sir."
"*If* we still want him."
"When you are over the dismay we all feel at the unfortunate death of
the Madrid boy, you will realize that I am right, and Ender is the only
viable candidate, all the more now than before."
"I allow you that Parthian shot. And, if you are right, I wish you
Godspeed on your work with the Wiggin boy. Dismissed."
***
Ender was still wearing only his towel when he stepped into the
barracks. Bean saw him standing there, his face a rictus of death, and
thought: He knows that Bonzo is dead, and it's killing him.
"Ho, Ender," said Hot Soup, who was standing near the door with the
other toon leaders.
"There gonna be a practice tonight?" asked one of the younger soldiers.
Ender handed a slip of paper to Hot Soup.
"I guess that means not," said Nikolai softly.
Hot Soup read it. "Those sons of bitches! Two at once?"
Crazy Tom looked over his shoulder. "Two armies!"
"They'll just trip over each other," said Bean. What appalled him most
about the teachers was not the stupidity of trying to combine armies, a ploy
whose ineffectiveness had been proved time after time throughout history,
but rather the get-back-on-the-horse mentality that led them to put *more*
pressure on Ender at this of all times. Couldn't they see the damage they
were doing to him? Was their goal to train him or break him? Because he
was trained long since. He should have been promoted out of Battle School
the week before. And now they give him one more battle, a completely
meaningless one, when he's already over the edge of despair?
"I've got to clean up," said Ender. "Get them ready, get everybody
together, I'll meet you there, at the gate." In his voice, Bean heard a
complete lack of interest. No, something deeper than that. Ender doesn't
*want* to win this battle.
Ender turned to leave. Everyone saw the blood on his head, his
shoulders, down his back. He left.
They all ignored the blood. They had to. "Two fart-eating armies!" cried
Crazy Tom. "We'll whip their butts!"
That seemed to be the general consensus as they got into their flash
suits.
Bean tucked the coil of deadline into the waist of his flash suit. If
Ender ever needed a stunt, it would be for this battle, when he was no
longer interested in winning.
As promised, Ender joined them at the gate before it opened -- just
barely before. He walked down the corridor lined with his soldiers, who
looked at him with love, with awe, with trust. Except Bean, who looked at
him with anguish. Ender Wiggin was not larger than life, Bean knew. He was
exactly life-sized, and so his larger-than-life burden was too much for him.
And yet he was bearing it. So far.
The gate went transparent.
Four stars had been combined directly in front of the gate, completely
blocking their view of the battleroom. Ender would have to deploy his forces
blind. For all he knew, the enemy had already been let into the room
fifteen minutes ago. For all he could possibly know, they were deployed just
as Bonzo had deployed his army, only this time it would be completely
effective, to have the gate ringed with enemy soldiers.
But Ender said nothing. Just stood there looking at the barrier.
Bean had halfway expected this. He was ready. What he did wasn't all
that obvious -- he only walked forward to stand directly beside Ender at the
gate. But he knew that was all it would take. A reminder.
"Bean," said Ender. "Take your boys and tell me what's on the other side
of this star." this star."
"Yes *sir*," said Bean. He pulled the coil of deadline from his waist,
and with his five soldiers he made the short hop from the gate to the star.
Immediately the gate he had just come through became the ceiling, the
star their temporary floor. Bean tied the deadline around his waist while
the other boys unspooled the line, arranging it in loose coils on the star.
When it was about one-third played out, Bean declared it to be sufficient.
He was guessing that the four stars were really eight -- that they made a
perfect cube. If he was wrong, then he had way too much deadline and he'd
crash into the ceiling instead of making it back behind the star. Worse
things could happen.
He slipped out beyond the edge of the star. He was right, it was a cube.
It was too dim in the room to see well what the other armies were doing,
but they seemed to be deploying. There had been no head start this time,
apparently. He quickly reported this to Ducheval, who would repeat it to
Ender while Bean did his stunt. Ender would no doubt start bringing out
the rest of the army at once, before the time clicked down to zero.
Bean launched straight down from the ceiling. Above him, his toon was
holding the other end of the deadline secure, making sure it fed out
properly and stopped abruptly.
Bean did not enjoy the wrenching of his gut when the deadline went taut,
but there was kind of a thrill to the increase of speed as he suddenly
moved south. He could see the distant flashing of the enemy firing up at
him. Only soldiers from one half of the enemy's area were firing.
When the deadline reached the next edge of the cube, his speed increased
again, and now he was headed upward in an arc that, for a moment, looked
like it was going to scrape him against the ceiling. Then the last edge bit,
and he scooted in behind the star and was caught deftly by his toon. Bean
wiggled his arms and legs to show that he was none the worse for his ride.
What the enemy was thinking about his magical maneuvers in midair he could
only guess. What mattered was that Ender had *not* come through the gate.
The timer must be nearly out.
Ender came alone through the gate. Bean made his report as quickly as
possible. "It's really dim, but light enough you can't follow people
easily by the lights on their suits. Worst possible for seeing. It's all
open space from this star to the enemy side of the room. They've got eight
stars making a square around their door. I didn't see anybody except the
ones peeking around the boxes. They're just sitting there waiting for us."
In the distance, they heard the enemy begin catcalls. "Hey! We be
hungry, come and feed us! Your ass is draggin'! Your ass is Dragon!"
Bean continued his report, but had no idea if Ender was even listening.
"They fired at me from only one half their space. Which means that the
two commanders are *not* agreeing and neither one has been put in supreme
command."
"In a real war," said Ender, "any commander with brains at all would
retreat and save this army."
"What the hell," said Bean. "It's only a game."
"It stopped being a game when they threw away the rules."
This wasn't good, thought Bean. How much time did they have to get their
army through the gate? "So, you throw 'em away, too." He looked Ender in
the eye, demanding that he wake up, pay attention, *act*.
The blank look left Ender's face. He grinned. It felt damn good to see
that. "OK. Why not. Let's see how they react to a formation."
Ender began calling the rest of the army through the gate. It was
going to get crowded on the top of that star, but there was no choice.
As it turned out, Ender's plan was to use another of Bean's stupid
ideas, which he had watched Bean practice with his toon. A screen
formation of frozen soldiers, controlled by Bean's toon, who remained
unfrozen behind them. Having once told Bean what he wanted him to do,
Ender joined the formation as a common soldier and left everything up to
Bean to organize. "It's your show," he said.
Bean had never expected Ender to do any such thing, but it made a kind
of sense. What Ender wanted was not to have this battle; allowing himself to
be part of a screen of frozen soldiers, pushed through the battle by
someone else, was as close to sleeping through it as he could get.
Bean set to work at once, constructing the screen in four parts
consisting of one toon each. Each of toons A through C lined up four and
three, arms interlocked with the men beside them, the upper row of three
with toes hooked under the arms of the four soldiers below. When everybody
was clamped down tight, Bean and his toon froze them. Then each of Bean's
men took hold of one section of the screen and, careful to move very
slowly so that inertia would not carry the screen out of their control, they
maneuvered them out from above the star and slowly moved them down until
they were just under it. Then they joined them back together into a single
screen, with Bean's squad forming the interlock. interlock.
"When did you guys practice this?" asked Dumper, the leader of E toon.
"We've never done this before," Bean answered truthfully. "We've done
bursting and linking with one-man screens, but seven men each? It's all
new to us."
Dumper laughed. "And there's Ender, plugged into the screen like
anybody. That's trust, Bean old boy."
That's despair, thought Bean. But he didn't feel the need to say
*that* aloud.
When all was ready, E toon got into place behind the screen and, on
Bean's command, pushed off as hard as they could.
The screen drifted down toward the enemy's gate at a pretty good clip.
Enemy fire, though it was intense, hit only the already-frozen soldiers in
front. E toon and Bean's squad kept moving, very slightly, but enough that
no stray shot could freeze them. And they managed to do some return fire,
taking out a few of the enemy soldiers and forcing them to stay behind
cover.
When Bean figured they were as far as they could get before Griffin or
Tiger launched an attack, he gave the word and his squad burst apart,
causing the four sections of the screen also to separate and angle
slightly so they were drifting now toward the corners of the stars where
Griffin and Tiger were gathered. E toon went with the screens, firing like
crazy, trying to make up for their tiny numbers.
After a count of three, the four members of Bean's squad who had gone
with each screen pushed off again, this time angling to the middle and
downward, so that they rejoined Bean and Ducheval, with momentum carrying
them straight toward the enemy gate.
They held their bodies rigid, *not* firing a shot, and it worked. They
were all small; they were clearly drifting, not moving with any particular
purpose; the enemy took them for frozen soldiers if they were noticed at
all. A few were partially disabled with stray shots, but even when under
fire they never moved, and the enemy soon ignored them.
When they got to the enemy gate, Bean slowly, wordlessly, got four of
them with their helmets in place at the corners of the gate. They pressed,
just as in the end-of-game ritual, and Bean gave Ducheval a push, sending
him through the gate as Bean drifted upward again.
The lights in the battleroom went on. The weapons all went dead. The
battle was over.
It took a few moments before Griffin and Tiger realized what had
happened. Dragon only had a few soldiers who weren't frozen or disabled,
while Griffin and Tiger were mostly unscathed, having played conservative
strategies. Bean knew that if either of them had been aggressive, Ender's
strategy wouldn't have worked. But having seen Bean fly around the star,
doing the impossible, and then watching this weird screen approach so
slowly, they were intimidated into inaction. Ender's legend was such that
they dared not commit their forces for fear of falling into a trap. Only ...
that *was* the trap.
Major Anderson came into the room through the teachergate. "Ender," he
called.
Ender was frozen; he could only answer by grunting loudly through
clenched jaws. That was a sound that victorious commanders rarely had to
make.
Anderson, using the hook, drifted over to Ender and thawed him. Bean was
half the battleroom away, but he heard Ender's words, so clear was his
speech, so silent was the room. "I beat you again, sir."
Bean's squad members glanced at him, obviously wondering if he was
resentful at Ender for claiming credit for a victory that was engineered and
executed entirely by Bean. But Bean understood what Ender was saying. He
wasn't talking about the victory over Griffin and Tiger armies. He was
talking about a victory over the teachers. And *that* victory *was* the
decision to turn the army over to Bean and sit it out himself. If they
thought they were putting Ender to the ultimate test, making him fight two
armies right after a personal fight for survival in the bathroom, he beat
them -- he sidestepped the test.
Anderson knew what Ender was saying, too. "Nonsense, Ender," said
Anderson. He spoke softly, but the room was so silent that his words, too,
could be heard. "Your battle was with Griffin and Tiger."
"How stupid do you think I am?" said Ender.
Damn right, said Bean silently.
Anderson spoke to the group at large. "After that little maneuver, the
rules are being revised to require that all of the enemy's soldiers must
be frozen or disabled before the gate can be reversed."
"Rules?" murmured Ducheval as he came back through the gate. Bean
grinned at him.
"It could only work once anyway," said Ender.
Anderson handed the hook to Ender. Instead of thawing his soldiers one
at a time, and only then thawing the enemy, Ender entered the command to
thaw everyone at once, then handed the hook back to Anderson, who took it
and drifted away toward the center, where the end-of-game rituals usually
took place.
"Hey!" Ender shouted. "What is it next time? My army in a cage without
guns, with the rest of the Battle School against them? How about a little
equality?"
So many soldiers murmured their agreement that the sound of it was loud,
and not all came from Dragon Army. But Anderson seemed to pay no attention.
It was William Bee of Griffin Army who said what almost everyone was
thinking. "Ender, if you're on one side of the battle, it won't be equal
no matter what the conditions are."
The armies vocally agreed, many of the soldiers laughing, and Talo
Momoe, not to be outclassed by Bee, started clapping his hands rhythmically.
"Ender Wiggin!" he shouted. Other boys took up the chant.
But Bean knew the truth -- knew, in fact, what Ender knew. That no
matter how good a commander was, no matter how resourceful, no matter how
well-prepared his army, no matter how excellent his lieutenants, no matter
how courageous and spirited the fight, victory almost always went to the
side with the greater power to inflict damage. Sometimes David kills
Goliath, and people never forget. But there were a lot of little guys
Goliath had already mashed into the ground. Nobody sang songs about
*those* fights, because they knew that was the likely outcome. No, that
was the *inevitable* outcome, except for the miracles.
The Buggers wouldn't know or care how legendary a commander Ender
might be to his own men. The human ships wouldn't have any magical tricks
like Bean's deadline to dazzle the Buggers with, to put them off their
stride. Ender knew that. Bean knew that. What if David hadn't had a sling, a
handful of stones, and the time to throw? What good would the excellence of
his aim have done him then?
So yes, it was good, it was right for the soldiers of all three armies
to cheer Ender, to chant his name as he drifted toward the enemy gate, where
Bean and his squad waited for him. But in the end it meant nothing,
except that everyone would have too much hope in Ender's ability. It only
made the burden on Ender heavier.
I would carry some of it if I could, Bean said silently. Like I did
today, you can turn it over to me and I'll do it, if I can. You don't have
to do this alone.
Only even as he thought this, Bean knew it wasn't true. If it could be
done, Ender was the one who would have to do it. All those months when
Bean refused to see Ender, hid from him, it was because he couldn't bear
to face the fact that Ender was what Bean only wished to be -- the kind of
person on whom you could put all your hopes, who could carry all your fears,
and he would not let you down, would not betray you.
I want to be the kind of boy you are, thought Bean. But I don't want
to go through what you've been through to get there.
And then, as Ender passed through the gate and Bean followed behind him,
Bean remembered falling into line behind Poke or Sergeant or Achilles on
the streets of Rotterdam, and he almost laughed as he thought, I don't
want to have to go through what *I've* gone through to get here, either.
Out in the corridor, Ender walked away instead of waiting for his
soldiers. But not fast, and soon they caught up with him, surrounded him,
brought him to a stop through their sheer ebullience. Only his silence,
his impassivity, kept them from giving full vent to their excitement.
"Practice tonight?" asked Crazy Tom.
Ender shook his head.
"Tomorrow morning then?"
"No."
"Well, when?"
"Never again, as far as I'm concerned."
Not everyone had heard, but those who did began to murmur to each other.
"Hey, that's not fair," said a soldier from B toon. "It's not our
fault the teachers are screwing up the game. You can't just stop teaching us
stuff because --"
Ender slammed his hand against the wall and shouted at the kid. "I don't
care about the game anymore!" He looked at other soldiers, met their gaze,
refused to let them pretend they didn't hear. "Do you understand that?"
Then he whispered. "The game is over."
He walked away.
Some of the boys wanted to follow him, took a few steps. But Hot Soup
grabbed a couple of them by the neck of their flash suits and said, "Let him
be alone. Can't you see he wants to be alone?"
Of course he wants to be alone, thought Bean. He killed a kid today, and
even if he doesn't know the outcome, he knows what was at stake. These
teachers were willing to let him face death without help. Why should he play
along with them anymore? Good for you, Ender.
Not so good for the rest of us, but it's not like you're our father or
something. More like a brother, and the thing with brothers is, you're
supposed to take turns being the keeper. Sometimes you get to sit down and
be the brother who is kept.
Fly Molo led them back to the barracks. Bean followed along, wishing
he could go with Ender, talk to him, assure him that he agreed completely,
that he understood. But that was pathetic, Bean realized. Why should Ender
care whether I understand him or not? I'm just a kid, just one of his army.
He knows me, he knows how to use me, but what does he care whether I know
him?
Bean climbed to his bunk and saw a slip of paper on it.
{Transfer -- Bean -- Rabbit Army -- Commander}
That was Carn Carby's army. Carn was being removed from command? He
was a good guy -- not a great commander, but why couldn't they wait till
he graduated?
Because they're through with this school, that's why. They're
advancing everybody they think needs some experience with command, and
they're graduating other students to make room for them. I might have Rabbit
Army, but not for long, I bet.
He pulled out his desk, meaning to sign on as ^Graff and check the
rosters. Find out what was happening to everybody. But the ^Graff log-in
didn't work. Apparently they no longer considered it useful to permit Bean
to keep his inside access.
From the back of the room, the older boys were raising a hubbub. Bean
heard Crazy Tom's voice rising above the rest. "You mean I'm supposed to
figure out how to beat Dragon Army?" Word soon filtered to the front. The
toon leaders and seconds had all received transfer orders. Every single
one of them was being given command of an army. Dragon had been stripped.
After about a minute of chaos, Fly Molo led the other toon leaders along
between the bunks, heading toward the door. Of course -- they had to go
tell Ender what the teachers had done to him now.
But to Bean's surprise, Fly stopped at his bunk and looked up at him,
then glanced at the other toon leaders behind him.
"Bean, somebody's got to tell Ender."
Bean nodded.
"We thought ... since you're his friend ..."
Bean let nothing show on his face, but he was stunned. Me? Ender's
friend? No more than anyone else in this room.
And then he realized. In this army, Ender had everyone's love and
admiration. And they all knew they had Ender's trust. But only Bean had been
taken inside Ender's confidence, when Ender assigned him his special squad.
And when Ender wanted to stop playing the game, it was Bean to whom he
had turned over his army. Bean was the closest thing to a friend they had
seen Ender have since he got command of Dragon.
Bean looked across at Nikolai, who was grinning his ass off. Nikolai
saluted him and mouthed the word *commander*.
Bean saluted Nikolai back, but could not smile, knowing what this
would do to Ender. He nodded to Fly Molo, then slid off the bunk and went
out the door.
He didn't go straight to Ender's quarters, though. Instead, he went to
Carn Carby's room. No one answered. So he went on to Rabbit barracks and
knocked. "Where's Carn?" he asked.
"Graduated," said It [Itu], the leader of Rabbit's A toon. "He found out
about half an hour ago."
"We were in a battle."
"I know -- two armies at once. You won, right?"
Bean nodded. "I bet Carn wasn't the only one graduated early."
"A lot of commanders," said It [Itu]. "More than half."
"Including Bonzo Madrid? I mean, he graduated?"
"That's what the official notice said." It [Itu] shrugged. "Everybody
knows that if anything, Bonzo was probably iced. I mean, they didn't even
list his assignment. Just 'Cartagena.' His hometown. Is that iced or what?
But let the teachers call it what they want."
"I'll bet the total who graduated was nine," said Bean. "Neh?"
"Eh," said It [Itu]. "Nine. So you know something?"
"Bad news, I think," said Bean. He showed It [Itu] his transfer orders.
"Santa merda," said It [Itu]. Then he saluted. Not sarcastically, but
not enthusiastically, either.
"Would you mind breaking it to the others? Give them a chance to get
used to the idea before I show up for real? I've got to go talk to Ender.
Maybe he already knows they've just taken his entire leadership and given
them armies. But if he doesn't, I've got to tell him."
"*Every* Dragon toon leader?"
"And every second." He thought of saying, Sorry Rabbit got stuck with
me. But Ender would never have said anything self-belittling like that.
And if Bean was going to be a commander, he couldn't start out with an
apology. "I think Carn Carby had a good organization," said Bean, "so I
don't expect to change any of the toon leadership for the first week,
anyway, till I see how things go in practice and decide what shape we're
in for the kind of battles we're going to start having now that most of
the commanders are kids trained in Dragon."
It [Itu] understood immediately. "Man, that's going to be strange, isn't
it? Ender trained all you guys, and now you've got to fight each other."
"One thing's for sure," said Bean. "I have no intention of trying to
turn Rabbit into a copy of Ender's Dragon. We're not the same kids and we
won't be fighting the same opponents. Rabbit's a good army. We don't have to
copy anybody."
It [Itu] grinned. "Even if that's just bullshit, sir, it's first-rate
bullshit. I'll pass it on." He saluted.
Bean saluted back. Then he jogged to Ender's quarters.
Ender's mattress and blankets and pillow had been thrown out into the
corridor. For a moment Bean wondered why. Then he saw that the sheets and
mattress were still damp and bloody. Water from Ender's shower. Blood from
Bonzo's face. Apparently Ender didn't want them in his room.
Bean knocked on the door.
"Go away," said Ender softly.
Bean knocked again. Then again.
"Come in," said Ender.
Bean palmed the door open.
"Go away, Bean," said Ender.
Bean nodded. He understood the sentiment. But he had to deliver his
message. So he just looked at his shoes and waited for Ender to ask him
his business. Or yell at him. Whatever Ender wanted to do. Because the other
toon leaders were wrong. Bean didn't have any special relationship with
Ender. Not outside the game.
Ender said nothing. And continued to say nothing.
Bean looked up from the ground and saw Ender gazing at him. Not angry.
Just ... watching. What does he see in me, Bean wondered. How well does he
know me? What does he think of me? What do I amount to in his eyes?
That was something Bean would probably never know. And he had come
here for another purpose. Time to carry it out.
He took a step closer to Ender. He turned his hand so the transfer
slip was visible. He didn't offer it to Ender, but he knew Ender would see
it.
"You're transferred?" asked Ender. His voice sounded dead. As if he'd
been expecting it.
"To Rabbit Army," said Bean.
Ender nodded. "Carn Carby's a good man. I hope he recognizes what you're
worth." worth."
The words came to Bean like a longed-for blessing. He swallowed the
emotion that welled up inside him. He still had more of his message to
deliver.
"Carn Carby was graduated today," said Bean. "He got his notice while we
were fighting our battle."
"Well," said Ender. "Who's commanding Rabbit then?" He didn't sound
all that interested. The question was expected, so he asked it.
"Me," said Bean. He was embarrassed; a smile came inadvertently to his
lips.
Ender looked at the ceiling and nodded. "Of course. After all, you're
only four years younger than the regular age."
"It isn't funny," said Bean. "I don't know what's going on here." Except
that the system seems to be running on sheer panic. "All the changes in the
game. And now this. I wasn't the only one transferred, you know. They
graduated half the commanders, and transferred a lot of our guys to
command their armies."
"Which guys?" Now Ender did sound interested.
"It looks like -- every toon leader and every assistant."
"Of course. If they decide to wreck my army, they'll cut it to the
ground. Whatever they're doing, they're thorough."
"You'll still win, Ender. We all know that. Crazy Tom, he said, 'You
mean I'm supposed to figure out how to beat Dragon Army?' Everybody knows
you're the best." His words sounded empty even to himself. He wanted to be
encouraging, but he knew that Ender knew better. Still he babbled on.
"They can't break you down, no matter what they --"
"They already have."
They've broken trust, Bean wanted to say. That's not the same thing.
*You* aren't broken. *They're* broken. But all that came out of his mouth
were empty, limping words. "No, Ender, they can't --"
"I don't care about their game anymore, Bean," said Ender. "I'm not
going to play it anymore. No more practices. No more battles. They can put
their little slips of paper on the floor all they want, but I won't go. I
decided that before I went through the door today. That's why I had you go
for the gate. I didn't think it would work, but I didn't care. I just wanted
to go out in style."
I know that, thought Bean. You think I didn't know that? But if it comes
down to style, you certainly got that. "You should've seen William Bee's
face. He just stood there trying to figure out how he had lost when you only
had seven boys who could wiggle their toes and he only had three who
couldn't."
"Why should I want to see William Bee's face?" said Ender. "Why should I
want to beat anybody?"
Bean felt the heat of embarrassment in his face. He'd said the wrong
thing. Only ... he didn't know what the right thing was. Something to make
Ender feel better. Something to make him understand how much he was loved
and honored.
Only that love and honor were part of the burden Ender bore. There was
nothing Bean could say that would not make it all the heavier on Ender. So
he said nothing.
Ender pressed his palms against his eyes. "I hurt Bonzo really bad
today, Bean. I really hurt him bad."
Of course. All this other stuff, that's nothing. What weighs on Ender is
that terrible fight in the bathroom. The fight that your friends, your
army, did nothing to prevent. And what hurts you is not the danger you
were in, but the harm you did in protecting yourself.
"He had it coming," said Bean. He winced at his own words. Was that
the best he could come up with? But what else could he say? No problem,
Ender. Of course, he looked dead to *me*, and I'm probably the only kid in
this school who actually knows what death looks like, but ... no problem!
Nothing to worry about! He had it coming!
"I knocked him out standing up," said Ender. "It was like he was dead,
standing there. And I kept hurting him."
So he did know. And yet ... he didn't actually *know*. And Bean wasn't
about to tell him. There were times for absolute honesty between friends,
but this wasn't one of them.
"I just wanted to make sure he never hurt me again."
"He won't," said Bean. "They sent him home."
"Already?"
Bean told him what It [Itu] had said. All the while, he felt like
Ender could see that he was concealing something. Surely it was impossible
to deceive Ender Wiggin.
"I'm glad they graduated him," said Ender.
Some graduation. They're going to bury him, or cremate him, or
whatever they're doing with corpses in Spain this year.
Spain. Pablo de Noches, who saved his life, came from Spain. And now a
body was going back there, a boy who turned killer in his heart, and died
for it.
I must be losing it, thought Bean. What does it matter that Bonzo was
Spanish and Pablo de Noches was Spanish? What does it matter that anybody is
anything?
And while these thoughts ran through Bean's mind, he babbled, trying
to talk like someone who didn't know anything, trying to reassure Ender
but knowing that if Ender believed that he knew nothing, then his words were
meaningless, and if Ender realized that Bean was only faking ignorance,
then his words were all lies. "Was it true he had a whole bunch of guys gang
up on you?" Bean wanted to run from the room, he sounded so lame, even to
himself.
"No," said Ender. "It was just him and me. He fought with honor."
Bean was relieved. Ender was turned so deeply inward right now that he
didn't even register what Bean was saying, how false it was.
"I didn't fight with honor," said Ender. "I fought to win."
Yes, that's right, thought Bean. Fought the only way that's worth
fighting, the only way that has any point. "And you did. Kicked him right
out of orbit." It was as close as Bean could come to telling him the truth.
There was a knock on the door. Then it opened, immediately, without
waiting for an answer. Before Bean could turn to see who it was, he knew
it was a teacher -- Ender looked up too high for it to be a kid.
Major Anderson and Colonel Graff.
"Ender Wiggin," said Graff.
Ender rose to his feet. "Yes sir." The deadness had returned to his
voice.
"Your display of temper in the battleroom today was insubordinate and is
not to be repeated."
Bean couldn't believe the stupidity of it. After what Ender had been
through -- what the teachers had *put* him through -- and they have to
keep playing this oppressive game with him? Making him feel utterly alone
even *now*? These guys were relentless.
Ender's only answer was another lifeless "Yes sir." But Bean was fed up.
"I think it was about time somebody told a teacher how we felt about what
you've been doing."
Anderson and Graff didn't show a sign they'd even heard him. Instead,
Anderson handed Ender a full sheet of paper. Not a transfer slip. A
full-fledged set of orders. Ender was being transferred out of the school.
"Graduated?" Bean asked.
Ender nodded.
"What took them so long?" asked Bean. "You're only two or three years
early. You've already learned how to walk and talk and dress yourself.
What will they have left to teach you?" The whole thing was such a joke. Did
they really think anybody was fooled? You reprimand Ender for
insubordination, but then you graduate him because you've got a war coming
and you don't have a lot of time to get him ready. He's your hope of
victory, and you treat him like something you scrape off your shoe.
"All I know is, the game's over," said Ender. He folded the paper. "None
too soon. Can I tell my army?"
"There isn't time," said Graff. "Your shuttle leaves in twenty minutes.
Besides, it's better not to talk to them after you get your orders. It
makes it easier."
"For them or for you?" Ender asked.
He turned to Bean, took his hand. To Bean, it was like the touch of
the finger of God. It sent light all through him. Maybe I am his friend.
Maybe he feels toward me some small part of the ... feeling I have for him.
And then it was over. Ender let go of his hand. He turned toward the
door.
"Wait," said Bean. "Where are you going? Tactical? Navigational?
Support?"
"Command School," said Ender.
"*Pre*-command?"
"Command." Ender was out the door.
Straight to Command School. The elite school whose location was even a
secret. Adults went to Command School. The battle must be coming very soon,
to skip right past all the things they were supposed to learn in Tactical
and Pre-Command.
He caught Graff by the sleeve. "Nobody goes to Command School until
they're sixteen!" he said.
Graff shook off Bean's hand and left. If he caught Bean's sarcasm, he
gave no sign of it.
The door closed. Bean was alone in Ender's quarters.
He looked around. Without Ender in it, the room was nothing. Being
here meant nothing. Yet it was only a few days ago, not even a week, when
Bean had stood here and Ender told him he was getting a toon after all.
For some reason what came into Bean's mind was the moment when Poke
handed him six peanuts. It was life that she handed to him then.
Was it life that Ender gave to Bean? Was it the same thing?
No. Poke gave him life. Ender gave it meaning.
When Ender was here, this was the most important room in Battle School.
Now it was no more than a broom closet.
Bean walked back down the corridor to the room that had been Carn
Carby's until today. Until an hour ago. He palmed it -- it opened. Already
programmed in.
The room was empty. Nothing in it.
This room is mine, thought Bean.
Mine, and yet still empty.
He felt powerful emotions welling up inside him. He should be excited,
proud to have his own command. But he didn't really care about it. As
Ender said, the game was nothing. Bean would do a decent job, but the reason
he'd have the respect of his soldiers was because he would carry some of
Ender's reflected glory with him, a shrimpy little Napoleon flumping
around wearing a man's shoes while he barked commands in a little tiny
child's voice. Cute little Caligula, "Little Boot," the pride of
Germanicus's army. But when he was wearing his father's boots, those boots
were empty, and Caligula knew it, and nothing he ever did could change that.
Was that his madness?
It won't drive *me* mad, thought Bean. Because I don't covet what
Ender has or what he is. It's enough that *he* is Ender Wiggin. I don't have
to be.
He understood what this feeling was, welling up in him, filling his
throat, making tears stand out in his eyes, making his face burn, forcing
a gasp, a silent sob. He bit on his lip, trying to let pain force the
emotion away. It didn't help. Ender was gone.
Now that he knew what the feeling was, he could control it. He lay
down on the bunk and went into the relaxing routine until the need to cry
had passed. Ender had taken his hand to say good-bye. Ender had said, "I
hope he recognizes what you're worth." Bean didn't really have anything left
to prove. He'd do his best with Rabbit Army because maybe at some point
in the future, when Ender was at the bridge of the flagship of the human
fleet, Bean might have some role to play, some way to help. Some stunt
that Ender might need him to pull to dazzle the Buggers. So he'd please
the teachers, impress the hell out of them, so that they would keep
opening doors for him, until one day a door would open and his friend
Ender would be on the other side of it, and he could be in Ender's army once
again.CHAPTER 19 -- REBEL
"Putting in Achilles was Graff's last act, and we know there were
grave concerns. Why not play it safe and at least change Achilles to another
army?"
"This is not necessarily a Bonzo Madrid situation for Bean."
"But we have no assurance that it's not, sir. Colonel Graff kept a lot
of information to himself. A lot of conversations with Sister Carlotta,
for instance, with no memo of what was said. Graff knows things about Bean
and, I can promise you, about Achilles as well. I think he's laid a trap for
us."
"Wrong, Captain Dimak. If Graff laid a trap, it was not for us."
"You're sure of that?"
"Graff doesn't play bureaucratic games. He doesn't give a damn about you
and me. If he laid a trap, it's for Bean."
"Well that's my point!"
"I understand your point. But Achilles stays."
"Why?"
"Achilles' tests show him to be of a remarkably even temperament. He
is no Bonzo Madrid. Therefore Bean is in no physical danger. The stress
seems to be psychological. A test of character. And that is precisely the
area where we have the very least data about Bean, given his refusal to play
the mind game and the ambiguity of the information we got from his
playing with his teacher log-in. Therefore I think this forced
relationship with his bugbear is worth pursuing."
"Bugbear or nemesis, sir?"
"We will monitor closely. I will *not* be keeping adults so far
removed that we can't get there to intervene in time, the way Graff arranged
it with Ender and Bonzo. Every precaution will be taken. I am not playing
Russian roulette the way Graff was."
"Yes you are, sir. The only difference is that he knew he had only one
empty chamber, and you don't know how many chambers are empty because he
loaded the gun."
***
On his first morning as commander of Rabbit Army, Bean woke to see a
paper lying on his floor. For a moment he was stunned at the thought that he
would be given a battle before he even met his army, but to his relief
the note was about something much more mundane.
{Because of the number of new commanders, the tradition of not joining
the commanders' mess until after the first victory is abolished. You are
to dine in the commanders' mess starting immediately.}
It made sense. Since they were going to accelerate the battle schedule
for everyone, they wanted to have the commanders in a position to share
information right from the start. And to be under social pressure from their
peers, as well.
Holding the paper in his hand, Bean remembered how Ender had held his
orders, each impossible new permutation of the game. Just because this order
made sense did not make it a good thing. There was nothing sacred about the
game itself that made Bean resent changes in the rules and customs, but the
way the teachers were manipulating them *did* bother him.
Cutting off his access to student information, for instance. The
question wasn't why they cut it off, or even why they let him have it for so
long. The question was why the other commanders didn't have that much
information all along. If they were supposed to be learning to lead, then
they should have the tools of leadership.
And as long as they were changing the system, why not get rid of the
really pernicious, destructive things they did? For instance, the
scoreboards in the mess halls. Standings and scores! Instead of fighting the
battle at hand, those scores made soldiers and commanders alike more
cautious, less willing to experiment. That's why the ludicrous custom of
fighting in formations had lasted so long -- Ender can't have been the first
commander to see a better way. But nobody wanted to rock the boat, to be
the one who innovated and paid the price by dropping in the rankings. Far
better to treat each battle as a completely separate problem, and to feel
free to engage in battles as if they were *play* rather than work.
Creativity and challenge would increase drastically. And commanders wouldn't
have to worry when they gave an order to a toon or an individual whether
they were causing a particular soldier to sacrifice his standing for the
good of the army.
Most important, though, was the challenge inherent in Ender's decision
to reject the game. The fact that he graduated before he could really go
on strike didn't change the fact that if he had done so, Bean would have
supported him in it.
Now that Ender was gone, a boycott of the game didn't make sense.
Especially if Bean and the others were to advance to a point where they
might be part of Ender's fleet when the real battles came. But they could
take charge of the game, use it for their own purposes.
So, dressed in his new -- and ill-fitting -- Rabbit Army uniform, Bean
soon found himself once again standing on a table, this time in the much
smaller officers' mess. Since Bean's speech the day before was already the
stuff of legend, there was laughter and some catcalling when he got up.
"Do people where you come from eat with their feet, Bean?"
"Instead of getting up on tables, why don't you just *grow*, Bean?"
"Put some stilts on so we can keep the tables clean!"
But the other new commanders who had, until yesterday, been toon leaders
in Dragon Army, made no catcalls and did not laugh. Their respectful
attention to Bean soon prevailed, and silence fell over the room.
Bean flung up an arm to point to the scoreboard that showed the
standings. "Where's Dragon Army?" he asked.
"They dissolved it," said Petra Arkanian. "The soldiers have been folded
into the other armies. Except for you guys who used to be Dragon."
Bean listened, keeping his opinion of her to himself. All he could think
of, though, was two nights before, when she was, wittingly or not, the
judas who was supposed to lure Ender into a trap.
"Without Dragon up there," said Bean, "that board means nothing.
Whatever standing any of us gets would not be the same if Dragon were
still there."
"There's not a hell of a lot we can do about it," said Dink Meeker.
"The problem isn't that Dragon is missing," said Bean. "The problem is
that we shouldn't have that board at all. *We're* not each other's enemies.
The *Buggers* are the only enemy. *We're* supposed to be allies. We
should be learning from each other, sharing information and ideas. We should
feel free to experiment, trying new things without being afraid of how it
will affect our standings. That board up there, that's the *teachers'* game,
getting us to turn against each other. Like Bonzo. Nobody here is as
crazy with jealousy as he was, but come on, he was what those standings were
bound to create. He was all set to beat in the brains of our best
commander, our best hope against the next Bugger invasion, and why?
Because Ender humiliated him in the *standings*. Think about that! The
standings were more important to him than the war against the Formics!"
"Bonzo was crazy," said William Bee.
"So let's *not* be crazy," said Bean. "Let's get those standings out
of the game. Let's take each battle one at a time, a clean slate. Try
anything you can think of to win. And when the battle is over, both
commanders sit down and explain what they were thinking, why they did what
they did, so we can learn from each other. No secrets! Everybody try
everything! And screw the standings!"
There were murmurs of assent, and not just from the former Dragons.
"That's easy for you to say," said Shen. "*Your* standing right now is
tied for last." for last."
"And there's the problem, right there," said Bean. "You're suspicious of
my motives, and why? Because of the standings. But aren't we all supposed
to be commanders in the same fleet someday? Working together? Trusting
each other? How sick would the I.F. be, if all the ship captains and
strike force commanders and fleet admirals spent all their time worrying
about their standings instead of working together to try to beat the
Formics! I want to learn from you, Shen. I don't want to *compete* with
you for some empty rank that the teachers put up on that wall in order to
manipulate us."
"I'm sure you guys from Dragon are all concerned about learning from
us losers," said Petra.
There it was, out in the open.
"Yes! Yes, I *am* concerned. Precisely because I've been in Dragon Army.
There are nine of us here who know pretty much only what we learned from
Ender. Well, brilliant as he was, he's not the only one in the fleet or even
in the school who knows anything. I need to learn how *you* think. I
don't need you keeping secrets from me, and you don't need me keeping
secrets from you. Maybe part of what made Ender so good was that he kept all
his toon leaders talking to each other, free to try things but only as long
as we shared what we were doing."
There was more assent this time. Even the doubters were nodding
thoughtfully.
"So what I propose is this. A unanimous rejection of that board up
there, not only the one in here but the one in the soldiers' mess, too. We
all agree not to pay attention to it, period. We ask the teachers to
disconnect the things or leave them blank. If they refuse, we bring in
sheets to cover it, or we throw chairs until we break it. We don't have to
play *their* game. We can take charge of our own education and get ready
to fight the *real* enemy. We have to remember, always, who the real enemy
is."
"Yeah, the teachers," said Dink Meeker.
Everybody laughed. But then Dink Meeker stood up on the table beside
Bean. "I'm the senior commander here, now they've graduated all the oldest
guys. I'm probably the oldest soldier left in Battle School. So I propose
that we adopt Bean's proposal right now, and I'll go to the teachers to
demand that the boards be shut off. Is there anyone opposed?"
Not a sound.
"That makes it unanimous. If the boards are still on at lunch, let's
bring sheets to cover them up. If they're still on at dinner, then forget
using chairs to vandalize, let's just refuse to take our armies to any
battles until the boards are off."
Alai spoke up from where he stood in the serving line. "*That'll*
shoot our standings all to ..."
Then Alai realized what he was saying, and laughed at himself. "Damn,
but they've got us brainwashed, haven't they!"
***
Bean was still flushed with victory when, after breakfast, he made his
way to Rabbit barracks in order to meet his soldiers officially for the
first time. Rabbit was on a midday practice schedule, so he only had about
half an hour between breakfast and the first classes of the morning.
Yesterday, when he talked to It [Itu], his mind had been on other things,
with only the most cursory attention to what was going on inside Rabbit
barracks. But now he realized that, unlike Dragon Army, the soldiers in
Rabbit were all of the regular age. Not one was even close to Bean's height.
He looked like somebody's doll, and worse, he felt like that too, walking
down the corridor between the bunks, seeing all these huge boys -- and a
couple of girls -- looking down at him.
Halfway down the bunks, he turned to face those he had already passed.
Might as well address the problem immediately.
"The first problem I see," said Bean loudly, "is that you're all way too
tall."
Nobody laughed. Bean died a little. But he had to go on.
"I'm growing as fast as I can. Beyond that, I don't know what I can do
about it."
Only now did he get a chuckle or two. But that was a relief, that even a
few were willing to meet him partway.
"Our first practice together is at 1030. As to our first battle
together, I can't predict that, but I can promise you this -- the teachers
are *not* going to give me the traditional three months after my
assignment to a new army. Same with all the other new commanders just
appointed. They gave Ender Wiggin only a few weeks with Dragon before they
went into battle -- and Dragon was a new army, constructed out of nothing.
Rabbit is a good army with a solid record. The only new person here is me. I
expect the battles to begin in a matter of days, a week at most, and I
expect battles to come frequently. So for the first couple of practices,
you'll really be training me in your existing system. I need to see how
you work with your toon leaders, how the toons work with each other, how you
respond to orders, what commands you use. I'll have a couple of things to
say that are more about attitude than tactics, but by and large, I want to
see you doing things as you've always done them under Carn. It would help
me, though, if you practiced with intensity, so I can see you at your
sharpest. Are there any questions?"
None. Silence.
"One other thing. Day before yesterday, Bonzo and some of his friends
were stalking Ender Wiggin in the halls. I saw the danger, but the
soldiers in Dragon Army were mostly too small to stand up against the crew
Bonzo had assembled. It wasn't an accident that when I needed help for my
commander, I came to the door of Rabbit Army. This wasn't the closest
barracks. I came to you because I knew that you had a fair-minded
commander in Carn Carby, and I believed that his army would have the same
attitude. Even if you didn't have any particular love for Ender Wiggin or
Dragon Army, I knew that you would not stand by and let a bunch of thugs
pound on a smaller kid that they couldn't beat fair and square in battle.
And I was right about you. When you poured out of this barracks and stood as
witnesses in the corridor, I was proud of what you stood for. I'm proud now
to be one of you."
That did it. Flattery rarely fails, and never does if it's sincere. By
letting them know they had already earned his respect, he dissipated much of
the tension, for of course they were worried that as a former Dragon he
would have contempt for the first army that Ender Wiggin beat. Now they knew
better, and so he'd have a chance to win their respect as well.
It [Itu] started clapping, and the other boys joined in. It wasn't a
long ovation, but it was enough to let him know the door was open, at
least a crack.
He raised his hands to silence the applause -- just in time, since it
was already dying down. "I'd like to speak to the toon leaders for a few
minutes in my quarters. The rest of you are dismissed till practice."
Almost at once, It [Itu] was beside him. "Good job," he said. "Only
one mistake."
"What was that?"
"You aren't the only new person here."
"They assigned one of the Dragon soldiers to Rabbit?" For a moment, Bean
allowed himself to hope that it would be Nikolai. He could use a reliable
friend.
No such luck.
"No, a Dragon soldier would be a veteran! I mean this guy is *new*. He
just got to Battle School yesterday afternoon and he was assigned here
last night, after you came by."
"A launchy? Assigned straight to an army?"
"Oh, we asked him about that, and he's had a lot of the same classwork.
He went through a bunch of surgeries down on Earth, and he studied
through it all, but --"
"You mean he's recovering from surgery, too?"
"No, he walks fine, he's -- look, why don't you just meet him? All I
need to know is, do you want to assign him to a toon or what?"
"Eh, let's see him."
It [Itu] led him to the back of the barracks. There he was, standing
beside his bunk, several inches taller than Bean remembered, with legs of
even length now, both of them straight. The boy he had last seen fondling
Poke, minutes before her dead body went into the river.
"Ho, Achilles," said Bean.
"Ho, Bean," said Achilles. He grinned winningly. "Looks like you're
the big guy here."
"So to speak," said Bean.
"You two know each other?" said It [Itu].
"We knew each other in Rotterdam," said Achilles.
They can't have assigned him to me by accident. I never told anybody but
Sister Carlotta about what he did, but how can I guess what she told the
I.F.? Maybe they put him here because they thought both of us being from the
Rotterdam streets, from the same crew -- the same family -- I might be able
to help him get into the mainstream of the school faster. Or maybe they
knew that he was a murderer who was able to hold a grudge for a long, long
time, and strike when least expected. Maybe they knew that he planned for my
death as surely as he planned for Poke's. Maybe he's here to be my Bonzo
Madrid.
Except that I haven't taken any personal defense classes. And I'm half
his size -- I couldn't jump high enough to hit him in the nose. Whatever
they were trying to accomplish by putting Ender's life at risk, Ender always
had a better chance of surviving than I will.
The only thing in my favor is that Achilles wants to survive and prosper
more than he wants vengeance. Since he can hold a grudge forever, he's in
no hurry to act on it. And, unlike Bonzo, he'll never allow himself to be
goaded into striking under circumstances where he'd be identifiable as the
killer. As long as he thinks he needs me and as long as I'm never alone, I'm
probably safe.
Safe. He shuddered. Poke felt safe, too.
"Achilles was *my* commander there," said Bean. "He kept a group of us
kids alive. Got us into the charity kitchens."
"Bean is too modest," said Achilles. "The whole thing was his idea. He
basically taught us the whole idea of working together. I've studied a lot
since then, Bean. I've had a year of nothing but books and classes -- when
they weren't cutting into my legs and pulverizing and regrowing my bones.
And I finally know enough to understand just what a leap you helped us make.
From barbarism into civilization. Bean here is like a replay of human
evolution."
Bean was not so stupid as to fail to recognize when flattery was being
used on him. At the same time, it was more than a little useful to have this
new boy, straight from Earth, already know who Bean was and show respect
for him.
"The evolution of the pygmies, anyway," said Bean.
"Bean was the toughest little bastard you ever saw on the street, I
got to tell you."
No, this was not what Bean needed right now. Achilles had just crossed
the line from flattery into possession. Stories about Bean as a "tough
little bastard" would, of necessity, set Achilles up as Bean's superior,
able to evaluate him. The stories might even be to Bean's credit -- but they
would serve more to validate Achilles, make him an insider far faster
than he would otherwise have been. And Bean did not want Achilles to be
inside yet.
Achilles was already going on, as more soldiers gathered closer to hear.
"The way I got recruited into Bean's crew was --"
"It wasn't my crew," said Bean, cutting him off. "And here in Battle
School, we don't tell stories about home and we don't listen to them either.
So I'd appreciate it if you never spoke again of anything that happened
Rotterdam, not while you're in my army."
He'd done the nice bit during his opening speech. But now was the time
for authority.
Achilles didn't show any sign of embarrassment at the reprimand. "I
get it. No problem."
"It's time for you to get ready to go to class," said Bean to the
soldiers. "I need to confer with my toon leaders only." Bean pointed to
Ambul, a Thai soldier who, according to what Bean read in the student
reports, would have been a toon leader long ago, except for his tendency
to disobey stupid orders. "You, Ambul. I assign you to get Achilles to and
from his correct classes and acquaint him with how to wear a flash suit, how
it works, and the basics of movement in the battleroom. Achilles, you are
to obey Ambul like God until I assign you to a regular toon." regular toon."
Achilles grinned. "But I don't obey God."
You think I don't know that? "The correct answer to an order from me
is 'Yes sir.'"
Achilles's grin faded. "Yes sir."
"I'm glad to have you here," Bean lied.
"Glad to be here, sir," said Achilles. And Bean was reasonably sure that
while Achilles was *not* lying, his reason for being glad was very
complicated, and certainly included, by now, a renewed desire to see Bean
die.
For the first time, Bean understood the reason Ender had almost always
acted as if he was oblivious to the danger from Bonzo. It was a simple
choice, really. Either he could act to save himself, or he could act to
maintain control over his army. In order to hold real authority, Bean had to
insist on complete obedience and respect from his soldiers, even if it
meant putting Achilles down, even if it meant increasing his personal
danger.
And yet another part of him thought: Achilles wouldn't be here if he
didn't have the ability to be a leader. He performed extraordinarily well as
our papa in Rotterdam. It's my responsibility now to get him up to speed as
quickly as possible, for the sake of his potential usefulness to the I.F. I
can't let my personal fear interfere with that, or my hatred of him for
what he did to Poke. So even if Achilles is evil incarnate, my job is to
turn him into a highly effective soldier with a good shot at becoming a
commander.
And in the meantime, I'll watch my back.CHAPTER 20 -- TRIAL AND ERROR
"You brought him up to Battle School, didn't you?"
"Sister Carlotta, I'm on a leave of absence right now. That means I've
been sacked, in case you don't understand how the I.F. handles these
things."
"Sacked! A miscarriage of justice. You ought to be shot."
"If the Sisters of St. Nicholas had convents, your abbess would make you
do serious penance for that un-Christian thought."
"You took him out of the hospital in Cairo and directly into space. Even
though I warned you."
"Didn't you notice that you telephoned me on a regular exchange? I'm
on Earth. Someone else is running Battle School."
"He's a serial murderer now, you know. Not just the girl in Rotterdam.
There was a boy there, too, the one Helga called Ulysses. They found his
body a few weeks ago."
"Achilles has been in medical care for the past year."
"The coroner estimates that the killing took place at least that long
ago. The body was hidden behind some long-term storage near the fish market.
It covered the smell, you see. And it goes on. A teacher at the school I
put him in."
"Ah. That's right. *You* put him in a school long before I did."
"The teacher fell to his death from an upper story."
"No witnesses. No evidence."
"Exactly."
"You see a trend here?"
"But that's *my* point. Achilles does not kill carelessly. Nor does he
choose his victims at random. Anyone who has seen him helpless, crippled,
beaten -- he can't bear the shame. He has to expunge it by getting
absolute power over the person who dared to humiliate him."
"You're a psychologist now?"
"I laid the facts before an expert."
"The supposed facts."
"I'm not in court, Colonel. I'm talking to the man who put this killer
in school with the child who came up with the original plan to humiliate
him. Who called for his death. My expert assured me that the chance of
Achilles *not* striking against Bean is zero."
"It's not as easy as you think, in space. No dock, you see."
"Do you know how I knew you had taken him into space?"
"I'm sure you have your sources, both mortal and heavenly."
"My dear friend, Dr. Vivian Delamar, was the surgeon who reconstructed
Achilles's leg."
"As I recall, you recommended her."
"Before I knew what Achilles really was. When I found out, I called her.
Warned her to be careful. Because my expert also said that she was in
danger."
"The one who restored his leg? Why?"
"No one has seen him more helpless than the surgeon who cuts into him as
he lies there drugged to the gills. Rationally, I'm sure he knew it was
wrong to harm this woman who did him so much good. But then, the some
would apply to Poke, the first time he killed. *If* it was the first time.
"
"So ... Dr. Vivian Delamar. You alerted her. What did she see? Did he
murmur a confession under anaesthetic?"
"We'll never know. He killed her."
"You're joking."
"I'm in Cairo. Her funeral is tomorrow. They were calling it a heart
attack until I urged them to look for a hypodermic insertion mark. Indeed
they found one, and now it's on the books as a murder. Achilles *does*
know how to read. He learned which drugs would do the job. How he got her to
sit still for it, I don't know."
"How can I believe this, Sister Carlotta? The boy is generous, gracious,
people are drawn to him, he's a born leader. People like that don't kill.
"
"Who are the dead? The teacher who mocked him for his ignorance when
he first arrived in the school, showed him up in front of the class. The
doctor who saw him laid out under anaesthetic. The street girl whose crew
took him down. The street boy who vowed to kill him and made him go into
hiding. Maybe the coincidence argument would sway a jury, but it shouldn't
sway you."
"Yes, you've convinced me that the danger might well be real. But I
already alerted the teachers at Battle School that there might be some
danger. And now I really am not in charge of Battle School."
"You're still in *touch*. If you give them a more urgent warning,
they'll take steps."
"I'll give the appropriate warning."
pried out as several long sections. The paneling above it was separate
from the riveted wall below. And it, too, came off fairly easily. Now
there was room enough for almost any kid in Battle School to shinny in to
the crawl space over the corridor ceiling.
Bean stripped off his clothes and once again crawled into the air
system.
It was more cramped this time -- it was surprising how much he'd grown.
He made his way quickly to the maintenance area near the furnaces. He found
how the lighting systems worked, and carefully went around removing
lightbulbs and wall glow units in the areas he'd be needing. Soon there
was a wide vertical shaft that was utterly dark when the door was closed,
with deep shadows even when it was open. Carefully he laid his trap.
***
Achilles never ceased to be astonished at how the universe bent to his
will. Whatever he wished seemed to come to him. Poke and her crew, raising
him above the other bullies. Sister Carlotta, bringing him to the priests'
school in Bruxelles. Dr. Delamar, straightening his leg so he could *run*,
so he looked no different from any other boy his age. And now here he was in
Battle School, and who should be his first commander but little Bean, ready
to take him under his wing, help him rise within this school. As if the
universe were created to serve him, with all the people in it tuned to
resonate with his desires.
The battleroom was cool beyond belief. War in a box. Point the gun,
the other kid's suit freezes. Of course, Ambul had made the mistake of
demonstrating this by freezing Achilles and then laughing at his
consternation at floating in the air, unable to move, unable to change the
direction of his drift. People shouldn't do that. It was wrong, and it
always gnawed at Achilles until he was able to set things right. There
should be more kindness and respect in the world.
Like Bean. It looked so promising at first, but then Bean started
putting him down. Making sure the others saw that Achilles *used* to be
Bean's papa, but now he was just a soldier in Bean's army. There was no need
for that. You don't go putting people down. Bean had changed. Back when
Poke first put Achilles on his back, shaming him in front of all those
little children, it was Bean who showed him respect. "Kill him," Bean had
said. He knew, then, that tiny boy, he knew that even on his back,
Achilles was dangerous. But he seemed to have forgotten that now. In fact,
Achilles was pretty sure that Bean must have told Ambul to freeze his
flash suit and humiliate him in the practice room, setting him up for the
others to laugh at him.
I was your friend and protector, Bean, because you showed respect for
me. But now I have to weigh that in the balance with your behavior here in
Battle School. No respect for me at all.
The trouble was, the students in Battle School were given nothing that
could be used as a weapon, and everything was made completely safe. No one
was ever alone, either. Except the commanders. Alone in their quarters. That
was promising. But Achilles suspected that the teachers had a way of
tracking where every student was at any given time. He'd have to learn the
system, learn how to evade it, before he could start setting things to
rights.
But he knew this: He'd learn what he needed to learn. Opportunities
would appear. And he, being Achilles, would see those opportunities and
seize them. Nothing could interrupt his rise until he held all the power
there was to hold within his hands. Then there would be perfect justice in
the world, not this miserable system that left so many children starving and
ignorant and crippled on the streets while others lived in privilege and
safety and health. All those adults who had run things for thousands of
years were fools or failures. But the universe obeyed Achilles. He and he
alone could correct the abuses.
On his third day in Battle School, Rabbit Army had its first battle with
Bean as commander. They lost. They would not have lost if Achilles had been
commander. Bean was doing some stupid touchy-feely thing, leaving things up
to the toon leaders. But it was obvious that the toon leaders had been
badly chosen by Bean's predecessor. If Bean was to win, he needed to take
tighter control. When he tried to suggest this to Bean, the child only
smiled knowingly -- a maddeningly superior smile -- and told him that the
key to victory was for each toon leader and, eventually, each soldier to see
the whole situation and act independently to bring about victory. It made
Achilles want to slap him, it was so stupid, so wrongheaded. The one who
knew how to order things did not leave it up to others to create their
little messes in the corners of the world. He took the reins and pulled,
sharp and hard. He whipped his men into obedience. As Frederick the Great
said: The soldier must fear his officers more than he fears the bullets of
the enemy. You could not rule without the naked exercise of power. The
followers must bow their heads to the leader. They must *surrender* their
heads, using only the mind and will of the leader to rule them. No one but
Achilles seemed to understand that this was the great strength of the
Buggers. They had no individual minds, only the mind of the hive. They
submitted perfectly to the queen. We cannot defeat the Buggers until we
learn from them, become like them.
But there was no point in explaining this to Bean. He would not listen.
Therefore he would never make Rabbit Army into a hive. He was working to
create chaos. It was unbearable.
Unbearable -- yet, just when Achilles thought he couldn't bear the
stupidity and waste any longer, Bean called him to his quarters.
Achilles was startled, when he entered, to find that Bean had removed
the vent cover and part of the wall panel, giving him access to the air-duct
system. This was not at all what Achilles had expected.
"Take your clothes off," said Bean.
Achilles smelled an attempt at humiliation.
Bean was taking off his own uniform. "They track us through the
uniforms," said Bean. "If you aren't wearing one, they don't know where
you are, except in the gym and the battleroom, where they have really
expensive equipment to track each warm body. We aren't going to either of
those places, so strip."
Bean was naked. As long as Bean went first, Achilles could not be shamed
by doing the same.
"Ender and I used to do this," said Bean. "Everybody thought Ender was
such a brilliant commander, but the truth is he knew all the plans of the
other commanders because we'd go spying through the air ducts. And not
just the commanders, either. We found out what the teachers were planning.
We always knew it in advance. Not hard to win that way."
Achilles laughed. This was too cool. Bean might be a fool, but this
Ender that Achilles had heard so much about, *he* knew what he was doing.
"It takes two people, is that it?"
"To get where I can spy on the teachers, there's a wide shaft, pitch
black. I can't climb down. I need somebody to lower me down and haul me back
up. I didn't know who in Rabbit Army I could trust, and then ... there
you were. A friend from the old days."
It was happening again. The universe, bending to his will. He and Bean
would be alone. No one would be tracking where they were. No one would
know what had happened.
"I'm in," said Achilles.
"Boost me up," said Bean. "You're tall enough to climb up alone."
Clearly, Bean had come this way many times before. He scampered
through the crawl space, his feet and butt flashing in the spill from the
corridor lights. Achilles noted where he put his hands and feet, and soon
was as adept at Bean at picking his way through. Every time he used his leg,
he marveled at the use of it. It went where he wanted it to go, and had the
strength to hold him. Dr. Delamar might be a skilled surgeon, but even
she said that she had never seen a body respond to the surgery as
Achilles' did. His body knew how to be whole, expected to be strong. All the
time before, those crippled years, had been the universe's way of
teaching Achilles the unbearability of disorder. And now Achilles was
perfect of body, ready to move ahead in setting things to rights.
Achilles very carefully noted the route they took. If the opportunity
presented itself, he would be coming back alone. He could not afford to
get lost, or give himself away. No one could know that he had ever been in
the air system. As long as he gave them no reason, the teachers would
never suspect him. All they knew was that he and Bean were friends. And when
Achilles grieved for the child, his tears would be real. They always were,
for there was a nobility to these tragic deaths. A grandeur as the great
universe worked its will through Achilles's adept hands.
The furnaces roared as they came into a room where the framing of the
station was visible. Fire was good. It left so little residue. People died
when they accidentally fell into fire. It happened all the time. Bean,
crawling around alone ... it would be good if they went near the furnace.
Instead, Bean opened a door into a dark space. The light from the
opening showed a black gap not far inside. "Don't step over the edge of
that," Bean said cheerfully. He picked up a loop of very fine cord from
the ground. "It's a deadline. Safety equipment. Keeps workmen from
drifting off into space when they're working on the outside of the station.
Ender and I set it up -- it goes over a beam up there and keeps me centered
in the shaft. You can't grip it in your hands, it cuts too easily if it
slides across your skin. So you loop it tight around your body -- no
sliding, see? -- and brace yourself. The gravity's not that intense, so I
just jump off. We measured it out, so I stop right at the level of the vents
leading to the teachers' quarters."
"Doesn't it hurt when you stop?"
"Like a bitch," said Bean. "No pain no gain, right? I take off the
deadline, I snag it on a flap of metal and it stays there till I get back.
I'll tug on it three times when I get it back on. Then you pull me back up.
But *not* with your hands. You go out the door and walk out there. When you
get to place where we came in, go around the beam there and go till you
touch the wall. Just wait there until I can get myself swinging and land
back here on this ledge. Then I unloop myself and you come back in and we
leave the deadline for next time. Simple, see?"
"Got it," said Achilles.
Instead of walking to the wall, it would be simple enough to just keep
walking. Get Bean floating in the air where he couldn't get hold of
anything. Plenty of time, then, to find a way to tie it off inside that dark
room. With the roar of the furnaces and fans, nobody would hear Bean
calling for help. Then Achilles would have time to explore. Figure out how
to get into the furnaces. Swing Bean back, strangle him, carry the body to
the fire. Drop the deadline down the shaft. Nobody would find it. Quite
possibly no one would ever find Bean, or if they did, his soft tissues would
be consumed. All evidence of strangulation would be gone. Very neat.
There'd be some improvisation, but there always was. Achilles could handle
little problems as they came up.
Achilles looped the deadline over his head, then drew it tight under his
arms as Bean climbed into the loop at the other end.
"Set," said Achilles.
"Make sure it's tight, so it doesn't have any slack to cut you when I
hit bottom." bottom."
"Yes, it's tight."
But Bean had to check. He got a finger under the line. "Tighter," said
Bean.
Achilles tightened it more.
"Good," said Bean. "That's it. Do it."
Do it? Bean was the one who was supposed to do it.
Then the deadline went taut and Achilles was lifted off his feet. With a
few more yanks, he hung in the air in the dark shaft. The deadline dug
harshly into his skin.
When Bean said "do it" he was talking to someone else. Someone who was
already here, lying in wait. The traitorous little bastard.
Achilles said nothing, however. He reached up to see if he could touch
the beam above him, but it was out of reach. Nor could he climb the line,
not with bare hands, not with the line drawn taut by his own body weight.
He wriggled on the line, starting himself swinging. But no matter how
far he went in any direction, he touched nothing. No wall, no place where he
might find purchase.
Time to talk.
"What's this about, Bean?"
"It's about Poke," said Bean.
"She's dead, Bean."
"You kissed her. You killed her. You put her in the river."
Achilles felt the blood run hot into his face. No one saw that. He was
guessing. But then ... how did he know that Achilles had kissed her first,
unless he saw?
"You're wrong," said Achilles.
"How sad if I am. Then the wrong man will die for the crime."
"Die? Be serious, Bean. You aren't a killer."
"But the hot dry air of the shaft will do it for me. You'll dehydrate in
a day. Your mouth's already a little dry, isn't it? And then you'll just
keep hanging here, mummifying. This is the intake system, so the air gets
filtered and purified. Even if your body stinks for a while, nobody will
smell it. Nobody will see you -- you're above where the light shines from
the door. And nobody comes in here anyway. No, the disappearance of Achilles
will be the mystery of Battle School. They'll tell ghost stories about
you to frighten the launchies."
"Bean, I didn't do it."
"I saw you, Achilles, you poor fool. I don't care what you say, I saw
you. I never thought I'd have the chance to make you pay for what you did to
her. Poke did nothing but good to you. I told her to kill you, but she
had mercy. She made you king of the streets. And for that you killed her?"
"I didn't kill her."
"Let me lay it out for you, Achilles, since you're clearly too stupid to
see where you are. First thing is, you forgot where you were. Back on
Earth, you were used to being a lot smarter than everybody around you. But
here in Battle School, *everybody* is as smart as you, and most of us are
smarter. You think Ambul didn't see the way you looked at him? You think
he didn't know he was marked for death after he laughed at you? You think
the other soldiers in Rabbit doubted me when I told them about you? They'd
already seen that there was something wrong with you. The adults might
have missed it, they might buy into the way you suck up to them, but *we*
didn't. And since we just had a case of one kid trying to kill another,
nobody was going to put up with it again. Nobody was going to wait for you
to strike. Because here's the thing -- we don't give a shit about fairness
here. We're soldiers. Soldiers do not give the other guy a sporting chance.
Soldiers shoot in the back, lay traps and ambushes, lie to the enemy and
outnumber the other bastard every chance they get. Your kind of murder
only works among civilians. And you were too cocky, too stupid, too insane
to realize that."
Achilles knew that Bean was right. He had miscalculated grossly. He
had forgotten that when Bean said for Poke to kill him, he had not just been
showing respect for Achilles. He had also been trying to get Achilles
killed.
This just wasn't working out very well.
"So you have only two ways for this to end. One way, you just hang
there, we take turns watching to make sure you don't figure some way out
of this, until you're dead and then we leave you and go about our lives. The
other way, you confess to everything -- and I mean everything, not just
what you think I already know -- and you keep confessing. Confess to the
teachers. Confess to the psychiatrists they send you to. Confess your way
into a mental hospital back on Earth. We don't care which you choose. All
that matters is that you never again walk freely through the corridors of
Battle School. Or anywhere else. So ... what will it be? Dry out on the
line, or let the teachers know just how crazy you are?"
"Bring me a teacher, I'll confess."
"Didn't you hear me explain how stupid we're not? You confess now.
Before witnesses. With a recorder. We don't bring some teacher up here to
see you hanging there and feel all squishy sorry for you. Any teacher who
comes here will know exactly what you are, and there'll be about six marines
to keep you subdued and sedated because, Achilles, they don't play around
here. They don't give people chances to escape. You've got no rights here.
You don't get rights again until you're back on Earth. Here's your last
chance. Confession time."
Achilles almost laughed out loud. But it was important for Bean to think
that he had won. As, for the moment, he had. Achilles could see now that
there was no way for him to remain in Battle School. But Bean wasn't smart
enough just to kill him and have done. No, Bean was, completely
unnecessarily, allowing him to live. And as long as Achilles was alive, then
time would move things his way. The universe would bend until the door
was opened and Achilles went free. And it would happen sooner rather than
later.
You shouldn't have left a door open for me, Bean. Because I *will*
kill you someday. You and everyone else who has seen me helpless here.
"All right," said Achilles. "I killed Poke. I strangled her and put
her in the river."
"Go on."
"What more? You want to know how she wet herself and took a shit while
she was dying? You want to know how her eyes bugged out?"
"One murder doesn't get you psychiatric confinement, Achilles. You
know you've killed before."
"What makes you think so?"
"Because it didn't bother you."
It never bothered, not even the first time. You just don't understand
power. If it *bothers* you, you aren't fit to *have* power. "I killed
Ulysses, of course, but just because he was a nuisance."
"And?"
"I'm not a mass murderer, Bean."
"You live to kill, Achilles. Spill it all. And then convince me that
it really *was* all."
But Achilles had just been playing. He had already decided to tell it
all.
"The most recent was Dr. Vivian Delamar," he said. "I told her not to do
the operations under total anaesthetic. I told her to leave me alert, I
could take it even if there was pain. But she had to be in control. Well, if
she really loved control so much, why did she turn her back on me? And
why was she so stupid as to think I really had a gun? By pressing hard in
her back, I made it so she didn't even feel the needle go in right next to
where the tongue depressors were poking her. Died of a heart attack right
there in her own office. Nobody even knew I'd been in there. You want more?"
"I want it all, Achilles."
It took twenty minutes, but Achilles gave them the whole chronicle,
all seven times he had set things right. He liked it, actually, telling them
like this. Nobody had ever had a chance to understand how powerful he was
till now. He wanted to see their faces, that's the only thing that was
missing. He wanted to see the disgust that would reveal their weakness,
their inability to look power in the face. Machiavelli understood. If you
intend to rule, you don't shrink from killing. Saddam Hussein knew it -- you
have to be willing to kill with your own hand. You can't stand back and let
others do it for you all the time. And Stalin understood it, too -- you can
never be loyal to anybody, because that only weakens you. Lenin was good to
Stalin, gave him his chance, raised him out of nothing to be the keeper
of the gate to power. But that didn't stop Stalin from imprisoning Lenin and
then killing him. That's what these fools would never understand. All those
military writers were just armchair philosophers. All that military history
-- most of it was useless. War was just one of the tools that the great men
used to get and keep their power. And the only way to stop a great man
was the way Brutus did it.
Bean, you're no Brutus.
Turn on the light. Let me see the faces,
But the light did not go on. When he was finished, when they left, there
was only the light through the door, silhouetting them as they left. Five
of them. All naked, but carrying the recording equipment. They even tested
it, to make sure it had picked up Achilles's confession. He heard his own
voice, strong and unwavering. Proud of what he'd done. That would prove to
the weaklings that he was "insane." They would keep him alive. Until the
universe bent things to his will yet again, and set him free to reign with
blood and horror on Earth. Since they hadn't let him see their faces, he'd
have no choice. When all the power was in his hands, he'd have to kill
everyone who was in Battle School at this time. That would be a good idea,
anyway. Since all the brilliant military minds of the age had been assembled
here at one time or another, it was obvious that in order to rule safely,
Achilles would have to get rid of everyone whose name had ever been on a
Battle School roster. Then there'd be no rivals. And he'd keep testing
children as long as he lived, finding any with the slightest spark of
military talent. Herod understood how you stay in power.PART SIX -- VICTOR
CHAPTER 21 -- GUESSWORK
"We're not waiting any longer for Colonel Graff to repair the damage
done to Ender Wiggin. Wiggin doesn't need Tactical School for the job
he'll be doing. And we need the others to move on at once. *They* have to
get the feel of what the old ships can do before we bring them here and
put them on the simulators, and that takes time."
"They've only had a few games."
"I shouldn't have allowed them as much time as I have. ISL is two months
away from you, and by the time they're done with Tactical, the voyage
from there to FleetCom will be four months. That gives them only three
months in Tactical before we have to bring them to Command School. Three
months in which to compress three years of training."
"I should tell you that Bean seems to have passed Colonel Graff's last
test."
"Test? When I relieved Colonel Graff, I thought his sick little
testing program ended as well."
"We didn't know how dangerous this Achilles was. We had been warned of
*some* danger, but ... he seemed so likable ... I'm not faulting Colonel
Graff, you understand, *he* had no way of knowing."
"Knowing what?"
"That Achilles is a serial killer."
"That should make Graff happy. Ender's count is up to two."
"I'm not joking, sir. Achilles has seven murders on his tally."
"And he passed the screening?"
"He knew how to answer the psychological tests."
"Please tell me that none of the seven took place at Battle School."
"Number eight would have. But Bean got him to confess."
"Bean's a priest now?"
"Actually, sir, it was deft strategy. He outmaneuvered Achilles -- led
him into an ambush, and confession was the only escape."
"So Ender, the nice middle-class American boy, kills the kid who wants
to beat him up in the bathroom. And Bean, the hoodlum street kid, turns a
serial killer over to law enforcement."
"The more significant thing for our purposes is that Ender was good at
building teams, but he beat Bonzo hand to hand, one on one. And then Bean, a
loner who had almost no friends after a year in the school, he beats
Achilles by assembling a team to be his defense and his witnesses. I have no
idea if Graff predicted these outcomes, but the result was that his tests
got each boy to act not only against our expectations, but also against
his own predilections."
"Predilections. Major Anderson."
"It will all be in my report."
"Try to write the entire thing without using the word *predilection*
once.
"Yes, sir."
"I've assigned the destroyer Condor to take the group."
"How many do you want, sir?"
"We have need of a maximum of eleven at any one time. We have Carby,
Bee, and Momoe on their way to Tactical already, but Graff tells me that
of those three, only Carby is likely to work well with Wiggin. We do need to
hold a slot for Ender, but it wouldn't hurt to have a spare. So send ten.
"
"*Which* ten?"
"How the hell should I know? Well ... Bean, him for sure. And the nine
others that you think would work best with either Bean or Ender in command,
whichever one it turns out to be."
"One list for both possible commanders?"
"With Ender as the first choice. We want them all to train together.
Become a team."
***
The orders came at 1700. Bean was supposed to board the Condor at 1800.
It's not as if he had anything to pack. An hour was more time than they
gave Ender. So Bean went and told his army what was happening, where he
was going.
"We've only had five games," said It [Itu].
"Got to catch the bus when it comes to the stop, neh?" said Bean.
"Eh," said It [Itu].
"Who else?" asked Ambul.
"They didn't tell me. Just ... Tactical School."
"We don't even know where it is."
"Somewhere in space," said It [Itu].
"No, really?" It was lame, but they laughed. It wasn't all that hard a
good-bye. He'd only been with Rabbit for eight days.
"Sorry we didn't win any for you," said It [Itu].
"We would have won, if I'd wanted to," said Bean.
They looked at him like he was crazy.
"I was the one who proposed that we get rid of the standings, stop
caring who wins. How would it look if we do that and I win every time?"
"It would look like you really did care about the standings," said It
[Itu].
"That's not what bothers me," said another toon leader. "Are you telling
me you set us up to *lose*?"
"No, I'm telling you I had a different priority. What do we learn from
beating each other? Nothing. We're never going to have to fight human
children. We're going to have to fight Buggers. So what do we need to learn?
How to coordinate our attacks. How to respond to each other. How to feel
the course of the battle, and take responsibility for the whole thing even
if you don't have command. *That's* what I was working on with you guys. And
if we *won*, if we went in and mopped up the walls with them, using *my*
strategy, what does that teach *you*? You already worked with a good
commander. What you needed to do was work with each other. So I put you in
tough situations and by the end you were finding ways to bail each other
out. To make it work."
"We never made it work well enough to win."
"That's not how I measured it. You made it work. When the Buggers come
again, they're going to make things go wrong. Besides the normal friction of
war, they're going to be doing stuff we couldn't think of because they're
not human, they don't think like us. So plans of attack, what good are
they then? We try, we do what we can, but what really counts is what you
do when command breaks down. When it's just you with your squadron, and
you with your transport, and you with your beat-up strike force that's got
only five weapons among eight ships. How do you help each other? How do
you make do? That's what I was working on. And then I went back to the
officers' mess and told them what I learned. What you guys showed me. I
learned stuff from them, too. I told you all the stuff I learned from them,
right?"
"Well, you could have told us what you were teaming from us," said It
[Itu]. They were all still a bit resentful.
"I didn't have to *tell* you. You learned it."
"At least you could have told us it was OK not to win."
"But you were supposed to *try* to win. I didn't tell you because it
only works if you think it counts. Like when the Buggers come. It'll count
then, for real. That's when you get really smart, when losing means that you
and everybody you ever cared about, the whole human race, will die. Look, I
didn't think we'd have long together. So I made the best use of the time,
for you and for me. You guys are all ready to take command of armies."
"What about you, Bean?" asked Ambul. He was smiling, but there was an
edge to it. "You ready to command a fleet?"
"I don't know. It depends on whether they want to win." Bean grinned.
"Here's the thing, Bean," said Ambul. "Soldiers don't like to lose."
"And *that*," said Bean, "is why losing is a much more powerful
teacher than winning."
They heard him. They thought about it. Some of them nodded.
"*If* you live," Bean added. And grinned at them.
They smiled back.
"I gave you the best thing I could think of to give you during this
week," said Bean. "And learned from you as much as I was smart enough to
learn. Thank you." He stood and saluted them.
They saluted back.
He left.
And went to Rat Army barracks.
"Nikolai just got his orders," a toon leader told him.
For a moment Bean wondered if Nikolai would be going to Tactical
School with him. His first thought was, No way is he ready. His second
thought was, I wish he could come. His third thought was, I'm not much of
a friend, to think first how he doesn't deserve to be promoted.
"What orders?" Bean asked.
"He's got him an army. Hell, he wasn't even a toon leader here. Just
*got* here last week."
"Which army?"
"Rabbit." The toon leader looked at Bean's uniform again. "Oh. I guess
he's replacing *you*."
Bean laughed and headed for the quarters he had just left.
Nikolai was sitting inside with the door open, looking lost.
"Can I come in?"
Nikolai looked up and grinned. "Tell me you're here to take your army
back."
"I've got a hint for you. Try to win. They think that's important."
"I couldn't believe you lost all five."
"You know, for a school that doesn't list standings anymore, everybody
sure keeps track."
"I keep track of *you*."
"Nikolai, I wish you were coming with me."
"What's happening, Bean? Is this it? Are the Buggers here?"
"I don't know."
"Come on, you figure these things out."
"If the Buggers were really coming, would they leave all you guys here
in the station? Or send you back to Earth? Or evacuate you to some obscure
asteroid? I don't know. Some things point to the end being really close.
Other things seem like nothing important's going to happen anywhere around
here."
"So maybe they're about to launch this huge fleet against the Bugger
world and you guys are supposed to grow up on the voyage."
"Maybe," said Bean. "But the time to launch *that* fleet was right after
the Second Invasion."
"Well, what if they didn't find out where the Bugger home world *was*
until now?"
That stopped Bean cold. "Never crossed my mind," said Bean. "I mean,
they must have been sending signals home. All we had to do was track that
direction. Follow the light, you know. That's what it says in the manuals.
"
"What if they don't communicate by light?"
"Light may take a year to go a light-year, but it's still faster than
anything else."
"Anything else that we know about," said Nikolai. Bean just looked at
him.
"Oh, I know, that's stupid. The laws of physics and all that. I just
-- you know, I keep thinking, that's all. I don't like to rule things out
just because they're impossible."
Bean laughed. "Merda, Nikolai, I should have let you talk more and me
talk less back when we slept across from each other."
"Bean, you know I'm not a genius."
"All geniuses here, Nikolai."
"I was scraping by."
"So maybe you're not a Napoleon, Nikolai. Maybe you're just an
Eisenhower. Don't expect me to cry for you."
It was Nikolai's turn to laugh.
"I'll miss you, Bean."
"Thanks for coming with me to face Achilles, Nikolai."
"Guy gave me nightmares."
"Me too."
"And I'm glad you brought the others along too. It [Itu], Ambul, Crazy
Tom, I felt like we could've used six more, and Achilles was hanging from
a wire. Guys like him, you can understand why they invented hanging."
"Someday," said Bean, "you're going to need me the way I needed you. And
I'll be there."
"I'm sorry I didn't join your squad, Bean."
"You were right," said Bean. "I asked you because you were my friend,
and I thought I needed a friend, but I should have *been* a friend, too, and
seen what *you* needed."
"I'll never let you down again."
Bean threw his arms around Nikolai. Nikolai hugged him back.
Bean remembered when he left Earth. Hugging Sister Carlotta. Analyzing.
This is what she needs. It costs me nothing. Therefore I'll give her the
hug.
I'm not that kid anymore.
Maybe because I was able to come through for Poke after all. Too late to
help her, but I still got her killer to admit it. I still got him to pay
something, even if it can never be enough.
"Go meet your army, Nikolai," said Bean. "I've got a spaceship to
catch."
He watched Nikolai go out the door and knew, with a sharp pang of
regret, that he would never see his friend again.
***
Dimak stood in Major Anderson's quarters.
"Captain Dimak, I watched Colonel Graff indulge your constant
complaints, your resistance to his orders, and I kept thinking, Dimak
might be right, but I would never tolerate such lack of respect if *I*
were in command. I'd throw him out on his ass and write 'insubordinate' in
about forty places in his dossier. I thought I should tell you that before
you make your complaint."
Dimak blinked.
"Go ahead, I'm waiting."
"It isn't so much a complaint as a question."
"Then ask your question."
"I thought you were supposed to choose a team that was equally
compatible with Ender *and* with Bean."
"The word *equally* was never used, as far as I can recall. But even
if it was, did it occur to you that it might be impossible? I could have
chosen forty brilliant children who would all have been proud and eager to
serve under Andrew Wiggin. How many would be *equally* proud and eager to
serve under Bean?"
Dimak had no answer for that.
"The way I analyze it, the soldiers I chose to send on this destroyer
are the students who are emotionally closest and most responsive to Ender
Wiggin, while also being among the dozen or so best commanders in the
school. These soldiers also have no particular animosity toward Bean. So
if they find him placed over them, they'll probably do their best for him.
"
"They'll never forgive him for not being Ender."
"I guess that will be Bean's challenge. Who else should I have sent?
Nikolai is Bean's friend, but he'd be out of his depth. Someday he'll be
ready for Tactical School, and then Command, but not yet. And what other
friends does Bean have?"
"He's won a lot of respect."
"And lost it again when he lost all five of his games."
"I've explained to you why he --"
"Humanity doesn't need explanations, Captain Dimak! It needs winners!
Ender Wiggin had the fire to win. Bean is capable of losing five in a row as
if they didn't even matter."
"They didn't matter. He learned what he needed to learn from them."
"Captain Dimak, I can see that I'm falling into the same trap that
Colonel Graff fell into. You have crossed the line from teaching into
advocacy. I would dismiss you as Bean's teacher, were it not for the fact
that the question is already moot. I'm sending the soldiers I decided on
already. If Bean is really so brilliant, he'll figure out a way to work with
them."
"Yes sir," said Dimak.
"If it's any consolation, do remember that Crazy Tom was one of the ones
Bean brought along to hear Achilles' confession. Crazy Tom *went*. That
suggests that the better they know Bean, the more seriously they take him.
"
"Thank you, sir."
"Bean is no longer your responsibility, Captain Dimak. You did well with
him. I salute you for it. Now ... get back to work."
Dimak saluted.
Anderson saluted.
Dimak left.
*** ***
On the destroyer Condor, the crew had no idea what to do with these
children. They all knew about the Battle School, and both the captain and
the pilot were Battle School graduates. But after perfunctory conversation
-- What army were you in? Oh, in my day Rat was the best, Dragon was a
complete loser, how things change, how things stay the same -- there was
nothing more to say.
Without the shared concerns of being army commanders, the children
drifted into their natural friendship groups. Dink and Petra had been
friends almost from their first beginnings in Battle School, and they were
so senior to the others that no one tried to penetrate that closed circle.
Alai and Shen had been in Ender Wiggin's original launch group, and Vlad and
Dumper, who had commanded B and E toons and were probably the most
worshipful of Ender, hung around with them. Crazy Tom, Fly Molo, and Hot
Soup had already been a trio back in Dragon Army. On a personal level,
Bean did not expect to be included in any of these groups, and he wasn't
particularly excluded, either; Crazy Tom, at least, showed real respect
for Bean, and often included him in conversation. If Bean belonged to any of
these groups, it was Crazy Tom's.
The only reason the division into cliques bothered him was that this
group was clearly being assembled, not just randomly chosen. Trust needed to
grow between them all, strongly if not equally. But they had been chosen
for Ender -- any idiot could see that -- and it was not Bean's place to
suggest that they play the onboard games together, learn together, do
anything together. If Bean tried to assert any kind of leadership, it
would only build more walls between him and the others than already existed.
There was only one of the group that Bean didn't think belonged there.
And he couldn't do anything about that. Apparently the adults did not hold
Petra responsible for her near-betrayal of Ender in the corridor the evening
before Ender's life-or-death struggle with Bonzo. But Bean was not so sure.
Petra was one of the best of the commanders, smart, able to see the big
picture. How could she possibly have been fooled by Bonzo? Of course she
couldn't have been hoping for Ender's destruction. But she had been
careless, at best, and at worst might have been playing some kind of game
that Bean did not yet understand. So he remained suspicious of her. Which
wasn't good, to have such mistrust, but there it was.
Bean passed the four months of the voyage in the ship's library, mostly.
Now that they were out of Battle School, he was reasonably sure that they
weren't being spied on so intensely. The destroyer simply wasn't equipped
for it. So he no longer had to choose his reading material with an eye to
what the teachers would make of his selections.
He read no military history or theory whatsoever. He had already read
all the major writers and many of the minor ones and knew the important
campaigns backward and forward, from both sides. Those were in his memory to
be called upon whenever he needed them. What was missing from his memory
was the big picture. How the world worked. Political, social, economic
history. What happened in nations when they weren't at war. How they got
into and out of wars. How victory and defeat affected them. How alliances
were formed and broken.
And, most important of all, but hardest to find: What was going on in
the world today. The destroyer library had only the information that had
been current when last it docked at Interstellar Launch -- ISL -- which is
where the authorized list of documents was made available for download. Bean
could make requests for more information, but that would require the
library computer to make requisitions and use communications bandwidth
that would have to be justified. It would be noticed, and then they'd wonder
why this child was studying matters that could have no possible concern for
him.
From what he could find on board, however, it was still possible to
piece together the basic situation on Earth, and to reach some conclusions.
During the years before the First Invasion, various power blocs had
jockeyed for position, using some combination of terrorism, "surgical"
strikes, limited military operations, and economic sanctions, boycotts,
and embargos [sic -- should be embargoes] to gain the upper hand or give
firm warnings or simply express national or ideological rage. When the
Buggers showed up, China had just emerged as the dominant world power,
economically and militarily, having finally reunited itself as a democracy.
The North Americans and Europeans played at being China's "big brothers,"
but the economic balance had finally shifted.
What Bean saw as the driving force of history, however, was the
resurgent Russian Empire. Where the Chinese simply took it for granted
that they were and should be the center of the universe, the Russians, led
by a series of ambitious demagogues and authoritarian generals, felt that
history had cheated them out of their rightful place, century after century,
and it was time for that to end. So it was Russia that forced the
creation of the New Warsaw Pact, bringing its effective borders back to
the peak of Soviet power -- and beyond, for this time Greece was its ally,
and an intimidated Turkey was neutralized. Europe was on the verge of
being neutralized, the Russian dream of hegemony from the Pacific to the
Atlantic at last within reach.
And then the Formics came and cut a swath of destruction through China
that left a hundred million dead. Suddenly land-based armies seemed trivial,
and questions of international competition were put on hold.
But that was only superficial. In fact, the Russians used their
domination of the office of the Polemarch to build up a network of
officers in key places throughout the fleet. Everything was in place for a
vast power play the moment the Buggers were defeated -- or before, if they
thought it was to their advantage. Oddly, the Russians were rather open
about their intentions -- they always had been. They had no talent for
subtlety, but they made up for it with amazing stubbornness. Negotiations
for anything could take decades. And meanwhile, their penetration of the
fleet was nearly total. Infantry forces loyal to the Strategos would be
isolated, unable to get to the places where they were needed because there
would be no ships to carry them.
When the war with the Buggers ended, the Russians clearly planned that
within hours they would rule the fleet and therefore the world. It was their
destiny. The North Americans were as complacent as ever, sure that
destiny would work everything out in their favor. Only a few demagogues
saw the danger. The Chinese and the Muslim world were alert to the danger,
and even they were unable to make any kind of stand for fear of breaking
up the alliance that made resistance to the Buggers possible.
The more he studied, the more Bean wished that he did not have to go
to Tactical School. This war would belong to Ender and his friends. And
while Bean loved Ender as much as any of them, and would gladly serve with
them against the Buggers, the fact was that they didn't need him. It was the
next war, the struggle for world domination, that fascinated him. The
Russians *could* be stopped, if the right preparations were made.
But then he had to ask himself: *Should* they be stopped? A quick,
bloody, but effective coup which would bring the world under a single
government -- it would mean the end of war among humans, wouldn't it? And in
such a climate of peace, wouldn't all nations be better off?
So, even as Bean developed his plan for stopping the Russians, he
tried to evaluate what a worldwide Russian Empire would be like.
And what he concluded was that it would not last. For along with their
national vigor, the Russians had also nurtured their astonishing talent
for misgovernment, that sense of personal entitlement that made corruption a
way of life. The institutional tradition of competence that would be
essential for a successful world government was nonexistent. It was in China
that those institutions and values were most vigorous. But even China would
be a poor substitute for a genuine world government that transcended any
national interest. The wrong world government would eventually collapse
under its own weight.
Bean longed to be able to talk these things over with someone -- with
Nikolai, or even with one of the teachers. It slowed him down to have his
own thoughts move around in circles -- without outside stimulation it was
hard to break free of his own assumptions. One mind can think only of its
own questions; it rarely surprises itself. But he made progress, slowly,
during that voyage, and then during the months of Tactical School.
Tactical was a blur of short voyages and detailed tours of various
ships. Bean was disgusted that they seemed to concentrate entirely on
older designs, which seemed pointless to him -- why train your commanders in
ships they won't actually be using in battle? But the teachers treated
his objection with contempt, pointing out that ships were ships, in the long
run, and the newest vessels had to be put into service patrolling the
perimeters of the solar system. There were none to spare for training
children.
They were taught very little about the art of pilotry, for they were not
being trained to fly the ships, only to command them in battle. They had to
get a sense of how the weapons worked, how the ships moved, what could be
expected of them, what their limitations were. Much of it was rote
learning ... but that was precisely the kind of learning Bean could do
almost in his sleep, being able to recall anything that he had read or heard
with any degree of attention.
So throughout Tactical School, while he performed as well as anyone, his
real concentration was still on the problems of the current political
situation on Earth. For Tactical School was at ISL, and so the library there
was constantly being updated, and not just with the material authorized for
inclusion in finite ships' libraries. For the first time, Bean began to
read the writings of current political thinkers on Earth. He read what was
coming out of Russia, and once again was astonished at how nakedly they
pursued their ambitions. The Chinese writers saw the danger, but being
Chinese, made no effort to rally support in other nations for any kind of
resistance.
To the Chinese, once something was known in China, it was known
everywhere that mattered. And the Euro-American nations seemed dominated
by a studied ignorance that to Bean appeared to be a death wish. Yet there
were some who were awake, struggling to create coalitions.
Two popular commentators in particular came to Bean's attention.
Demosthenes at first glance seemed to be a rabble-rouser, playing on
prejudice and xenophobia. But he was also having considerable success in
leading a popular movement. Bean didn't know if life under a government
headed by Demosthenes would be any better than living under the Russians,
but Demosthenes would at least make a contest out of it. The other
commentator that Bean took note of was Locke, a lofty, high-minded fellow
who nattered about world peace and forging alliances -- yet amid his
apparent complacency, Locke actually seemed to be working from the same
set of facts as Demosthenes, taking it for granted that the Russians were
vigorous enough to "lead" the world, but unprepared to do so in a
"beneficial" way. In a way, it was as if Demosthenes and Locke were doing
their research together, reading all the same sources, learning from all the
same correspondents, but then appealing to completely different audiences.
For a while, Bean even toyed with the possibility that Locke and
Demosthenes were the same person. But no, the writing styles were different,
and more importantly, they thought and analyzed differently. Bean didn't
think anyone was smart enough to fake that.
Whoever they were, these two commentators were the people that seemed to
see the situation most accurately, and so Bean began to conceive of his
essay on strategy in the post-Formic world as a letter to both Locke and
Demosthenes. A private letter. An anonymous letter. Because his observations
should be known, and these two seemed to be in the best position to bring
Bean's ideas to fruition.
Resorting to old habits, Bean spent some time in the library watching
several officers log on to the net, and soon had six log-ins that he could
use. He then wrote his letter in six parts, using a different log-in for
each part, and then sent the parts to Locke and Demosthenes within minutes
of each other. He did it during an hour when the library was crowded, and
made sure that he himself was logged on to the net on his own desk in his
barracks, ostensibly playing a game. He doubted they'd be counting his
keystrokes and realize that he wasn't actually doing anything with his
desk during that time. And if they did trace the letter back to him, well,
too bad. In all likelihood, Locke and Demosthenes would not try to trace him
-- in his letter he asked them not to. They would either believe him or
not; they would agree with him or not; beyond that he could not go. He had
spelled out for them exactly what the dangers were, what the Russian
strategy obviously was, and what steps must be taken to ensure that the
Russians did not succeed in their preemptive strike.
One of the most important points he made was that the children from
Battle, Tactical, and Command School had to be brought back to Earth as
quickly as possible, once the Buggers were defeated. If they remained in
space, they would either be taken by the Russians or kept in ineffectual
isolation by the I.F. But these children were the finest military minds that
humanity had produced in this generation. If the power of one great
nation was to be subdued, it would require brilliant commanders in
opposition to them.
Within a day, Demosthenes had an essay on the nets calling for the
Battle School to be dissolved at once and all those children brought home.
"They have kidnapped our most promising children. Our Alexanders and
Napoleons, our Rommels and Pattons, our Caesars and Fredericks and
Washingtons and Saladins are being kept in a tower where we can't reach
them, where they can't help their own people remain free from the threat
of Russian domination. And who can doubt that the Russians intend to seize
those children and use them? Or, if they can't, they will certainly try,
with a single well-placed missile, to blast them all to bits, depriving us
of our natural military leadership." Delicious demagoguery, designed to
spark fear and outrage. Bean could imagine the consternation in the military
as their precious school became a political issue. It was an emotional
issue that Demosthenes would not let go of and other nationalists all over
the world would fervently echo. And because it was about children, no
politician could dare oppose the principle that all the children in Battle
School would come home the *moment* the war ended. Not only that, but on
this issue, Locke lent his prestigious, moderate voice to the cause,
openly supporting the principle of the return of the children. "By all
means, pay the piper, rid us of the invading rats -- and then bring our
children home."
I saw, I wrote, and the world changed a little. It was a heady feeling.
It made all the work at Tactical School seem almost meaningless by
comparison. He wanted to bound into the classroom and tell the others
about his triumph. But they would look at him like he was crazy. They knew
nothing about the world at large, and took no responsibility for it. They
were closed into the military world.
Three days after Bean sent his letters to Locke and Demosthenes, the
children came to class and found that they were to depart immediately for
Command School, this time joined by Carn Carby, who had been a class ahead
of them in Tactical School. They had spent only three months at ISL, and
Bean couldn't help wondering if his letters had not had some influence
over the timing. If there was some danger that the children might be sent
home prematurely, the I.F. had to make sure their prize specimens were out
of reach.CHAPTER 22 -- REUNION
"I suppose I should congratulate you for undoing the damage you did to
Ender Wiggin."
"Sir, I respectfully disagree that I did any damage."
"Ah, good then, I *don't* have to congratulate you. You do realize
that your status here will be as observer."
"I hope that I will also have opportunities to offer advice based on
my years of experience with these children."
"Command School has worked with children for years."
"Respectfully, sir, Command School has worked with adolescents.
Ambitious, testosterone-charged, competitive teenagers. And quite aside from
that, we have a lot riding on these particular children, and I know
things about them that must be taken into account."
"All those things should be in your reports."
"They are. But with all respect, is there anyone there who has memorized
my reports so thoroughly that the appropriate details will come to mind the
instant they're needed?"
"I'll listen to you, Colonel Graff. And please stop assuring me of how
respectful you are whenever you're about to tell me I'm an idiot."
"I thought that my leave of absence was designed to chasten me. I'm
trying to show that I've been chastened."
"Are there any of these details about the children that come to mind
right now?"
"An important one, sir. Because so much depends on what Ender does or
does not know, it is vital that you isolate him from the other children.
During actual practices he can be there, but under no circumstances can
you allow free conversation or sharing of information."
"And why is that?"
"Because if Bean ever comes to know about the ansible, he'll leap
straight to the core situation. He may figure it out on his own as it is
-- you have no idea how difficult it is to conceal information from him.
Ender is more trusting -- but Ender can't do his job *unless* he knows about
the ansible. You see? He and Bean cannot be allowed to have any free time
together. Any conversation that is not on point."
"But if this is so, then Bean is not capable of being Ender's backup,
because then he would *have* to be told about the ansible."
"It won't matter then."
"But you yourself were the author of the proposition that only a child
--"
"Sir, none of that applies to Bean."
"Because?"
"Because he's not human."
"Colonel Graff, you make me tired."
***
The voyage to Command School was four long months, and this time they
were being trained continuously, as thorough an education in the mathematics
of targeting, explosives, and other weapons-related subjects as could be
managed on board a fast-moving cruiser. Finally, too, they were being forged
again into a team, and it quickly became clear to everyone that the leading
student was Bean. He mastered everything immediately, and was soon the
one whom the others turned to for explanations of concepts they didn't grasp
at once. From being the lowest in status on the first voyage, a complete
outsider, Bean now became an outcast for the opposite reason -- he was alone
in the position of highest status.
He struggled with the situation, because he knew that he needed to be
able to function as part of the team, not just as a mentor or expert. Now it
became vital that he take part in their downtime, relaxing with them,
joking, joining in with reminiscences about Battle School. And about even
earlier times.
For now, at last, the Battle School tabu against talking about home
was gone. They all spoke freely of mothers and fathers who by now were
distant memories, but who still played a vital role in their lives.
The fact that Bean had no parents at first made the others a little
shy with him, but he seized the opportunity and began to speak openly
about his entire experience. Hiding in the toilet tank in the clean room.
Going home with the Spanish custodian. Starving on the streets as he scouted
for his opportunity. Telling Poke how to beat the bullies at their own
game. Watching Achilles, admiring him, fearing him as he created their
little street family, marginalized Poke, and finally killed her. When he
told them of finding Poke's body, several of them wept. Petra in
particular broke down and sobbed.
It was an opportunity, and Bean seized it. Naturally, she soon fled
the company of others, taking her emotions into the privacy of her quarters.
As soon afterward as he could, Bean followed her.
"Bean, I don't want to talk."
"I do," said Bean. "It's something we have to talk about. For the good
of the team."
"Is that what we are?" she asked.
"Petra, you know the worst thing I've ever done. Achilles was dangerous,
I knew it, and I still went away and left Poke alone with him. She died for
it. That burns in me every day of my life. Every time I start to feel
happy, I remember Poke, how I owe my life to her, how I could have saved
her. Every time I love somebody, I have that fear that I'll betray them
the same way I did her."
"Why are you telling me this, Bean?"
"Because you betrayed Ender and I think it's eating at you."
Her eyes flashed with rage. "I did not! And it's eating at *you*, not
me!"
"Petra, whether you admit it to yourself or not, when you tried to
slow Ender down in the corridor that day, there's no way you didn't know
what you were doing. I've seen you in action, you're sharp, you see
everything. In some ways you're the best tactical commander in the whole
group. It's absolutely impossible that you didn't see how Bonzo's thugs were
all there in the corridor, waiting to beat the crap out of Ender, and
what did you do? You tried to slow him down, peel him off from the group."
"And you stopped me," said Petra. "So it's moot, isn't it?"
"I have to know why."
"You don't have to know squat."
"Petra, we have to fight shoulder to shoulder someday. We have to be
able to trust each other. I don't trust you because I don't know why you did
that. And now you won't trust me because you know I don't trust *you*."
"Oh what a tangled web we weave."
"What the hell does that mean?"
"My father said it. Oh what a tangled web we weave when first we
practice to deceive."
"Exactly. Untangle this for me."
"You're the one who's weaving a web for me, Bean. You know things you
don't tell the rest of us. You think I don't see that? So you want me to
restore your trust in me, but you don't tell me anything useful."
"I opened my soul to you," said Bean.
"You told me about your *feelings*." She said it with utter contempt.
"So good, it's a relief to know you have them, or at least to know that
you think it's worth pretending to have them, nobody's quite sure about
that. But what you don't ever tell us is what the hell is actually going
on here. We think you know."
"All I have are guesses."
"The teachers told you things back in Battle School that none of the
rest of us knew. You knew the name of every kid in the school, you knew
things about us, all of us. You knew things you had no business knowing."
Bean was stunned to realize that his special access had been so
noticeable to her. Had he been careless? Or was she even more observant than
he had thought? "I broke into the student data," said Bean.
"And they didn't catch you?"
"I think they did. Right from the start. Certainly they knew about it
later." And he told her about choosing the roster for Dragon Army.
She flopped down on her bunk and addressed the ceiling. "You chose them!
All those rejects and those little launchy bastards, *you* chose them!"
"Somebody had to. The teachers weren't competent to do it."
"So Ender had the best. He didn't *make* them the best, they already
*were* the best."
"The best that weren't already in armies. I'm the only one who was a
launchy when Dragon was formed who's with this team now. You and Shen and
Alai and Dink and Carn, you weren't in Dragon, and you're obviously among
the best. Dragon won because they were good, yes, but also because Ender
knew what to do with them."
"It still turns one little corner of my universe upside down."
"Petra, this was a trade."
"Was it?"
"Explain why you weren't a judas back in Battle School."
"I was a judas," said Petra. "How's that for an explanation?"
Bean was sickened. "You can say it like that? Without shame?"
"Are you stupid?" asked Petra. "I was doing the same thing you were
doing, trying to save Ender's life. I knew Ender had trained for combat, and
those thugs hadn't. I was also trained. Bonzo had been working these guys
up into a frenzy, but the fact is, they didn't like Bonzo very much, he
had just pissed them off at Ender. So if they got in a few licks against
Ender, right there in the corridor where Dragon Army and other soldiers
would get into it right away, where Ender would have me beside him in a
limited space so only a few of them could come at us at once -- I figured
that Ender would get bruised, get a bloody nose, but he'd come out of it OK.
And all those walking scabies would be satisfied. Bonzo's ranting would
be old news. Bonzo would be alone again. Ender would be safe from anything
worse."
"You were gambling a lot on your fighting ability."
"And Ender's. We were both damn good then, and in excellent shape. And
you know what? I think Ender understood what I was doing, and the only
reason he didn't go along with it was you."
"Me?" "Me?"
"He saw you plunging right into the middle of everything. You'd get your
head beaten in, that was obvious. So he had to avoid the violence then.
Which means that because of you, he got set up the next day when it really
*was* dangerous, when Ender was completely alone with no one for backup."
"So why didn't you explain this before?"
"Because you were the only one besides Ender who knew I was setting
him up, and I didn't really care what you thought then, and I'm not that
concerned about it now."
"It was a stupid plan," said Bean.
"It was better than yours," said Petra.
"Well, I guess when you look at how it all turned out, we'll never
know how stupid your plan was. But we sure know that mine was shot to hell."
Petra flashed him a brief, insincere grin. "Now, do you trust me
again? Can we go back to the intimate friendship we've shared for so
long?"
"You know something, Petra? All that hostility is wasted on me. In fact,
it's bad aim on your part to even try it. Because I'm the best friend
you've got here."
"Oh really?"
"Yes, really. Because I'm the only one of these boys who ever chose to
have a girl as his commander."
She paused a moment, staring at him blankly before saying, "I got over
the fact that I'm a girl a long time ago."
"But they didn't. And you know they didn't. You know that it bothers
them all the time, that you're not really one of the guys. They're your
friends, sure, at least Dink is, but they all like you. At the same time,
there were what, a dozen girls in the whole school? And except for you, none
of them were really topflight soldiers. They didn't take you seriously,"
"Ender did," said Petra.
"And I do," said Bean. "The others all know what happened in the
corridor, you know. It's not like it was a secret. But you know why they
haven't had this conversation with you?"
"Why?"
"Because *they* all figured you were an idiot and didn't realize how
close you came to getting Ender pounded into the deck. I'm the only one
who had enough respect for you to realize that you would never make such a
stupid mistake by accident."
"I'm supposed to be flattered?"
"You're supposed to stop treating me like the enemy. You're almost as
much of an outsider in this group as I am. And when it comes down to
actual combat, you need someone who'll take you as seriously as you take
yourself."
"Do me no favors."
"I'm leaving now."
"About time."
"And when you think about this more and you realize I'm right, you don't
have to apologize. You cried for Poke, and that makes us friends. You can
trust me, and I can trust you, and that's all."
She was starting some retort as he left, but he didn't stick around long
enough to hear what it was. Petra was just that way -- she had to act
tough. Bean didn't mind. He knew they'd said the things they needed to say.
***
Command School was at FleetCom, and the location of FleetCom was a
closely guarded secret. The only way you ever found out where it was was
to be assigned there, and very few people who had been there ever came
back to Earth.
Just before arrival, the kids were briefed. FleetCom was in the
wandering asteroid Eros. And as they approached, they realized that it
really was *in* the asteroid. Almost nothing showed on the surface except
the docking station. They boarded the shuttlebug, which reminded them of
schoolbuses, and took the five-minute ride down to the surface. There the
shuttlebug slid inside what looked like a cave, A snakelike tube reached out
to the bug and enclosed it completely. They got out of the shuttlebug
into near-zero gravity, and a strong air current sucked them like a vacuum
cleaner up into the bowels of Eros.
Bean knew at once that this place was not shaped by human hands. The
tunnels were all too low -- and even then, the ceilings had obviously been
raised after the initial construction, since the lower walls were smooth and
only the top half-meter showed tool marks. The Buggers made this,
probably when they were mounting the Second Invasion. What was once their
forward base was now the center of the International Fleet. Bean tried to
imagine the battle required to take this place. The Buggers scuttering along
the tunnels, the infantry coming in with low-power explosives to burn
them out. Flashes of light. And then cleanup, dragging the Formic bodies out
of the tunnels and bit by bit converting it into a human space.
This is how we got our secret technologies, thought Bean. The Buggers
had gravity-generating machines. We learned how they worked and built our
own, installing them in the Battle School and wherever else they were
needed. But the I.F. never announced the fact, because it would have
frightened people to realize how advanced their technology was.
What else did we learn from them?
Bean noticed how even the children hunched a little to walk through
the tunnels. The headroom was at least two meters, and not one of the kids
was nearly that tall, but the proportions were all wrong for human comfort,
so the roof of the tunnels seemed oppressively low, ready to collapse. It
must have been even worse when we first arrived, before the roofs were
raised.
Ender would thrive here. He'd hate it, of course, because he was human.
But he'd also use the place to help him get inside the minds of the Buggers
who built it. Not that you could ever really understand an alien mind.
But this place gave you a decent chance to try.
The boys were bunked up in two rooms; Petra had a smaller room to
herself. It was even more bare here than Battle School, and they could never
escape the coldness of the stone around them. On Earth, stone had always
seemed solid. But in space, it seemed downright porous. There were bubble
holes all through the stone, and Bean couldn't help feeling that air was
leaking out all the time. Air leaking out, and cold leaking in, and
perhaps something else, the larvae of the Buggers chewing like earthworms
through the solid stone, crawling out of the bubble holes at night when
the room was dark, crawling over their foreheads and reading their minds and
...
He woke up, breathing heavily, his hand clutching his forehead. He
hardly dared to move his hand. Had something been crawling on him?
His hand was empty.
He wanted to go back to sleep, but it was too close to reveille for
him to hope for that. He lay there thinking. The nightmare was absurd --
there could not possibly be any Buggers alive here. But something made him
afraid. Something was bothering him, and he wasn't sure what.
He thought back to a conversation with one of the technicians who
serviced the simulators. Bean's had malfunctioned during practice, so that
suddenly the little points of light that represented his ships moving
through three-dimensional space were no longer under his control. To his
surprise, they didn't just drift on in the direction of the last orders he
gave. Instead, they began to swarm, to gather, and then changed color as
they shifted to be under someone else's control.
When the technician arrived to replace the chip that had blown, Bean
asked him why the ships didn't just stop or keep drifting. "It's part of the
simulation," the technician said. "What's being simulated here is not
that you're the pilot or even the captain of these ships. You're the
admiral, and so inside each ship there's a simulated captain and a simulated
pilot, and so when your contact got cut off, they acted the way the real
guys would act if they lost contact. See?"
"That seems like a lot of trouble to go to."
"Look, we've had a lot of time to work on these simulators," said the
technician. "They're *exactly* like combat."
"Except," said Bean, "the time-lag."
The technician looked blank for a moment. "Oh, right. The time-lag.
Well, that just wasn't worth programming in." And then he was gone.
It was that moment of blankness that was bothering Bean. These
simulators were as perfect as they could make them, *exactly* like combat,
and yet they didn't include the time-lag that came from lightspeed
communications. The distances being simulated were large enough that most of
the time there should be at least a slight delay between a command and
its execution, and sometimes it should be several seconds. But no such delay
was programmed in. All communications were being treated as instantaneous.
And when Bean asked about it, his question was blown off by the teacher who
first trained them on the simulators. "It's a simulation. Plenty of time to
get used to the lightspeed delay when you train with the real thing."
That sounded like typically stupid military thinking even at the time,
but now Bean realized it was simply a lie. If they programmed in the
behavior of pilots and captains when communications were cut off, they could
very easily have included the time-lag. The reason these ships were
simulated with instantaneous response was because that *was* an accurate
simulation of conditions they would meet in combat.
Lying awake in the darkness, Bean finally made the connection. It was so
obvious, once he thought of it. It wasn't just gravity control they got
from the Buggers. It was faster-than-light communication. It's a big
secret from people on Earth, but our ships can talk to each other
instantaneously.
And if the ships can, why not FleetCom here on Eros? What was the
range of communication? Was it truly instantaneous regardless of distance,
or was it merely faster than light, so that at truly great distances it
began to have its own time-lag?
His mind raced through the possibilities, and the implications of
those possibilities. Our patrol ships will be able to warn us of the
approaching enemy fleet long before it reaches us. They've probably known
for years that it was coming, and how fast. That's why we've been rushed
through our training like this -- they've known for years when the Third
Invasion would begin.
And then another thought. If this instantaneous communication works
regardless of distance, then we could even be talking to the invasion
fleet we sent against the Formic home planet right after the Second
Invasion. If our starships were going near lightspeed, the relative time
differential would complicate communication, but as long as we're
imagining miracles, that would be easy enough to solve. We'll know whether
our invasion of their world succeeded or not, moments afterward. Why, if the
communication is really powerful, with plenty of bandwidth, FleetCom
could even watch the battle unfold, or at least watch a simulation of the
battle, and ...
A simulation of the battle. Each ship in the expeditionary force sending
back its position at all times. The communications device receives that
data and feeds it into a computer and what comes out is ... the simulation
we've been practicing with.
We are training to command ships in combat, not here in the solar
system, but light-years away. They sent the pilots and the captains, but the
admirals who will command them are still back here. At FleetCom. They had
generations to find the right commanders, and we're the ones.
It left him gasping, this realization. He hardly dared to believe it,
and yet it made far better sense than any of the other more plausible
scenarios. For one thing, it explained perfectly why the kids had been
trained on older ships. The fleet they would be commanding had launched
decades ago, when those older designs were the newest and the best.
They didn't rip us through Battle School and Tactical School because the
Bugger fleet is about to reach our solar system. They're in a hurry because
*our* fleet is about to reach the Buggers' world.
It was like Nikolai said. You can't rule out the impossible, because you
never know which of your assumptions about what was possible might turn
out, in the real universe, to be false. Bean hadn't been able to think of
this simple, rational explanation because he had been locked in the box of
thinking that lightspeed limited both travel *and* communication. But the
technician let down just the tiniest part of the veil they had covering
the truth, and because Bean finally found a way to open his mind to the
possibility, he now knew the secret.
Sometime during their training, anytime at all, without the slightest
warning, without ever even telling us they're doing it, they can switch over
and we'll be commanding real ships in a real battle. We'll think it's a
game, but we'll be fighting a war.
And they don't tell us because we're children. They think we can't
handle it. Knowing that our decisions will cause death and destruction. That
when we lose a ship, real men die. They're keeping it a secret to protect
us from our own compassion.
Except me. Because now I know.
The weight of it suddenly came upon him and he could hardly breathe,
except shallowly. Now I know. How will it change the way I play? I can't let
it, that's all. I was already doing my best -- knowing this won't make me
work harder or play better. It might make me do worse. Might make me
hesitate, might make me lose concentration. Through their training, they had
all learned that winning depended on being able to forget everything but
what you were doing at that moment. You could hold all your ships in your
mind at once -- but only if any ship that no longer matters could be blocked
out completely. Thinking about dead men, about torn bodies having the air
sucked out of their lungs by the cold vacuum of space, who could still
play the game knowing that this was what it really meant?
The teachers were right to keep this secret from us. That technician
should be court-martialed for letting me see behind the curtain.
I can't tell anyone. The other kids shouldn't know this. And if the
teachers know that I know it, they'll take me out of the game.
So I have to fake it.
No. I have to disbelieve it. I have to forget that it's true. It *isn't*
true.
The truth is what they've been telling us. The simulation is simply
ignoring lightspeed. They trained us on old ships because the new ones are
all deployed and can't be wasted. The fight we're preparing for is to
repel invading Formics, not to invade their solar system. This was just a
crazy dream, pure self-delusion. Nothing goes faster than light, and
therefore information can't be transmitted faster than light.
Besides, if we really did send an invasion fleet that long ago, they
don't need little kids to command them. Mazer Rackham must be with that
fleet, no way would it have launched without him. Mazer Rackham is still
alive, preserved by the relativistic changes of near-lightspeed travel.
Maybe it's only been a few years to him. And he's ready. We aren't needed.
Bean calmed his breathing. His heartrate slowed. I can't let myself
get carried away with fantasies like that. I would be so embarrassed if
anyone knew the stupid theory I came up with in my sleep. I can't even
tell this as a dream. The game is as it always was.
Reveille sounded over the intercom. Bean got out of bed -- a bottom
bunk, this time -- and joined in as normally as possible with the banter
of Crazy Tom and Hot Soup, while Fly Molo kept his morning surliness to
himself and Alai did his prayers. Bean went to mess and ate as he normally
ate. Everything was normal. It didn't mean a thing that he couldn't get
his bowels to unclench at the normal time. That his belly gnawed at him
all day, and at mealtime he was faintly nauseated. That was just lack of
sleep.
Near the end of three months on Eros, their work on the simulators
changed. There would be ships directly under their control, but they also
had others under them to whom they had to give commands out loud, besides
using the controls to enter them manually. "Like combat," said their
supervisor.
"In combat," said Alai, "we'd know who the officers serving under us
were."
"That would matter if you depended on them to give you information.
But you do not. All the information you need is conveyed to your simulator
and appears in the display. So you give your orders orally as well as
manually. Just assume that you will be obeyed. Your teachers will be
monitoring the orders you give to help you learn to be explicit and
immediate. You will also have to master the technique of switching back
and forth between crosstalk among yourselves and giving orders to individual
ships. It's quite simple, you see. Turn your heads to the left or right
to speak to each other, whichever is more comfortable for you. But when your
face is pointing straight at the display, your voice will be carried to
whatever ship or squadron you have selected with your controls. And to
address all the ships under your control at once, head straight forward
and duck your chin, like this."
"What happens if we raise our heads?" asked Shen.
Alai answered before the teacher could. "Then you're talking to God."
After the laughter died down, the teacher said, "Almost right, Alai.
When you raise your chin to speak, you'll be talking to *your* commander."
Several spoke at once. "*Our* commander?"
"You did not think we were training all of you to be supreme commander
at once, did you? No no. For the moment, we will assign one of you at random
to be that commander, just for practice. Let's say ... the little one. You.
Bean."
"I'm supposed to be commander?"
"Just for the practices. Or is he not competent? You others will not
obey him in battle?"
The others answered the teacher with scorn. Of course Bean was
competent. Of course they'd follow him.
"But then, he never did win a battle when he commanded Rabbit Army,"
said Fly Molo.
"Excellent. That means that you will all have the challenge of making
this little one a winner in spite of himself. If you do not think *that*
is a realistic military situation, you have not been reading history
carefully enough."
So it was that Bean found himself in command of the ten other kids
from Battle School. It was exhilarating, of course, for neither he nor the
others believed for one moment that the teacher's choice had been random.
They knew that Bean was better at the simulator than anybody. Petra was
the one who said it after practice one day. "Hell, Bean, I think you have
this all in your head so clear you could close your eyes and still play." It
was almost true. He did not have to keep checking to see where everyone
was. It was all in his head at once.
It took a couple of days for them to handle it smoothly, taking orders
from Bean and giving their own orders orally along with the physical
controls. There were constant mistakes at first, heads in the wrong position
so that comments and questions and orders went to the wrong destination.
But soon enough it became instinctive.
Bean then insisted that others take turns being in the command position.
"I need practice taking orders just like they do," he said. "And learning
how to change my head position to speak up and sideways." The teacher
agreed, and after another day, Bean had mastered the technique as well as
any of the others.
Having other kids in the master seat had another good effect as well.
Even though no one did so badly as to embarrass himself, it was clear that
Bean was sharper and faster than anyone else, with a keener grasp of
developing situations and a better ability to sort out what he was hearing
and remember what everybody had said.
"You're not *human*," said Petra. "*Nobody* can do what you do!"
"Am so human," said Bean mildly. "And I know somebody who can do it
better than me."
"Who's that?" she demanded.
"Ender."
They all fell silent for a moment.
"Yeah, well, he ain't here," said Vlad.
"How do *you* know?" said Bean. "For all we know, he's been here all
along."
"That's stupid," said Dink. "Why wouldn't they have him practice with
us? Why would they keep it a secret?"
"Because they like secrets," said Bean. "And maybe because they're
giving him different training. And maybe because it's like Sinterklaas.
They're going to bring him to us as a present."
"And maybe you're full of merda," said Dumper.
Bean just laughed. Of course it would be Ender. This group was assembled
for Ender. Ender was the one all their hopes were resting on. The reason
they put Bean in that master position was because Bean was the substitute.
If Ender got appendicitis in the middle of the war, it was Bean they'd
switch the controls to. Bean who'd start giving commands, deciding which
ships would be sacrificed, which men would die. But until then, it would
be Ender's choice, and for Ender, it would only be a game. No deaths, no
suffering, no fear, no guilt. Just ... a game.
Definitely it's Ender. And the sooner the better.
The next day, their supervisor told them that Ender Wiggin was going
to be their commander starting that afternoon. When they didn't act
surprised, he asked why. "Because Bean already told us."
***
"They want me to find out how you've been getting your inside
information, Bean." Graff looked across the table at the painfully small
child who sat there looking at him without expression.
"I don't have any inside information," said Bean.
"You knew that Ender was going to be the commander."
"I *guessed*," said Bean. "Not that it was hard. Look at who we are.
Ender's closest friends. Ender's toon leaders. He's the common thread. There
were plenty of other kids you could have brought here, probably about as
good as us. But these are the ones who'd follow Ender straight into space
without a suit, if he told us he needed us to do it."
"Nice speech, but you have a history of sneaking."
"Right. *When* would I be doing this sneaking? When are any of us alone?
Our desks are just dumb terminals and we never get to see anybody else
log on so it's not like I can capture another identity. I just do what I'm
told all day every day. You guys keep assuming that we kids are stupid, even
though you chose us because we're really, really smart. And now you sit
there and accuse me of having to *steal* information that any idiot could
guess."
"Not *any* idiot."
"That was just an expression."
"Bean," said Graff, "I think you're feeding me a line of complete
bullshit."
"Colonel Graff, even if that were true, which it isn't, so what? So I
found out Ender was coming. I'm secretly monitoring your dreams. So
*what*? He'll still come, he'll be in command, he'll be brilliant, and
then we'll all graduate and I'll sit in a booster seat in a ship somewhere
and give commands to grownups in my little-boy voice until they get sick
of hearing me and throw me out into space."
"I don't care about the fact that you knew about Ender. I don't care
that it was a guess."
"I know you don't care about those things."
"I need to know what else you've figured out."
"Colonel," said Bean, sounding very tired, "doesn't it occur to you that
the very fact that you're asking me this question *tells* me there's
something else for me to figure out, and therefore greatly increases the
chance that I *will* figure it out?"
Graff's smile grew even broader. "That's just what I told the ...
officer who assigned me to talk to you and ask these questions. I told him
that we would end up telling you more, just by having the interview, than
you would ever tell us, but he said, 'The kid is *six*, Colonel Graff.'"
"I think I'm seven."
"He was working from an old report and hadn't done the math."
"Just tell me what secret you want to make sure I don't know, and I'll
tell you if I already knew it."
"Very helpful."
"Colonel Graff, am I doing a good job?"
"Absurd question. Of course you are."
"If I do know anything that you don't want us kids to know, have I
talked about it? Have I told any of the other kids? Has it affected my
performance in any way?"
"No."
"To me that sounds like a tree falling in the forest where no one can
hear. If I *do* know something, because I figured it out, but I'm not
telling anybody else, and it's not affecting my work, then why would you
waste time finding out whether I know it? Because after this conversation,
you may be sure that I'll be looking very hard for any secret that might
be lying around where a seven-year-old might find it. Even if I do find such
a secret, though, I *still* won't tell the other kids, so it *still*
won't make a difference. So why don't we just drop it?"
Graff reached under the table and pressed something.
"All right," said Graff. "They've got the recording of our
conversation and if that doesn't reassure them, nothing will."
"Reassure them of what? And who is 'them'?"
"Bean, this part is not being recorded."
"Yes it is," said Bean.
"I turned it off."
"Puh-leeze."
In fact, Graff was not altogether sure that the recording *was* off.
Even if the machine he controlled was off, that didn't mean there wasn't
another.
"Let's walk," said Graff.
"I hope not outside."
Graff got up from the table -- laboriously, because he'd put on a lot of
weight and they kept Eros at full gravity -- and led the way out into the
tunnels.
As they walked, Graff talked softly. "Let's at least make them work
for it," he said.
"Fine," said Bean.
"I thought you'd want to know that the I.F. is going crazy because of an
apparent security leak. It seems that someone with access to the most
secret archives wrote letters to a couple of net pundits who then started
agitating for the children of Battle School to be sent home to their
native countries."
"What's a pundit?" asked Bean.
"My turn to say puh-leeze, I think. Look, I'm not accusing you. I just
happen to have seen a text of the letters sent to Locke and Demosthenes --
they're both being closely watched, as I'm sure you would expect -- and when
I read those letters -- interesting the differences between them, by the
way, very cleverly done -- I realized that there was not really any top
secret information in there, beyond what any child in Battle School knows.
No, the thing that's really making them crazy is that the political analysis
is dead on, even though it's based on insufficient information. From what
is publicly known, in other words, the writer of those letters couldn't have
figured out what he figured out. The Russians are claiming that
somebody's been spying on them -- and lying about what they found, of
course. But I accessed the library on the destroyer Condor and found out
what you were reading. And then I checked your library use on the ISL
while you were in Tactical School. You've been a busy boy."
"I try to keep my mind occupied."
"You'll be happy to know that the first group of children has already
been sent home."
"But the war's not over."
"You think that when you start a political snowball rolling, it will
always go where you wanted it to go? You're smart but you're naive, Bean.
Give the universe a push, and you don't know which dominoes will fall. There
are always a few you never thought were connected. Someone will always push
back a little harder than you expected. But still, I'm happy that you
remembered the other children and set the wheels in motion to free them."
"But not us."
"The I.F. has no obligation to remind the agitators on Earth that
Tactical School and Command School are still full of children."
"I'm not going to remind them."
"I know you won't. No, Bean, I got a chance to talk to you because you
panicked some of the higher-ups with your educated guess about who would
command your team. But I was hoping for a chance to talk to you because
there are a couple of things I wanted to tell you. Besides the fact that
your letter had pretty much the desired effect."
"I'm listening, though I admit to no letter."
"First, you'll be fascinated to know the identity of Locke and
Demosthenes."
"Identity? Just one?"
"One mind, two voices. You see, Bean, Ender Wiggin was born third in his
family. A special waiver, not an illegal birth. His older brother and
sister are just as gifted as he is, but for various reasons were deemed
inappropriate for Battle School. But the brother, Peter Wiggin, is a very
ambitious young man. With the military closed off to him, he's gone into
politics. Twice."
"He's Locke *and* Demosthenes," said Bean.
"He plans the strategy for both of them, but he only writes Locke. His
sister Valentine writes Demosthenes."
Bean laughed. "Now it makes sense."
"So both your letters went to the same people."
"If I wrote them."
"And it's driving poor Peter Wiggin crazy. He's really tapping into
all his sources inside the fleet to find out who sent those letters. But
nobody in the Fleet knows, either. The six officers whose log-ins you used
have been ruled out. And as you can guess, *nobody* is checking to see if
the only seven-year-old ever to go to Tactical School might have dabbled
in political epistolary in his spare time."
"Except you."
"Because, by God, I'm the only person who understands exactly how
brilliant you children actually are."
"How brilliant are we?" Bean grinned.
"Our walk won't last forever, and I won't waste time on flattery. The
other thing I wanted to tell you is that Sister Carlotta, being unemployed
after you left, devoted a lot of effort to tracking down your parentage. I
can see two officers approaching us right now who will put an end to this
unrecorded conversation, and so I'll be brief. You have a name, Bean. You
are Julian Delphiki."
"That's Nikolai's last name."
"Julian is the name of Nikolai's father. And of your father. Your
mother's name is Elena. You are identical twins. Your fertilized eggs were
implanted at different times, and your genes were altered in one very
small but significant way. So when you look at Nikolai, you see yourself
as you would have been, had you not been genetically altered, and had you
grown up with parents who loved you and cared for you."
"Julian Delphiki," said Bean.
"Nikolai is among those already heading for Earth. Sister Carlotta
will see to it that, when he is repatriated to Greece, he is informed that
you are indeed his brother. His parents already know that you exist --
Sister Carlotta told them. Your home is a lovely place, a house on the hills
of Crete overlooking the Aegean. Sister Carlotta tells me that they are
good people, your parents. They wept with joy when they learned that you
exist. And now our interview is coming to an end. We were discussing your
low opinion of the quality of teaching here at Command School."
"How did you guess."
"You're not the only one who can do that."
The two officers -- an admiral and a general, both wearing big false
smiles -- greeted them and asked how the interview had gone.
"You have the recording," said Graff. "Including the part where Bean
insisted that it was still being recorded."
"And yet the interview continued."
"I was telling him," said Bean, "about the incompetence of the
teachers here at Command School."
"Incompetence?"
"Our battles are always against exceptionally stupid computer opponents.
And then the teachers insist on going through long, tedious analyses of
these mock combats, even though no enemy could possibly behave as stupidly
and predictably as these simulations do. I was suggesting that the only
way for us to get decent competition here is if you divide us into two
groups and have us fight each other."
The two officers looked at each other. "Interesting point," said the
general.
"Moot," said the admiral. "Ender Wiggin is about to be introduced into
your game. We thought you'd want to be there to greet him."
"Yes," said Bean. "I do."
"I'll take you," said the admiral.
"Let's talk," the general said to Graff.
On the way, the admiral said little, and Bean could answer his chat
without thought. It was a good thing. For he was in turmoil over the
things that Graff had told him. It was almost not a surprise that Locke
and Demosthenes were Ender's siblings. If they were as intelligent as Ender,
it was inevitable that they would rise into prominence, and the nets
allowed them to conceal their identity enough to accomplish it while they
were still young. But part of the reason Bean was drawn to them had to be
the sheer familiarity of their voices. They must have sounded like Ender, in
that subtle way in which people who have lived long together pick up
nuances of speech from each other. Bean didn't realize it consciously, but
unconsciously it would have made him more alert to those essays. He should
have known, and at some level he did know.
But the other, that Nikolai was really his brother -- how could he
believe that? It was as if Graff had read his heart and found the lie that
would penetrate most deeply into his soul and told it to him. I'm Greek?
My brother happened to be in my launch group, the boy who became my
dearest friend? Twins? Parents who love me?
Julian Delphiki?
No, I can't believe this. Graff has never dealt honestly with us.
Graff was the one who did not lift a finger to protect Ender from Bonzo.
Graff does nothing except to accomplish some manipulative purpose.
My name is Bean. Poke gave me that name, and I won't give it up in
exchange for a lie.
***
They heard his voice, first, talking to a technician in another room.
"How can I work with squadron leaders I never see?"
"And why would you need to see them?" asked the technician.
"To know who they are, how they think --"
"You'll learn who they are and how they think from the way they work
with the simulator. But even so, I think you won't be concerned. They're
listening to you right now. Put on the headset so you can hear them."
They all trembled with excitement, knowing that he would soon hear their
voices as they now heard his.
"Somebody say something," said Petra.
"Wait till he gets the headset on," said Dink.
"How will we know?" asked Vlad.
"Me first," said Alai.
A pause. A new faint hiss in their earphones.
"Salaam," Alai whispered.
"Alai," said Ender.
"And me," said Bean. "The dwarf."
"Bean," said Ender.
Yes, thought Bean, as the others talked to him. That's who I am.
That's the name that is spoken by the people who know me.CHAPTER 23 --
ENDER'S GAME
"General, you are the Strategos. You have the authority to do this,
and you have the obligation."
"I don't need disgraced former Battle School commandants to tell me my
obligations."
"If you do not arrest the Polemarch and his conspirators --"
"Colonel Graff, if I *do* strike first, then I will bear the blame for
the war that ensues."
"Yes, you would, sir. Now tell me, which would be the better outcome
-- everybody blames you, but we win the war, or nobody blames you, because
you've been stood up against a wall and shot after the Polemarch's coup
results in worldwide Russian hegemony?"
"I will not fire the first shot."
"A military commander not willing to strike preemptively when he has
firm intelligence --"
"The politics of the thing --"
"If you let them win it's the end of politics!"
"The Russians stopped being the bad guys back in the twentieth century!"
"Whoever is doing the bad things, that's the bad guy. You're the
sheriff, sir, whether people approve of you or not. Do your job."
***
With Ender there, Bean immediately stepped back into his place among the
toon leaders. No one mentioned it to him. He had been the leading
commander, he had trained them well, but Ender had always been the natural
commander of this group, and now that he was here, Bean was small again.
And rightly so, Bean knew. He had led them well, but Ender made him look
like a novice. It wasn't that Ender's strategies were better than Bean's --
they weren't, really. Different sometimes, but more often Bean watched
Ender do exactly what he would have done.
The important difference was in the way he led the others. He had
their fierce devotion instead of the ever-so-slightly-resentful obedience
Bean got from them, which helped from the start. But he also earned that
devotion by noticing, not just what was going on in the battle, but what was
going on in his commanders' minds. He was stern, sometimes even snappish,
making it clear that he expected better than their best. And yet he had a
way of giving an intonation to innocuous words, showing appreciation,
admiration, closeness. They felt known by the one whose honor they needed.
Bean simply did not know how to do that. His encouragement was always more
obvious, a bit heavy-handed. It meant less to them because it felt more
calculated. It *was* more calculated. Ender was just ... himself.
Authority came from him like breath.
They flipped a genetic switch in me and made me an intellectual athlete.
I can get the ball into the goal from anywhere on the field. But knowing
*when* to kick. Knowing how to forge a team out of a bunch of players.
What switch was it that was flipped in Ender Wiggin's genes? Or is that
something deeper than the mechanical genius of the body? Is there a spirit,
and is what Ender has a gift from God? We follow him like disciples. We
look to him to draw water from the rock.
Can I learn to do what he does? Or am I to be like so many of the
military writers I've studied, condemned to be second-raters in the field,
remembered only because of their chronicles and explanations of other
commanders' genius? Will I write a book after this, telling all about how
Ender did it?
Let Ender write that book. Or Graff. I have work to do here, and when
it's done, I'll choose my own work and do it as well as I can. If I'm
remembered only because I was one of Ender's companions, so be it. Serving
with Ender is its own reward.
But ah, how it stung to see how happy the others were, and how they paid
no attention to him at all, except to tease him like a little brother, like
a mascot. How they must have hated it when he was their leader.
And the worst thing was, that's how Ender treated him, too. Not that any
of them were ever allowed to see Ender. But during their long separation,
Ender had apparently forgotten how he once relied on Bean. It was Petra that
he leaned on most, and Alai, and Dink, and Shen. The ones who had never
been in an army with him. Bean and the other toon leaders from Dragon Army
were still used, still trusted, but when there was something hard to do,
something that required creative flair, Ender never thought of Bean.
Didn't matter. Couldn't think about that. Because Bean knew that along
with his primary assignment as one of the squadron chiefs, he had another,
deeper work to do. He had to watch the whole flow of each battle, ready to
step in at any moment, should Ender falter. Ender seemed not to guess that
Bean had that kind of trust from the teachers, but Bean knew it, and if
sometimes it made him a little distracted in fulfilling his official
assignments, if sometimes Ender grew impatient with him for being a little
late, a little inattentive, that was to be expected. For what Ender did
not know was that at any moment, if the supervisor signaled him, Bean
could take over and continue Ender's plan, watching over all of the squadron
leaders, saving the game.
At first, that assignment seemed empty -- Ender was healthy, alert.
But then came the change.
It was the day after Ender mentioned to them, casually, that he had a
different teacher from theirs. He referred to him as "Mazer" once too often,
and Crazy Tom said, "He must have gone through hell, growing up with that
name."
"When he was growing up," said Ender, "the name wasn't famous."
"Anybody that old is dead," said Shen.
"Not if he was put on a lightspeed ship for a lot of years and then
brought back."
That's when it dawned on them. "Your teacher is *the* Mazer Rackham?"
"You know how they say he's a brilliant hero?" said Ender.
Of course they knew.
"What they don't mention is, he's a complete hard-ass."
And then the new simulation began and they got back to work.
Next day, Ender told them that things were changing. "So far we've
been playing against the computer or against each other. But starting now,
every few days Mazer himself and a team of experienced pilots will control
the opposing fleet. Anything goes."
A series of tests, with Mazer Rackham himself as the opponent. It
smelled fishy to Bean. fishy to Bean.
These aren't tests, these are setups, preparations for the conditions
that might come when they face the actual Bugger fleet near their home
planet.
The I.F. is getting preliminary information back from the
expeditionary fleet, and they're preparing us for what the Buggers are
actually going to throw at us when battle is joined.
The trouble was, no matter how bright Mazer Rackham and the other
officers might be, they were still human. When the real battle came, the
Buggers were bound to show them things that humans simply couldn't think of.
Then came the first of these "tests" -- and it was embarrassing how
juvenile the strategy was. A big globe formation, surrounding a single ship.
In this battle it became clear that Ender knew things that he wasn't
telling them. For one thing, he told them to ignore the ship in the center
of the globe. It was a decoy. But how could Ender know that? Because he knew
that the Buggers would *show* a single ship like that, and it was a lie.
Which means that the Buggers expect us to go for that one ship.
Except, of course, that this was not really the Buggers, this was
Mazer Rackham. So why would Rackham expect the Buggers to expect humans to
strike for a single ship?
Bean thought back to those vids that Ender had watched over and over
in Battle School -- all the propaganda film of the Second Invasion.
They never showed the battle because there wasn't one. Nor did Mazer
Rackham command a strike force with a brilliant strategy. Mazer Rackham
hit a single ship and the war was over. That's why there's no video of
hand-to-hand combat. Mazer Rackham killed the queen. And now he expects
the Buggers to show a central ship as a decoy, because that's how we won
last time.
Kill the queen, and all the Buggers are defenseless. Mindless. That's
what the vids meant. Ender knows that, but he also knows that the Buggers
know that we know it, so he doesn't fall for their sucker bait.
The second thing that Ender knew and they didn't was the use of a weapon
that hadn't been in any of their simulations till this first test. Ender
called it "Dr. Device" and then said nothing more about it -- until he
ordered Alai to use it where the enemy fleet was most concentrated. To their
surprise, the thing set off a chain reaction that leapt from ship to ship,
until all but the most outlying Formic ships were destroyed. And it was
an easy matter to mop up those stragglers. The playing field was clear
when they finished.
"Why was their strategy so stupid?" asked Bean.
"That's what I was wondering," said Ender. "But we didn't lose a ship,
so that's OK."
Later, Ender told them what Mazer said -- they were simulating a whole
invasion sequence, and so he was taking the simulated enemy through a
learning curve. "Next time they'll have learned. It won't be so easy."
Bean heard that and it filled him with alarm. An invasion sequence?
Why a scenario like that? Why not warmups before a single battle?
Because the Buggers have more than one world, thought Bean. Of course
they do. They found Earth and expected to turn it into yet another colony,
just as they've done before.
We have more than one fleet. One for each Formic world.
And the reason they can learn from battle to battle is because they,
too, have faster-than-light communication across interstellar space.
All of Bean's guesses were confirmed. He also knew the secret behind
these tests. Mazer Rackham wasn't commanding a simulated Bugger fleet. It
was a real battle, and Rackham's only function was to watch how it flowed
and then coach Ender afterward on what the enemy strategies meant and how to
counter them in future.
That was why they were giving most of their commands orally. They were
being transmitted to real crews of real ships who followed their orders
and fought real battles. Any ship we lose, thought Bean, means that grown
men and women have died. Any carelessness on our part takes lives. Yet
they don't tell us this precisely because we can't afford to be burdened
with that knowledge. In wartime, commanders have always had to learn the
concept of "acceptable losses." But those who keep their humanity never
really accept the idea of acceptability, Bean understood that. It gnaws at
them. So they protect us child-soldiers by keeping us convinced that it's
only games and tests.
Therefore I can't let on to anyone that I do know. Therefore I must
accept the losses without a word, without a visible qualm. I must try to
block out of my mind the people who will die from our boldness, whose
sacrifice is not of a mere counter in a game, but of their lives.
The "tests" came every few days, and each battle lasted longer. Alai
joked that they ought to be fitted with diapers so they didn't have to be
distracted when their bladder got full during a battle. Next day, they
were fitted out with catheters. It was Crazy Tom who put a stop to that.
"Come on, just get us a jar to pee in. We can't play this game with
something hanging off our dicks." Jars it was, after that. Bean never
heard of anyone using one, though. And though he wondered what they provided
for Petra, no one ever had the courage to brave her wrath by asking.
Bean began to notice some of Ender's mistakes pretty early on. For one
thing, Ender was relying too much on Petra. She always got command of the
core force, watching a hundred different things at once, so that Ender could
concentrate on the feints, the ploys, the tricks. Couldn't Ender see that
Petra, a perfectionist, was getting eaten alive by guilt and shame over
every mistake she made? He was so good with people, and yet he seemed to
think she was really tough, instead of realizing that toughness was an act
she put on to hide her intense anxiety. Every mistake weighed on her. She
wasn't sleeping well, and it showed up as she got more and more fatigued
during battles.
But then, maybe the reason Ender didn't realize what he was doing to her
was that he, too, was tired. So were all of them. Fading a little under the
pressure, and sometimes a lot. Getting more fatigued, more error-prone as
the tests got harder, as the odds got longer.
Because the battles were harder with each new "test," Ender was forced
to leave more and more decisions up to others. Instead of smoothly
carrying out Ender's detailed commands, the squadron leaders had more and
more of the battle to carry on their own shoulders. For long sequences,
Ender was too busy in one part of the battle to give new orders in another.
The squadron leaders who were affected began to use crosstalk to
determine their tactics until Ender noticed them again. And Bean was
grateful to find that, while Ender never gave him the interesting
assignments, some of the others talked to him when Ender's attention was
elsewhere. Crazy Tom and Hot Soup came up with their own plans, but they
routinely ran them past Bean. And since, in each battle, he was spending
half his attention observing and analyzing Ender's plan, Bean was able to
tell them, with pretty good accuracy, what they should do to help make the
overall plan work out. Now and then Ender praised Tom or Soup for
decisions that came from Bean's advice. It was the closest thing to praise
that Bean heard.
The other toon leaders and the older kids simply didn't turn to Bean
at all. He understood why; they must have resented it greatly when the
teachers placed Bean above them during the time before Ender was brought in.
Now that they had their true commander, they were never again going to do
anything that smacked of subservience to Bean. He understood -- but that
didn't keep it from stinging.
Whether or not they wanted him to oversee their work, whether or not his
feelings were hurt, that was still his assignment and he was determined
never to be caught unprepared. As the pressure became more and more intense,
as they became wearier and wearier, more irritable with each other, less
generous in their assessment of each other's work, Bean became all the
more attentive because the chances of error were all the greater.
One day Petra fell asleep during battle. She had let her force drift too
far into a vulnerable position, and the enemy took advantage, tearing her
squadron to bits. Why didn't she give the order to fall back? Worse yet,
Ender didn't notice soon enough, either. It was Bean who told him:
Something's wrong with Petra.
Ender called out to her. She didn't answer. Ender flipped control of her
two remaining ships to Crazy Tom and then tried to salvage the overall
battle. Petra had, as usual, occupied the core position, and the loss of
most of her large squadron was a devastating blow. Only because the enemy
was overconfident during mop-up was Ender able to lay a couple of traps
and regain the initiative. He won, but with heavy losses.
Petra apparently woke up near the end of the battle and found her
controls cut off, with no voice until it was all over. Then her microphone
came on again and they could hear her crying, "I'm sorry, I'm sorry. Tell
Ender I'm sorry, he can't hear me, I'm so sorry ..."
Bean got to her before she could return to her room. She was
staggering along the tunnel, leaning against the wall and crying, using
her hands to find her way because she couldn't see through her tears. Bean
came up and touched her. She shrugged off his hand.
"Petra," said Bean. "Fatigue is fatigue. You can't stay awake when
your brain shuts down."
"It was *my* brain that shut down! You don't know how that feels because
you're always so smart you could do all our jobs and play chess while
you're doing it!"
"Petra, he was relying on you too much, he never gave you a break --"
"He doesn't take breaks either, and I don't see him --"
"Yes you *do*. It was obvious there was something wrong with your
squadron for several seconds before somebody called his attention to it. And
even then, he tried to rouse you before assigning control to somebody else.
If he'd acted faster you would have had six ships left, not just two."
"*You* pointed it out to him. You were watching me. Checking up on me.
"
"Petra, I watch everybody."
"You said you'd trust me, but you don't. And you shouldn't, nobody
should trust me."
She broke into uncontrollable sobbing, leaning against the stone of
the wall.
A couple of officers showed up then, led her away. Not to her room.
***
Graff called him in soon afterward. "You handled it just right," said
Graff. "That's what you're there for."
"I wasn't quick either," said Bean.
"You were watching. You saw where the plan was breaking down, you called
Ender's attention to it. You did your job. The other kids don't realize
it and I know that has to gall you --"
"I don't care what they notice --"
"But you did the job. On that battle you get the save."
"Whatever the hell that means."
"It's baseball. Oh yeah. That wasn't big on the streets of Rotterdam."
"Can I please go sleep now?"
"In a minute. Bean, Ender's getting tired. He's making mistakes. It's
all the more important that you watch everything. Be there for him. You
saw how Petra was."
"We're all getting fatigued."
"Well, so is Ender. Worse than anyone. He cries in his sleep. He has
strange dreams. He's talking about how Mazer seems to know what he's
planning, spying on his dreams." his dreams."
"You telling me he's going crazy?"
"I'm telling you that the only person he pushed harder than Petra is
himself. Cover for him, Bean. Back him up."
"I already am."
"You're angry all the time, Bean."
Graff's words startled him. At first he thought, No I'm not! Then he
thought, Am I?
"Ender isn't using you for anything important, and after having run
the show that has to piss you off, Bean. But it's not Ender's fault. Mazer
has been telling Ender that he has doubts about your ability to handle large
numbers of ships. That's why you haven't been getting the complicated,
interesting assignments. Not that Ender takes Mazer's word for it. But
everything you do, Ender sees it through the lens of Mazer's lack of
confidence."
"Mazer Rackham thinks I --"
"Mazer Rackham knows exactly what you are and what you can do. But we
had to make sure Ender didn't assign you something so complicated you
couldn't keep track of the overall flow of the game. And we had to do it
without telling Ender you're his backup."
"So why are you telling me this?"
"When this test is over and you go on to real commands, we'll tell Ender
the truth about what you were doing, and why Mazer said what he said. I
know it means a lot to you to have Ender's confidence, and you don't feel
like you have it, and so I wanted you to know why. We did it."
"Why this sudden bout of honesty?"
"Because I think you'll do better knowing it."
"I'll do better *believing* it whether it's true or not. You could be
lying. So do I really know anything at all from this conversation?"
"Believe what you want, Bean."
*** ***
Petra didn't come to practice for a couple of days. When she came back,
of course Ender didn't give her the heavy assignments anymore. She did well
at the assignments she had, but her ebullience was gone. Her heart was
broken.
But damn it, she had *slept* for a couple of days. They were all just
the tiniest bit jealous of her for that, even though they'd never
willingly trade places with her. Whether they had any particular god in
mind, they all prayed: Let it not happen to me. Yet at the same time they
also prayed the opposite prayer: Oh, let me sleep, let me have a day in
which I don't have to think about this game.
The tests went on. How many worlds did these bastards colonize before
they got to Earth? Bean wondered. And are we sure we have them all? And what
good does it do to destroy their fleets when we don't have the forces there
to occupy the defeated colonies? Or do we just leave our ships there,
shooting down anything that tries to boost from the surface of the planet?
Petra wasn't the only one to blow out. Vlad went catatonic and
couldn't be roused from his bunk. It took three days for the doctors to
get him awake again, and unlike Petra, he was out for the duration. He
just couldn't concentrate.
Bean kept waiting for Crazy Tom to follow suit, but despite his
nickname, he actually seemed to get saner as he got wearier. Instead it
was Fly Molo who started laughing when he lost control of his squadron.
Ender cut him off immediately, and for once he put Bean in charge of Fly's
ships. Fly was back the next day, no explanation, but everyone understood
that he wouldn't be given crucial assignments now.
And Bean became more and more aware of Ender's decreasing alertness. His
orders came after longer and longer pauses now, and a couple of times his
orders weren't clearly stated. Bean immediately translated them into a
more comprehensible form, and Ender never knew there had been confusion. But
the others were finally becoming aware that Bean was following the whole
battle, not just his part of it. Perhaps they even saw how Bean would ask
a question during a battle, make some comment that alerted Ender to
something that he needed to be aware of, but never in a way that sounded
like Bean was criticizing anybody. After the battles one or two of the older
kids would speak to Bean. Nothing major. Just a hand on his shoulder, on
his back, and a couple of words. "Good game." "Good work." "Keep it up."
"Thanks, Bean."
He hadn't realized how much he needed the honor of others until he
finally got it.
***
"Bean, this next game, I think you should know something."
"What?"
Colonel Graff hesitated. "We couldn't get Ender awake this morning. He's
been having nightmares. He doesn't eat unless we make him. He bites his
hand in his sleep -- bites it bloody. And today we couldn't get him to
wake up. We were able to hold off on the ... test ... so he's going to be in
command, as usual, but ... not as usual."
"I'm ready. I always am."
"Yeah, but ... look, advance word on this test is that it's ...
there's no ..."
"It's hopeless."
"Anything you can do to help. Any suggestion."
"This Dr. Device thing, Ender hasn't let us use it in a long time."
"The enemy learned enough about how it works that they never let their
ships get close enough together for a chain reaction to spread. It takes a
certain amount of mass to be able to maintain the field. Basically, right
now it's just ballast. Useless."
"It would have been nice if you'd told *me* how it works before now."
"There are people who don't want us to tell you anything, Bean. You have
a way of using every scrap of information to guess ten times more than we
want you to know. It makes them a little leery of giving you those scraps in
the first place."
"Colonel Graff, you know that I know that these battles are real.
Mazer Rackham isn't making them up. When we lose ships, real men die."
Graff looked away.
"And these are men that Mazer Rackham knows, neh?"
Graff nodded slightly.
"You don't think Ender can sense what Mazer is feeling? I don't know the
guy, maybe he's like a rock, but *I* think that when he does his
critiques with Ender, he's letting his ... what, his anguish... Ender
feels it. Because Ender is a lot more tired *after* a critique than before
it. He may not know what's really going on, but he knows that something
terrible is at stake. He knows that Mazer Rackham is really upset with every
mistake Ender makes."
"Have you found some way to sneak into Ender's room?"
"I know how to listen to Ender. I'm not wrong about Mazer, am I?"
Graff shook his head.
"Colonel Graff, what you don't realize, what nobody seems to remember --
that last game in Battle School, where Ender turned his army over to me.
That wasn't a strategy. He was quitting. He was through. He was on strike.
You didn't find that out because you graduated him. The thing with Bonzo
finished him. I think Mazer Rackham's anguish is doing the same thing to him
now. I think even when Ender doesn't *consciously* know that he's killed
somebody, he knows it deep down, and it burns in his heart."
Graff looked at him sharply.
"I know Bonzo was dead. I saw him. I've seen death before, remember? You
don't get your nose jammed into your brain and lose two gallons of blood
and get up and walk away. You never told Ender that Bonzo was dead, but
you're a fool if you think he doesn't know. And he knows, thanks to Mazer,
that every ship we've lost means good men are dead. He can't stand it,
Colonel Graff."
"You're more insightful than you get credit for, Bean," said Graff.
"I know, I'm the cold inhuman intellect, right?" Bean laughed bitterly.
"Genetically altered, therefore I'm just as alien as the Buggers."
Graff blushed. "No one's ever said that."
"You mean you've never said it in front of me. Knowingly. What you don't
seem to understand is, sometimes you have to just tell people the truth and
ask them to do the thing you want, instead of trying to trick them into
it."
"Are you saying we should tell Ender the game is real?"
"No! Are you insane? If he's this upset when the knowledge is
unconscious, what do you think would happen if he *knew* that he knew?
He'd freeze up."
"But you don't freeze up. Is that it? You should command this next
battle?"
"You still don't get it, Colonel Graff. I don't freeze up because it
isn't my battle. I'm helping. I'm watching. But I'm free. Because it's
Ender's game."
Bean's simulator came to life.
"It's time," said Graff. "Good luck."
"Colonel Graff, Ender may go on strike again. He may walk out on it.
He might give up. He might tell himself, It's only a game and I'm sick of
it, I don't care what they do to me, I'm done. That's in him, to do that.
When it seems completely unfair and utterly pointless."
"What if I promised him it was the last one?"
Bean put on his headset as he asked, "Would it be true?"
Graff nodded.
"Yeah, well, I don't think it would make much difference. Besides,
he's Mazer's student now, isn't he?"
"I guess. Mazer was talking about telling him that it was the final
exam."
"Mazer is Ender's teacher now," Bean mused. "And you're left with me.
The kid you didn't want."
Graff blushed again. "That's right," he said. "Since you seem to know
everything. I didn't want you."
Even though Bean already knew it, the words still hurt.
"But Bean," said Graff, "the thing is, I was wrong." He put a hand on
Bean's shoulder and left the room.
Bean logged on. He was the last of the squadron leaders to do so.
"Are you there?" asked Ender over the headsets.
"All of us," said Bean. "Kind of late for practice this morning,
aren't you?"
"Sorry," said Ender. "I overslept."
They laughed. Except Bean.
Ender took them through some maneuvers, warming up for the battle. And
then it was time. The display cleared.
Bean waited, anxiety gnawing at his gut.
The enemy appeared in the display.
Their fleet was deployed around a planet that loomed in the center of
the display. There had been battles near planets before, but every other
time, the world was near the edge of the display -- the enemy fleet always
tried to lure them away from the planet.
This time there was no luring. Just the most incredible swarm of enemy
ships imaginable. Always staying a certain distance away from each other,
thousands and thousands of ships followed random, unpredictable,
intertwining paths, together forming a cloud of death around the planet.
This is the home planet, thought Bean. He almost said it aloud, but
caught himself in time. This is a *simulation* of the Bugger defense of
their home planet.
They've had generations to prepare for us to come. All the previous
battles were nothing. These Formics can lose any number of individual
Buggers and they don't care. All that matters is the queen. Like the one
Mazer Rackham killed in the Second Invasion. And they haven't put a queen at
risk in any of these battles. Until now.
That's why they're swarming. There's a queen here.
Where?
On the planet surface, thought Bean. The idea is to keep us from getting
to the planet surface.
So that's precisely where we need to go. Dr. Device needs mass.
Planets have mass. Pretty simple.
Except that there was no way to get this small force of human ships
through that swarm and near enough to the planet to deploy Dr. Device. For
if there was anything that history taught, it was this: Sometimes the
other side is irresistibly strong, and then the only sensible course of
action is to retreat in order to save your force to fight another day.
In this war, however, there would be no other day. There was no hope
of retreat. The decisions that lost this battle, and therefore this war,
were made two generations ago when these ships were launched, an
inadequate force from the start. The commanders who set this fleet in motion
may not even have known, then, that this was the Buggers' home world. It
was no one's fault. They simply didn't have enough of a force even to make a
dent in the enemy's defenses. It didn't matter how brilliant Ender was.
When you have only one guy with a shovel, you can't build a dike to hold
back the sea.
No retreat, no possibility of victory, no room for delay or maneuver, no
reason for the enemy to do anything but continue to do what they were
doing.
There were only twenty starships in the human fleet, each with four
fighters. And they were the oldest design, sluggish compared to some of
the fighters they'd had in earlier battles. It made sense -- the Bugger home
world was probably the farthest away, so the fleet that got there now had
left before any of the other fleets. Before the better ships came on line.
Eighty fighters. Against five thousand, maybe ten thousand enemy ships.
It was impossible to determine the number. Bean saw how the display kept
losing track of individual enemy ships, how the total count kept
fluctuating. There were so many it was overloading the system. They kept
winking in and out like fireflies.
A long time passed -- many seconds, perhaps a minute. By now Ender
usually had them all deployed, ready to move. But still there was nothing
from him but silence.
A light blinked on Bean's console. He knew what it meant. All he had
to do was press a button, and control of the battle would be his. They
were offering it to him, because they thought that Ender had frozen up.
He hasn't frozen up, thought Bean. He hasn't panicked. He has simply
understood the situation, exactly as I understand it. There *is* no
strategy. Only he doesn't see that this is simply the fortunes of war, a
disaster that can't be helped. What he sees is a test set before him by
his teachers, by Mazer Rackham, a test so absurdly unfair that the only
reasonable course of action is to refuse to take it.
They were so clever, keeping the truth from him all this time. But now
was it going to backfire on them. If Ender understood that it was not a
game, that the real war had come down to this moment, then he might make
some desperate effort, or with his genius he might even come up with an
answer to a problem that, as far as Bean could see, had no solution. But
Ender did not understand the reality, and so to him it was like that day
in the battleroom, facing two armies, when Ender turned the whole thing over
to Bean and, in effect, refused to play.
For a moment Bean was tempted to scream the truth. It's not a game, it's
the real thing, this is the last battle, we've lost this war after all! But
what would be gained by that, except to panic everyone?
Yet it was absurd to even contemplate pressing that button to take
over control himself. Ender hadn't collapsed or failed. The battle was
unwinnable; it should not even be fought. The lives of the men on those
ships were not to be wasted on such a hopeless Charge of the Light Brigade.
I'm not General Burnside at Fredericksburg. I don't send my men off to
senseless, hopeless, meaningless death.
If I had a plan, I'd take control. I have no plan. So for good or ill,
it's Ender's game, not mine.
And there was another reason for not taking over.
Bean remembered standing over the supine body of a bully who was too
dangerous to ever be tamed, telling Poke, Kill him now, kill him.
I was right. And now, once again, the bully must be killed. Even
though I don't know how to do it, we *can't* lose this war. I don't know how
to win it, but I'm not God, I don't see everything. And maybe Ender doesn't
*see* a solution either, but if anyone can find one, if anyone can make
it happen, it's Ender.
Maybe it isn't hopeless. Maybe there's some way to get down to the
planet's surface and wipe the Buggers out of the universe. Now is the time
for miracles. For Ender, the others will do their best work. If I took over,
they'd be so upset, so distracted that even if I came up with a plan that
had some kind of chance, it would never work because their hearts wouldn't
be in it.
Ender has to try. If he doesn't, we all die. Because even if they
weren't going to send another fleet against us, after this they'll *have* to
send one. Because we beat all their fleets in every battle till now. If
we don't win this one, with finality, destroying their capability to make
war against us, then they'll be back. And this time they'll have figured out
how to make Dr. Device themselves.
We have only the one world. We have only the one hope.
Do it, Ender.
There flashed into Bean's mind the words Ender said in their first day
of training as Dragon Army: Remember, the enemy's gate is down. In Dragon
Army's last battle, when there was no hope, that was the strategy that Ender
had used, sending Bean's squad to press their helmets against the floor
around the gate and win. Too bad there was no such cheat available now.
Deploying Dr. Device against the planet's surface to blow the whole
thing up, that might do the trick. You just couldn't get there from here.
It was time to give up. Time to get out of the game, to tell them not to
send children to do grownups' work. It's hopeless. We're done.
"Remember," Bean said ironically, "the enemy's gate is down."
Fly Molo, Hot Soup, Vlad, Dumper, Crazy Tom -- they grimly laughed. They
had been in Dragon Army. They remembered how those words were used before.
But Ender didn't seem to get the joke.
Ender didn't seem to understand that there was no way to get Dr.
Device to the planet's surface.
Instead, his voice came into their ears, giving them orders. He pulled
them into a tight formation, cylinders within cylinders.
Bean wanted to shout, Don't do it! There are real men on those ships,
and if you send them in, they'll die, a sacrifice with no hope of victory.
But he held his tongue, because, in the back of his mind, in the deepest
corner of his heart, he still had hope that Ender might do what could not
be done. And as long as there was such a hope, the lives of those men were,
by their own choice when they set out on this expedition, expendable.
Ender set them in motion, having them dodge here and there through the
ever-shifting formations of the enemy swarm.
Surely the enemy sees what we're doing, thought Bean. Surely they see
how every third or fourth move takes us closer and closer to the planet.
At any moment the enemy could destroy them quickly by concentrating
their forces. So why weren't they doing it?
One possibility occurred to Bean. The Buggers didn't dare concentrate
their forces close to Ender's tight formation, because the moment they
drew their ships that close together, Ender could use Dr. Device against
them.
And then he thought of another explanation. Could it be that there
were simply too many Bugger ships? Could it be that the queen or queens
had to spend all their concentration, all their mental strength just keeping
ten thousand ships swarming through space without getting too close to each
other?
Unlike Ender, the Bugger queen couldn't turn control of her ships over
to subordinates. She *had* no subordinates. The individual Buggers; were
like her hands and her feet. Now she had hundreds of hands and feet, or
perhaps thousands of them, all wiggling at once.
That's why she wasn't responding intelligently. Her forces were too
numerous. That's why she wasn't making the obvious moves, setting traps,
blocking Ender from taking his cylinder ever closer to the planet with every
swing and dodge and shift that he made.
In fact, the maneuvers the Buggers were making were ludicrously wrong.
For as Ender penetrated deeper and deeper into the planet's gravity well,
the Buggers were building up a thick wall of forces *behind* Ender's
formation.
They're blocking our retreat!
At once Bean understood a third and most important reason for what was
happening. The Buggers had learned the wrong lessons from the previous
battles. Up to now, Ender's strategy had always been to ensure the
survival of as many human ships as possible. He had always left himself a
line of retreat. The Buggers, with their huge numerical advantage, were
finally in a position to guarantee that the human forces would not get away.
There was no way, at the beginning of this battle, to predict that the
Buggers would make such a mistake. Yet throughout history, great victories
had come as much because of the losing army's errors as because of the
winner's brilliance in battle. The Buggers have finally, finally learned
that we humans value each and every individual human life. We don't throw
our forces away because every soldier is the queen of a one-member hive. But
they've learned this lesson just in time for it to be hopelessly wrong --
for we humans *do*, when the cause is sufficient, spend our own lives. We
throw ourselves onto the grenade to save our buddies in the foxhole. We rise
out of the trenches and charge the entrenched enemy and die like maggots
under a blowtorch. We strap bombs on our bodies and blow ourselves up in the
midst of our enemies. We are, when the cause is sufficient, insane.
They don't believe we'll use Dr. Device because the only way to use it
is to destroy our own ships in the process. From the moment Ender started
giving orders, it was obvious to everyone that this was a suicide run. These
ships were not made to enter an atmosphere. And yet to get close enough
to the planet to set off Dr. Device, they had to do exactly that.
Get down into the gravity well and launch the weapon just before the
ship burns up. And if it works, if the planet is torn apart by whatever
force it is in that terrible weapon, the chain reaction will reach out
into space and take out any ships that might happen to survive.
Win or lose, there'd be no human survivors from this battle.
They've never seen us make a move like that. They don't understand that,
yes, humans will always act to preserve their own lives -- except for the
times when they don't. In the Buggers' experience, autonomous beings do
not sacrifice themselves. Once they understood our autonomy, the seed of
their defeat was sown.
In all of Ender's study of the Buggers, in all his obsession with them
over the years of his training, did he somehow come to *know* that they
would make such deadly mistakes?
I did not know it. I would not have pursued this strategy. I *had* no
strategy. Ender was the only commander who could have known, or guessed,
or unconsciously hoped that when he flung out his forces the enemy would
falter, would trip, would fall, would fail.
Or *did* he know at all? Could it be that he reached the same conclusion
as I did, that this battle was unwinnable? That he decided not to play it
out, that he went on strike, that he quit? And then my bitter words, "the
enemy's gate is down," triggered his futile, useless gesture of despair,
sending his ships to certain doom because he did not know that there were
real ships out there, with real men aboard, that he was sending to their
deaths? Could it be that he was as surprised as I was by the mistakes of the
enemy? Could our victory be an accident?
No. For even if my words provoked Ender into action, he was still the
one who chose *this* formation, *these* feints and evasions, *this*
meandering route. It was Ender whose previous victories taught the enemy
to think of us as one kind of creature, when we are really something quite
different. He pretended all this time that humans were rational beings, when
we are really the most terrible monsters these poor aliens could ever
have conceived of in their nightmares. They had no way Of knowing the
story of blind Samson, who pulled down the temple on his own head to slay
his enemies.
On those ships, thought Bean, there are individual men who gave up homes
and families, the world of their birth, in order to cross a great swatch of
the galaxy and make war on a terrible enemy. Somewhere along the way
they're bound to understand that Ender's strategy requires them all to die.
Perhaps they already have. And yet they obey and will continue to obey
the orders that come to them. As in the famous Charge of the Light Brigade,
these soldiers give up their lives, trusting that their commanders are
using them well. While we sit safely here in these simulator rooms,
playing an elaborate computer game, they are obeying, dying so that all of
humankind can live.
And yet we who command them, we children in these elaborate game
machines, have no idea of their courage, their sacrifice. We cannot give
them the honor they deserve, because we don't even know they exist.
Except for me.
There sprang into Bean's mind a favorite scripture of Sister Carlotta's.
Maybe it meant so much to her because she had no children. She told Bean
the story of Absalom's rebellion against his own father, King David. In
the course of a battle, Absalom was killed. When they brought the news to
David, it meant victory, it meant that no more of his soldiers would die.
His throne was safe. His *life* was safe. But all he could think about was
his son, his beloved son, his dead boy.
Bean ducked his head, so his voice would be heard only by the men
under his command. And then, for just long enough to speak, he pressed the
override that put his voice into the ears of all the men of that distant
fleet. Bean had no idea how his voice would sound to them; would they hear
his childish voice, or were the sounds distorted, so they would hear him
as an adult, or perhaps as some metallic, machinelike voice? No matter. In
some form the men of that distant fleet would hear his voice, transmitted
faster than light, God knows how.
"O my son Absalom," Bean said softly, knowing for the first time the
kind of anguish that could tear such words from a man's mouth. "My son, my
son Absalom. Would God I could die for thee, O Absalom, my son. My sons!"
He had paraphrased it a little, but God would understand. Or if he
didn't, Sister Carlotta would.
Now, thought Bean. Do it now, Ender. You're as close as you can get
without giving away the game. They're beginning to understand their danger.
They're concentrating their forces. They'll blow us out of the sky before
our weapons can be launched --
"All right, everybody except Petra's squadron," said Ender. "Straight
down, as fast as you can. Launch Dr. Device against the planet. Wait till
the last possible second. Petra, cover as you can."
The squadron leaders, Bean among them, echoed Ender's commands to
their own fleets. And then there was nothing to do but watch. Each ship
was on its own.
The enemy understood now, and rushed to destroy the plummeting humans.
Fighter after fighter was picked off by the inrushing ships of the Formic
fleet. Only a few human fighters survived long enough to enter the
atmosphere.
Hold on, thought Bean. Hold on as long as you can.
The ships that launched too early watched their Dr. Device burn up in
the atmosphere before it could go off. A few other ships burned up
themselves without launching.
Two ships were left. One was in Bean's squadron.
"Don't launch it," said Bean into his microphone, head down. "Set it off
inside your ship. God be with you."
Bean had no way of knowing whether it was his ship or the other that did
it. He only knew that both ships disappeared from the display without
launching. And then the surface of the planet started to bubble. Suddenly
a vast eruption licked outward toward the last of the human fighters,
Petra's ships, on which there might or might not still be men alive to see
death coming at them. To see their victory approach.
The simulator put on a spectacular show as the exploding planet chewed
up all the enemy ships, engulfing them in the chain reaction. But long
before the last ship was swallowed up, all the maneuvering had stopped. They
drifted, dead. Like the dead Bugger ships in the vids of the Second
Invasion. The queens of the hive had died on the planet's surface. The
destruction of the remaining ships was a mere formality. The Buggers were
already dead.
***
Bean emerged into the tunnel to find that the other kids were already
there, congratulating each other and commenting on how cool the explosion
effect was, and wondering if something like that could really happen.
"Yes," said Bean. "It could."
"As if you know," said Fly Molo, laughing.
"Of course I know it could happen," said Bean. "It *did* happen."
They looked at him uncomprehendingly. When did it happen? I never
heard of anything like that. Where could they have tested that weapon
against a planet? I know, they took out Neptune!
"It happened just now," said Bean. "It happened at the home world of the
Buggers. We just blew it up. They're all dead."
They finally began to realize that he was serious. They fired objections
at him. He explained about the faster-than-light communications device.
They didn't believe him.
Then another voice entered the conversation. "It's called the ansible.
"
They looked up to see Colonel Graff standing a ways off, down the
tunnel.
Is Bean telling the truth? Was that a real battle?
"They were all real," said Bean. "All the so-called tests. Real battles.
Real victories. Right, Colonel Graff? We were fighting the real war all
along."
"It's over now," said Graff. "The human race will continue. The
Buggers won't."
They finally believed it, and became giddy with the realization. It's
over. We won. We weren't practicing, we were actually commanders.
And then, at last, a silence fell.
"They're *all* dead?" asked Petra.
Bean nodded.
Again they looked at Graff. "We have reports. All life activity has
ceased on all the other planets. They must have gathered their queens back
on their home planet. When the queens die, the Buggers die. There is no
enemy now."
Petra began to cry, leaning against the wall. Bean wanted to reach out
to her, but Dink was there. Dink was the friend who held her, comforted her.
Some soberly, some exultantly, they went back to their barracks. Petra
wasn't the only one who cried. But whether the tears were shed in anguish or
in relief, no one could say for sure.
Only Bean did not return to his room, perhaps because Bean was the
only one not surprised. He stayed out in the tunnel with Graff.
"How's Ender taking it?"
"Badly," said Graff. "We should have broken it to him more carefully,
but there was no holding back. In the moment of victory."
"All your gambles paid off," said Bean.
"I know what happened, Bean," said Graff. "Why did you leave control
with him? How did you know he'd come up with a plan?"
"I didn't," said Bean. "I only knew that I had no plan at all."
"But what you said -- 'the enemy's gate is down.' That's the plan
Ender used."
"It wasn't a plan," said Bean. "Maybe it made him think of a plan. But
it was him. It was Ender. You put your money on the right kid."
Graff looked at Bean in silence, then reached out and put a hand on
Bean's head, tousled his hair a little. "I think perhaps you pulled each
other across the finish line."
"It doesn't matter, does it?" said Bean. "It's finished, anyway. And
so is the temporary unity of the human race."
"Yes," said Graff. He pulled his hand away, ran it through his own hair.
"I believed in your analysis. I tried to give warning. *If* the Strategos
heeded my advice, the Polemarch's men are getting arrested here on Eros
and all over the fleet."
"Will they go peacefully?" asked Bean.
"We'll see," said Graff.
The sound of gunfire echoed from some distant tunnel.
"Guess not," said Bean.
They heard the sound of men running in step. And soon they saw them, a
contingent of a dozen armed marines.
Bean and Graff watched them approach. "Friend or foe?"
"They all wear the same uniform," said Graff. "You're the one who called
it, Bean. Inside those doors" -- he gestured toward the doors to the
kids' quarters -- "those children are the spoils of war. In command of
armies back on Earth, they're the hope of victory. *You* are the hope."
The soldiers came to a stop in front of Graff. "We're here to protect
the children, sir," said their leader.
"From what?"
"The Polemarch's men seem to be resisting arrest, sir," said the
soldier. "The Strategos has ordered that these children be kept safe at
all costs."
Graff was visibly relieved to know which side these troops were on. "The
girl is in that room over there. I suggest you consolidate them all into
those two barrack rooms for the duration."
"Is this the kid who did it?" asked the soldier, indicating Bean.
"He's one of them."
"It was Ender Wiggin who did it," said Bean. "Ender was our commander.
"
"Is he in one of those rooms?" asked the soldier.
"He's with Mazer Rackham," said Graff. "And this one stays with me."
The soldier saluted. He began positioning his men in more advanced
positions down the tunnel, with only a single guard outside each door to
prevent the kids from going out and getting lost somewhere in the fighting.
Bean trotted along beside Graff as he headed purposefully down the
tunnel, beyond the farthest of the guards.
"If the Strategos did this right, the ansibles have already been
secured. I don't know about you, but I want to be where the news is coming
in. And going out."
"Is Russian a hard language to learn?" asked Bean.
"Is that what passes for humor with you?" asked Graff.
"It was a simple question."
"Bean, you're a great kid, but shut up, OK?"
Bean laughed. "OK."
"You don't mind if I still call you Bean?"
"It's my name."
"Your name should have been Julian Delphiki. If you'd had a birth
certificate, that's the name that would have been on it."
"You mean that was true?"
"Would I lie about something like that?"
Then, realizing the absurdity of what he had just said, they laughed.
Laughed long enough to still be smiling when they passed the detachment of
marines protecting the entrance to the ansible complex.
"You think anybody will ask me for military advice?" asked Bean.
"Because I'm going to get into this war, even if I have to lie about my
age and enlist in the marines."CHAPTER 24 -- HOMECOMING
"I thought you'd want to know. Some bad news."
"There's no shortage of that, even in the midst of victory."
"When it became clear that the IDL had control of Battle School and
was sending the kids home under I.F. protection, the New Warsaw Pact
apparently did a little research and found that there was one student from
Battle School who wasn't under our control. Achilles."
"But he was only there a couple of days."
"He passed our tests. He got in. He was the only one they could get."
"Did they? Get him?"
"All the security there was designed to keep inmates inside. Three
guards dead, all the inmates released into the general population. They've
all been recovered, except one."
"So he's loose."
"I wouldn't call it loose, exactly. They intend to use him."
"Do they know what he is?"
"No. His records were sealed. A juvenile, you see. They weren't coming
for his dossier."
"They'll find out. They don't like serial killers in Moscow, either."
"He's hard to pin down. How many died before any of us suspected him?"
"The war is over for now."
"And the jockeying for advantage in the next war has begun."
"With any luck, Colonel Graff, I'll be dead by then."
"I'm not actually a colonel anymore, Sister Carlotta."
"They're really going to go ahead with that court-martial?"
"An investigation, that's all. An inquiry."
"I just don't understand why they have to find a scapegoat for victory."
"I'll be fine. The sun still shines on planet Earth."
"But never again on *their* tragic world."
"Is your God also their God, Sister Carlotta? Did he take them into
heaven?"
"He's not *my* God, Mr. Graff. But I am his child, as are you. I don't
know whether he looks at the Formics and sees them, too, as his children."
"Children. Sister Carlotta, the things I did to these children."
"You gave them a world to come home to."
"All but one of them."
***
It took days for the Polemarch's men to be subdued, but at last Fleetcom
was entirely under the Strategos's command, and not one ship had been
launched under rebel command. A triumph. The Hegemon resigned as part of the
truce, but that only formalized what had already been the reality.
Bean stayed with Graff throughout the fighting, as they read every
dispatch and listened to every report about what was happening elsewhere
in the fleet and back on Earth. They talked through the unfolding situation,
tried to read between the lines, interpreted what was happening as best
they could. For Bean, the war with the Buggers was already behind him. All
that mattered now was how things went on Earth. When a shaky truce was
signed, temporarily ending the fighting, Bean knew that it would not last.
He would be needed. Once he got to Earth, he could prepare himself to play
his role. Ender's war is over, he thought. This next one will be mine.
While Bean was avidly following the news, the other kids were confined
to their quarters under guard, and during the power failures in their part
of Eros they did their cowering in darkness. Twice there were assaults on
that section of the tunnels, but whether the Russians were trying to get
at the kids or merely happened to probe in that area, looking for
weaknesses, no one could guess.
Ender was under much heavier guard, but didn't know it. Utterly
exhausted, and perhaps unwilling or unable to bear the enormity of what he
had done, he remained unconscious for days.
Not till the fighting stopped did he come back to consciousness.
They let the kids get together then, their confinement over for now.
Together they made the pilgrimage to the room where Ender had been under
protection and medical care. They found him apparently cheerful, able to
joke. But Bean could see a deep weariness, a sadness in Ender's eyes that it
was impossible to ignore. The victory had cost him deeply, more than
anybody.
More than me, thought Bean, even though I knew what I was doing, and
he was innocent of any bad intent. He tortures himself, and I move on. Maybe
because to me the death of Poke was more important than the death of an
entire species that I never saw. I knew her -- she has stayed with me in
my heart. The Buggers I never knew. How can I grieve for them?
Ender can.
After they filled Ender in on the news about what happened while he
slept, Petra touched his hair. "You OK?" she asked. "You scared us. They
said you were crazy, and we said *they* were crazy."
"I'm crazy," said Ender. "But I think I'm OK."
There was more banter, but then Ender's emotions overflowed and for
the first time any of them could remember, they saw Ender cry. Bean happened
to be standing near him, and when Ender reached out, it was Bean and
Petra that he embraced. The touch of his hand, the embrace of his arm,
they were more than Bean could bear. He also cried.
"I missed you," said Ender. "I wanted to see you so bad."
"You saw us pretty bad," said Petra. She was not crying. She kissed
his cheek.
"I saw you magnificent," said Ender. "The ones I needed most, I used
up soonest. Bad planning on my part."
"Everybody's OK now," said Dink. "Nothing was wrong with any of us
that five days of cowering in blacked-out rooms in the middle of a war
couldn't cure."
"I don't have to be your commander anymore, do I?" asked Ender. "I don't
want to command anybody again."
Bean believed him. And believed also that Ender never *would* command in
battle again. He might still have the talents that brought him to this
place. But the most important ones didn't have to be used for violence. If
the universe had any kindness in it, or even simple justice, Ender would
never have to take another life. He had surely filled his quota.
"You don't have to command anybody," said Dink, "but you're always our
commander."
Bean felt the truth of that. There was not one of them who would not
carry Ender with them in their hearts, wherever they went, whatever they
did.
What Bean didn't have the heart to tell them was that on Earth, both
sides had insisted that they be given custody of the hero of the war,
young Ender Wiggin, whose great victory had captured the popular
imagination. Whoever had him would not only have the use of his fine
military mind -- they thought -- but would also have the benefit of all
the publicity and public adulation that surrounded him, that filled every
mention of his name.
So as the political leaders worked out the truce, they reached a
simple and obvious compromise. All the children from Battle School would
be repatriated. Except Ender Wiggin.
Ender Wiggin would not be coming home. Neither party on Earth would be
able to use him. That was the compromise.
And it had been proposed by Locke. By Ender's own brother.
When he learned that it made Bean seethe inside, the way he had when
he thought Petra had betrayed Ender. It was wrong. It couldn't be borne.
Perhaps Peter Wiggin did it to keep Ender from becoming a pawn. To
keep him free. Or perhaps he did it so that Ender could not use his
celebrity to make his own play for political power. Was Peter Wiggin
saving his brother, or eliminating a rival for power?
Someday I'll meet him and find out, thought Bean. And if he betrayed his
brother, I'll destroy him.
When Bean shed his tears there in Ender's room, he was weeping for a
cause the others did not yet know about. He was weeping because, as surely
as the soldiers who died in those fighting ships, Ender would not be
coming home from the war.
"So," said Alai, breaking the silence. "What do we do now? The Bugger
War's over, and so's the war down there on Earth, and even the war here.
What do we do now?"
"We're kids," said Petra. "They'll probably make us go to school. It's a
law. You have to go to school till you're seventeen."
They all laughed until they cried again.
They saw each other off and on again over the next few days. Then they
boarded several different cruisers and destroyers for the voyage back to
Earth. Bean knew well why they traveled in separate ships. That way no one
would ask why Ender wasn't on board. If Ender knew, before they left, that
he was not going back to Earth, he said nothing about it.
***
Elena could hardly contain her joy when Sister Carlotta called, asking
if she and her husband would both be at home in an hour. "I'm bringing you
your son," she said.
Nikolai, Nikolai, Nikolai. Elena sang the name over and over again in
her mind, with her lips. Her husband Julian, too, was almost dancing as he
hurried about the house, making things ready. Nikolai had been so little
when he left. Now he would be so much older. They would hardly know him.
They would not understand what he had been through. But it didn't matter.
They loved him. They would learn who he was all over again. They would not
let the lost years get in the way of the years to come.
"I see the car!" cried Julian.
Elena hurriedly pulled the covers from the dishes, so that Nikolai could
come into a kitchen filled with the freshest, purest food of his
childhood memories. Whatever they ate in space, it couldn't be as good as
this.
Then she ran to the door and stood beside her husband as they watched
Sister Carlotta get out of the front seat.
Why didn't she ride in back with Nikolai?
No matter. The back door opened, and Nikolai emerged, unfolding his
lanky young body. So tall he was growing! Yet still a boy. There was a
little bit of childhood left for him.
Run to me, my son!
But he didn't run to her. He turned his back on his parents.
Ah. He was reaching into the back seat. A present, perhaps?
No. Another boy.
A smaller boy, but with the same face as Nikolai. Perhaps too careworn
for a child so small, but with the same open goodness that Nikolai had
always had. Nikolai was smiling so broadly he could not contain it. But
the small one was not smiling. He looked uncertain. Hesitant.
"Julian," said her husband.
Why would he say his own name?
"Our second son," he said. "They didn't all die, Elena. One lived."
All hope of those little ones had been buried in her heart. It almost
hurt to open that hidden place. She gasped at the intensity of it.
"Nikolai met him in Battle School," he went on. "I told Sister
Carlotta that if we had another son, you meant to name him Julian."
"You knew," said Elena.
"Forgive me, my love. But Sister Carlotta wasn't sure then that he was
ours. Or that he would ever be able to come home. I couldn't bear it, to
tell you of the hope, only to break your heart later."
"I have two sons," she said.
"If you want him," said Julian. "His life has been hard. But he's a
stranger here. He doesn't speak Greek. He's been told that he's coming
just for a visit. That legally he is not our child, but rather a ward of the
state. We don't have to take him in, if you don't want to, Elena."
"Hush, you foolish man," she said. Then, loudly, she called out to the
approaching boys. "Here are my two sons, home from the wars! Come to your
mother! I have missed you both so much, and for so many years!"
They ran to her then, and she held them in her arms, and her tears
fell on them both, and her husband's hands rested upon both boys' heads.
Her husband spoke. Elena recognized his words at once, from the gospel
of St. Luke. But because he had only memorized the passage in Greek, the
little one did not understand him. No matter. Nikolai began to translate
into Common, the language of the fleet, and almost at once the little one
recognized the words, and spoke them correctly, from memory, as Sister
Carlotta had once read it to him years before.
"Let us eat, and be merry: for this my son was dead, and is alive again;
he was lost, and is found." Then the little one burst into tears and
clung to his mother, and kissed his father's hand.
"Welcome home, little brother," said Nikolai. "I told you they were
nice."
THE END
--
※ 来源:·哈工大紫丁香 bbs.hit.edu.cn·[FROM: 162.105.31.222]
Powered by KBS BBS 2.0 (http://dev.kcn.cn)
页面执行时间:7,561.260毫秒